5MITH$ONIAN SCI ENTI FIC 8ERI ES Editor-in-chie/ CHARLES GREELEY ABBOT, D.Se. Secretary of the Smithsonian Institution Published by S,I'ITHS©NIAN [NSTITUTI©N SER[ES. N EW YOEE THEIR INSECTS WAYS AND OF LIVING MEANS ROBERT Ev.NS SNODGRASS United States Bureau o Entomology VOLUME FIVE OF THE SMITHSONIAN SCIENTIFIC SERIES 193o COPYRIGHT 1930, BY SMITHSONI/N INSTITUTION SERIES, Inc. [Printed in the United States of America] ]lll rights rtsertd Copyright Under the Articles of the Copyright Convention of the Pan-American Republics and the United States, August I I, 9o CONTENTS Il. III. IV. V. VI. VII. VIII. IX.. X. PREFACE THE GRASSHOPPER THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS ROACES AND OTHER ANCENT [NSECTS WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING TERMITES PLANT IICE THE PERIODICAL CICADA INSECT vIETAMORPHOSIS . THE CATERPILLAR AND THE IOTH MOSQUITOES AND FLIES INDEX i 26 77 99 25 52 i82 226 262 314 355 ILLUSTRATIONS LIST OF PLATES The Carolina Locust . Miscellaneous insects . The Green Apple Aphis 3- The Rosy Apple Aphis 4. The Apple-grain Aphis . . . Nymph of the Periodical Cicada . ;. Newly emerged Cicada 7- Cicada laying eggs ........ 8. Egg nests and eggs of the Periodical Cicada 9. Two species of large moths ...... o. The Cecropia Moth and the Polyphemus Moth  . The Ribbed-cocoon Maker IOE. The Peach-borer Moth 3- The Red-humped Caterpillar 4. The Tent Caterpillar Fronttspiece 8 6o 7 o 92 98 212 OE6o LIST OF TEXT FIGURES i. Young grasshoppers ...... 2 OE. End structures of a grasshopper's body . 3 3- Grasshopper laying eggs ..... 4 4- Egg-pods of a grasshopper 5 ç. Eggs of a grasshopper ....... 6 . Young grasshopper emerging from the egg . 8 7- Eggs of a katydid ........ o 8. A young grasshopper ....... *OE 9- The growth stages of a grasshopper . 3 o. A parasitic fly ......... OEo . Blister beetles ......... OEOE IOE. A triungulin larva of a blister beetle OE3 13. Second-stage larva of a blister beetle OE4 I 4. Examples of Arthropoda .... OE7  5. A "'singing'" grasshopper ..... OE9 I6. Another"singing" grasshopper 31 17. The feet of Orthoptera .......... 33  8. Sound-making organs of a meadow grasshopper 34 19. Sound-making organs and ears of a conehead katydid 35 20. Auditory organ of a katydid ........ 37 2. A bush katydid ...... 38 22. The oblong-winged katydid 40 23. The angular-winged katydid . 4 24. The true katydid ..... 44 25. The katydid in various attitudes 45 26. Sound-making organs of the katydid" 48 27. A conehead katydid ..... 5o 28. The robust katydid . 5 29. The common meadow lat3did 3 o. The handsome meadow katydid . 53 3- The slender meadow katydid . 53 32. The Coulee cricket .... 55 33- Wings of a tree cricket 56 34- A mole cricket .... 57 35- The striped ground cricket 59 36. The common black cricket 37- The snowy tree cricket .... 64 38. Antennal marks of the tree crickets . 66 39- The narrow-winged tree cricket . 67 4o. A broad-winged tree cricket ...... 68 4- Back glands of a tree cricket ....... 68 42. The jumping bush cricket • - 7o 43- The common walking-stick insect 44. A gigantic walking-stick insect 7 45- A leaf insect ..... 73 46. The praying mantis 74 47- A shield-bearing manti 75 48. Egg case ofa mantis . . 75 49- Common household roaches 78 5o. Egg cases of roaches 79 5" Young of the Croton bg . 8 52. The house centipede 83 53- Wings of a cockroach . 84 54. A Paleozoic forest . 86 55- Fossil roaches . 90 56. Early fossil insects . 9  57- Machilis ...... 93 58. Dragonflies . . 94 59- A young dragonfly . 96 60. A mayfly • • 97 61. A young mayfly ........ 98 6OE. The relation of the germ cells and body cells 1oo 63. External structure of an insect ..... 64. Leg of a young grasshopper ......... 65. Legs of a honeybee ........... o 66. Head and mouth parts of a grasshopper 67. Internal organs of a grasshopper . 68. Alimentary canal of a grasshopper 69. Heart of an insect ...... 7 o. Respiratory system of a caterpillar 71. The brain of a grasshopper . 7 OE. Nervous system of a grasshopper 73- Reproductive organs of an insect 74- Ovipositor of a katydid 75- Termites ....... 76. Termite work in a piece of wood ...... 77. Worker and soldier castes and young of a termite 78. Heads of termite soldiers ........ 79- Winged caste of a termite ...... 8o. Short-winged reproductive caste of a termite 81. A wingless termite queen ...... 8oE. Termite king and queen 83- Wing of an ordinary termite . 84. Wings of a Mastoterraes ..... 85. Section of an underground termite nest . 86. Four types of termite nests ..... 87. Large termite nest ..... 88. Group of aphids feeding 89. How an aphis feeds .... 9 o. Section of the beak of an aphis 91. Aphis eggs ........ 9 OE. Aphis eggs just belote hatching 93- Young aphis emerging from the egg . 94- Young aphids on apple buds .... 95- Young of three species of apple aphids . 96. Apple leaves infested by green apple aphis . 97- The green apple aphis ....... 98. The rosy apple aphis on apple . 99- The rosy apple aphis on plantain lOO. Maie and female of the rosy apple aphis lol. Some common aphids of the garden . lOoE. A ladybird beetle ...... 1o3. The aphis-lion .... lO4. The golden-eye, Chr.sopa ..... lO 5. Larva of a syrphus fly feeding on aphids lO6. Adult syrphus flies ....... lO 7. A parasitized aphis 1o8. An aphis parasite, z¢phidius ........ lO 9. A female z¢phidius inserting an egg in a living aphis . 11o. Parasitized aphids on parasite cocoons .... 11t. A parasitized lady-beetle larva ...... llZ. A common cicada .......... 1o6 1o8 IO 9 l OEO 128 1.o 133 135 38 141  46 147 149  50 53 154 156 157 158 159 162 163 16ç 6 169  7 ° 173 174 176 176 77 178 178 78 179 8 183 ! 13. Young nymph of the periodical cicada 114. Older nymph of the periodical cicada I 15" Underground cells of the periodical cicada . 116. Fore leg of a cicada nymph .... 117. Cicada turrets ..... 118. Transformation of tbe cicada . 119. Two forms of tbe periodical cicada IoEO. Maie of tbe periodical cicada .... loE!. Tbe bead and beak ofa cicada 1oEoE. Tbe sucking organ of a cicada IoE 3. Section of a cicada's body l oE 4. Sound-making organs of a cicada .... 1oE 5. Egg and newly-batcbed nymph of tbe cicada 1oE6. Young cicada nymph IOE7- Motbs ofthe rail webworm . . loE8. Tbe celery caterpillar and butterfly . 1oE9- Tbe Luna motb ...... 13o. Lire of a cutworm 131. A maybeetle and its grub . 13oE- Lire stages of a lady-beetle 133. Lire stages of a wasp !34. A dragonfly nymph ........ 135. Various habitats of plant-feeding caterpillars 136. External structure of a caterpillar .... 137. Adult and larval forms of beetles 138. Diagram ofinsect metamorphosis 139. Springtails .......... 14o. A bristletail, Therrnobia ...... 141. Tbe relation of a pupa to otber insect forms 147.. Muscle attachment on the body wall 143- Young tent caterpillars ...... !44- Eggs and newly-hatched tent caterpillars 145- First tent of young tent caterpillars . 146. Young tent caterpillars on a sbeet of silk 147. Mature tent caterpillars feeding .... !48. Mature tent caterpillars ...... 149- Twigs denuded by tent caterpillars 15o. A tent caterpillar jumping from a tree 15 l. Co£oon of a tent caterpillar 15 OE. Head of a tent caterpillar .... 153. Jaws ofa tent caterpillar . . 154- Internal organs of a caterpillar 155. Tbe spinning organs of a caterpillar . . 156. Tbe alimentary canal of a tent caterpillar ..... 157. Crystals formed in tbe Malpigbian tubules ..... 158. The fat-body of a caterpillar ......... l 9" Transformation of tbe tent caterpillar ...... 186 187 I88 19o I96 OE36 OE4 I OE48 OE67 OE71 OE73 OE84 OE88 OE94 I60. Contents of the pupal blood I6i. Moths of the tent caterpillar . 169.. Head of a tent caterpillar moth . 163. Head of a peach borer moth .... 164. Transformation of the alimentary canal 165. Reproductive organs of a female moth 166. Young tent caterpillars in the egg 167. A robber fly ....... 168. Wings of insects 169 . The black horsefly . . 17o. Mouth parts of a horsefly . 171. Structure of a fly maggot . 179.. Rat-tailed maggots 173. Larva and pupa of a horsefly . 174. Life stages of a mosquito . 175. Structure of a mosquito larva 176. Mouth parts of a mosquito 177. A maie mosquito 178. Mosquito larvae 179. Mosquito pupae .... 18o. The female malaria mosquito . . . 181. Feeding positions of mosquito lavae 18oE. Life stages of the house fly ...... 183. Head and mouth parts of the house fly . 184. Head of the stable fly ....... 185. A tsetse fly ............ 86. Head and mouth parts of the tsetse fly .... 3o3 3o7 3o8 3o8 31o 319. 313 316 317 33 ° 334 335 337 339 34 ° 341 344 346 347 349 INSECTS THEIR WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING PREFACE IN the early days of zoology there were naturalists who spent much time out of doors observing the ways of the birds, the insects, and the other creatures of the fields and woods. These men were hot steeped in technical learning. Nature was a source of inspiration and a delight to them; ber manifestations were to be taken fi»r granted and hot questioned too closely. A mind able to accept appear- ances for truth can express itself in the words of everyday language--for language was invented long ago when people did hot bother themselves much with facts- and some of those early writers, inspired direct from nature, bave left us a delightful literature based on their observa- tions and reflections on the things of nature. The public has liked to read the works of these men because they tell of interesting things in an interesting way and in words that can be understood. At the saine time there was another class of nature students who did hot care particu]arly what an animal did, but who wanted to know how it was ruade. The devotees of this cuit looked at things through microscopes; they dissected ail kinds of creatures in order to learn their con- struction and their structura] relationships. But they round many t]aings on the inside of animais that had never been named, so for these things they invented names; and when their books were printed the public could hot read them because of the strange words they contained. More- over, since nature does hot usually embellish ber hidden works, the anatomists could hot enhance their writings with descriptive metaphors in the way the outdoor naturalists could. Consequently, the students of struc- ture bave never corne into favor with the reading public, and their works are denounced as dry and tedious. Iii PREFACE Then there arose still another group of inquiring minds. Members of this school could hOt see anything worth while in knowing merely either what an animal did or how it was ruade. They devoted their efforts to discovering the secrets of its workings. They invented instruments for measuring the power of its muscles, for testing the nature of the force that resides in its nerves; they ruade analyses of its food and its tissues; they devised ail kinds of experi- ments for revealing the causes of its behavior. The work- ers in this branch, the physiologists, had to have a con- siderable grounding in physics ànd chemistry; conse- quently they came to write more or less in the languages of those sciences and to express themselves in chemicai and mathematical formulae. Their writings are hard for the public to understand. Their statements, moreover, are often at odds with preconceivedideas, since precon- ceived ideas are conceived in ignorance, and the public at large does hot take to this sort of thing--it cherishes above ail its inherited opinions. Therefore the old-time naturalist is still venerated, as he deserves to be, and those who call themselves "nature loyers" stili like to decry the iaboratory worker as an evil being who would take the beauty from nature and destroy the soul of man. A modern writer of the old schooi may sell his wares, but when something goes wrong with his stomach or his nerves, or when his plants or his animais are attacked by disease, itis the knowledge of the labora- torv scientist that cornes to his aid. "J'he reason that the specific truths of nature must be round out in laboratories is that there are too many things mixed together in the fields. The laboratory naturalist endeavors to untangle the confusion of elements in the outdoor environment and to isolate the different factors that affect the lire and behavior of an animal, in order that he may be sure with just what he is dealing in his ef- forts to determine the value of each one separately. By creating a set of artificial environments in each of which Iii] PREFACE only one natural factor is allowed to be operative at the saine time, he is in a position to observe correctly, after repeated experiments, just what effects proceed from this cause and what from that. Nature study, in the superficial sense, may be enter- taining. We of the present age, however, must learn to take a deeper insight into the lires of the other living things about us. Insects, for example, are not curiosities; they are creatures in common with ourselves bound by the laws of the physical universe, which laws decree that everything alive must live by observing the saine ele- mental principles that make lire possible. |t is only in the ways and means by which we comply with the condi- tions laid down by physical nature that we differ. Many sincere people find it diflcult to believe in evolu- tion. Their difficulty arises largely from the fact that they look to the differences in structure between the diverse types of living things and do not see the unity in function that underlies ail physical forms of lire. Conse- quently they do not understand that evolution means the progressive structural divergence of the various lire forms from one another, resulting from the different ways that each has adopted and perfected for accomplishing the saine ends. Man and the insects represent the extremi- ties of two most divergent lines of animal evolution, and by reason of the very disparity in structure between us the bond of unity in function becomes ail the more apparent. A study of insects, therefore, will help us the better to understand ourselves in so far as it helps us to grasp the fundamental principles of lire. Some writers seem to think that the sole purpose of writing is that it shall be read. Just as reasonable would it be to claire that the only purpose of food is that it shall be eaten. In the following chapters the reader is offered an entomological menu in which the consider- ation of nutrient value and the requirements of a balanced meal have been given first attention. As a concession to [iii l PREFACE palatability, however, as much as possible of the dis- tastefil matter of technical terminology bas been ex- tracted, and an attempt bas been ruade to avoid the pure scientific style of literary cuisine, which forbids the use of ail those ingredients whose object is that of inflation but which, if properly admixed, will greatly aid in the process of digestion. Much of the material in several chapters is taken from articles already printed in the ltnnttal Reports of the Smithsonian Institution. The original drawings of most of the color plates and line cuts are the property of the United States Bureau of Entomology, though some of them are here published for the first time. R. E. S. [ivl INSECTS THEIR WAYS AND MEANS OF I.IVING CHAPTER I THE GRASSHOPPER SOMETIIVlE in spring, earlier or later according to the lati- tude or the season, the fields, the lawns, the gardens, sud- denly are teeming with young grasshoppers. Comical little fellows are they, with big heads, no wings, and strong hind legs (Fig. J. Thev feed on the fresh herbage and hop lightly here and there, as if their existence in no way in- volved the mystery of lire nor raised any questions as to why they are here, how they came to be here, and whence they came. Of these questions, the last is the only one to which at present we can give a definite answer. If we should search the ground closely at this season, it might be possible to see that the infant and apparently motherless grasshoppers are delivered into the visible world from the earth itself. D,'ith this information, a nature student of ancient times would have been satisfied --grasshoppers, he would then announce, are bred spon- taneously from marrer in the earth; the public would believe him, and thereafter would countenance no con- trary opinion. There came a rime in history, however, when some naturalist succeeded in overthrowing this idea and established in its place the dictum that every life cornes from an egg. This being still our creed, we must look for the grasshopper's egg. [i] INSECTS The entomologist who plans to investigate the lives of grasshoppers finds it easier to begin his studies the year belote; instead of sifting the earth to find the eggs from which the young insects are hatched in the swing, he ob- serves the mature insects in the rail and secures a supply of eggs freshly laid bv the females, either in the field or in cages properly equiiped for them. In the laboratory then Fro. . Young grasshoppers he can closely watch the hatching and observe with ac- curacy the details of the emergence. So, let us reverse the calendar and take note of what the mature grasshoppers of last season's crop are doing in August and September. First, however, itis necessary to know just what insect is a grasshopper, or what insect we designate by the naine; for, unfortunately, names do hot always signify the saine thing in different countries, nor is the saine naine always applied to the saine thing in different parts of the saine country. It happens to be thus with the terre "grass- hopper." In most other countries they call grasshoppers "locusts," or rather, the truth is that we in the United States call locusts "grasshoppers," for we must, of course, concede priority to Old World usage. When you read of a "plague of locusts," therefore, you must understand "grasshoppers." But a swarm of"seventeen-year locusts" means quite another insect, neither locust nor grasshopper --correctly, a cicada. Ail this mix-up of names and mal.ay other misfits in out popular natural history parlance we THE GRASSHOPPER can blame probably on the earlv settlers ofour States, who bestowed upon the creatures encountered in the New World the names of animals familiar at home; but, having no zoologists along for their guidance, thev ruade many errors of identification. Scientists have sought to estab- lish a better state of nomenclatural affairs by creating a set of international names for all living things, but since their names are in I.atin, or I.atinized Greek, thev are seldom practicable for everyday purposes. Knowing now that a grasshopper is a locust, it onlv needs to be said that a true locust is any grasshopperlike insect with short horns, or antelnae (see b'ron- tispiece). A similar in- sect with long slender antennae s either a katydid (Figs. 23, 24), or a member of the cricket family (Fig. 39)- If you will collect and examine a few specimens of locusts, which we will proceed to call grass- hoppers, vou may ob- serve that some bave _'eov P B I;J;. 2. The end of the bod y of a maie and a female grasshopper "]'he body, or abdomen, of a maie (AI is bluntly rounded; that of the fernale (1 bears two pairs of thick prongs, which constitute the egg-lasing organ, or ovi- posltor the rear end of the body smoothly rounded and that others have the body ending in four horny prongs. The second kind are females IFig. 2 B); the others (A) are males and may be disregarded for the present. It is one of the pro- visions of nature that whatever any creature is compelled by its instinct to do, for the doing of that thing it is pro- vided with appropriate tools. Its tools, however, unless INSECTS it is a human animal, are alwavs parts of its body, or of its jaws or its legs. The set of prongs at the end of the body of the female grasshopper constitutes a digging tool, an instrument by means of which the insect makes a hole in the ground wherein she deposits ber eggs. Entomologists call the organ an o'ipositor, or egg-placer. Figure 2 B F1c. 3- .'i le)hale grasshopper in the position of depositing a pod of eggs in a hole in the ground dug with ber ovipositor. (Drawn from a photograph in" U. S. But. Ent.) shows the general form of a grasshopper's ovipositor; the prongs are short and thick, the points of the upper pair are curved upward, those of the lower bent downward. When the female grasshopper is ready to deposit a batch of eggs, she selects a suitable spot, which is almost any place in an open sunny field where ber ovipositor can penetrate the soil, and there she inserts the tip of ber organ with the prongs tightly closed. When the latter are well withit the ground, they are probably spread apart so as to compress the earth outward, for the dri]]ing [41 THE GRASSHOPPER process brings no detritus to the surface, and gradually the end of the insect's body sinks deeper and deeper, until a considerable length of it is buried in the ground (Fig. 3)- Now ail is ready for the discharge of the eggs. The exit duct from the tubes of the ovary, which are filled with eggs already ripe, opens just below and between the bases of the lower prongs of the ovipositor, so that, when the upper and lower prongs are separated, the eggs escape from the passage between them. While the eggs are being placed in the bottom of the well, a frothv gluelike substance from the body of the insect is discharged over them. This sub- stance hardens about the eggs as it dries, but not in a solid mass, for its frothv nature leaves it full fil cavities, like a sponge, and affords the eggs, and the young grasshoppers when they hatch, an abundance of space for air. To the outside of the covering substance, while it is ffesh and sticky, particles of earth adhere and make a finely granular coating Fc. 4- Egg pods of a grasshopper, show- ing various shapes: one opened exposing the eggs within. (Much enlarged) over the mass, which, when hardened, looks like a small pod or capsule that has been molded into the shape of the cavity containing it (Fig. 4)- The number of eggs within each pod varies greatly, some pods coritaining only hall a dozen eggs, and others as many as one hundred and fifty. Each female also deposits several batches of eggs, each lot in a separate burrow and pod, before ber egg supply is exhausted. Some species arrange the eggs regularly in the pods, while others cram them in hap- hazard. INSECTS The egg of a grasshopper is elongate-oval in shape I Fig. 5), those of ordinary-sized grasshoppers being about rhree-sixteenths of an inch in lengrh, or a little longer. The ends of the  eggs are rounded or bluntly pointed, and the Iower extremity (the egg being generally placed on end) appears to have a small cap over it. One side of the egg is always more J .... curved than the IFm. ç. Eggsofagrasshopper;onesplitattheupper opposite side, end, howing the young grasshopper about to emerge which may be al- most straight. The surface is smooth and lustrous to the naked eye, but under the microscope it is seen to be marked off by slightly raised lines into many small polygonal areas. Within each egg is the germ that is to produce a new grasshopper. This germ, the living matter of the egg, is but a minute fraction of the entire egg contents, for the bulk of the latter consists of a nutrient substance, called yolk, the purpose of which is to nourish the embryo as it develops. The tiny germ contains in some form, that even the strongest microscope will hot reveal, the properties which will determine every detail of structure in the future grasshopper, except such as may be caused by external cir- cumstances. It would be highly interesting to follow the course of the development of the embryo insect within the egg, and most of the important facts about it are known; but the story would be entirelv too long to be given here, though a few things about the grasshopper's development should be noted. [61 THE GRASSHOPPER The egg germ begins its development as soon as the eggs are laid in the fall. In temperate or northern latitudes, however, low temperatures soon intervene, and develop- ment is thereby checked until the return of warmth in the spring--or until some entomologist takes the eggs into an artificially heated laboratory. The eggs ofsome species of grasshoppers, if brought indoors before the advent of freezing weather and kept in a warm place, will proceed with their development, and young grasshoppers will emerge from them in about six weeks. On the other hand, the eggs of certain species, when thus treated, will hot hatch at ail; the embryos within them reach a certain stage of development and there they stop, and most of them never will resume their growth unless they are sub- jected to a freezing temperature! But, after a thorough chilling, the young grasshoppers will corne out, even in January, if the eggs are then transferred to a warm place. To refuse to complete its development until frozen and then warmed seems like a preposterous bit of inconsistency on the part of an insect embryo; but the embryos ofmany kinds of insects besides the grasshopper bave this saine habit from which they will hot depart, and so we must con- clude that itis hot a whim but a useful physiological prop- erty with which they are endowed. The special deity of nature delegated to look after living creatures knows well that Boreas sometimes oversleeps and that an egg laid in the fall, if it depended entirely on warmth for its develop- ment, might hatch that saine season if mild weather should continue. And then, what chance would the poor fledgling have when a delayed winter cornes upon it? None at ail, of course, and the whole scheme for perpetuation of the species would be tlpset. But, if it is so arranged.that development within the egg can reach completion only after the chilling effect of freezing weather, the emergence of the young insect will be deferred until the return of warmth in the spring, and thus the species will bave a guarantee that its members will hot be cut down by unsea- [71 INSECTS sonable hatching. There are, however, species hOt thus in- sured, and these do sufier losses from rail hatching every time winter makes a late arrival. Eggs laid in the spring are designed to hatch the saine season, and the eggs of species that lire in warm climates never require freezing for their development. The tough shell of the grasshopper's  egg is composed of two distinct coats, an outer, thicker, opaque one of a pale brown color, and an inner one which is thin and transparent. Just before hatch-  ing, the outer coat splits open in an ir- regular break over the upper end of the egg, and usually half or two-thirds of the way down the fiat side. This outer coat can easily be removed artificially, and  the inner coat then appears as a glisten- , ing capsule, through the semitransparent walls of which the little grasshopper in- side can be seen, its members all tightly folded beneath its body. When the hatching takes place normally, however, both layers of the eggshell are split, and v,,. 6. Vou,g grss- the young grasshopper emerges by slowly hopper emerging from its eggshell making its way out of the cleft (Fig. 6). Newly-hatched grasshoppers that have corne out of eggs which some meddlesome investigator has removed from their pods for observation very soon proceed to shed an outer skin from their bodies. This skin, which is already loosened at the rime of hatching, appears now as a rather tightly fitting garment that cramps the sort legs and feet ofthe delicate creature within it. The latter, however, after a few forward heaves of the body, accompanied by expansions of two swellings on the back of the neck (Fig. 6), succeeds in splitting the skin over the neck and the back of the head, and the pellicle then rapidly shrinks and slides down over the body. The insect, thus first exposed, [81 THE GRASSHOPPER liberates itself frorn the shriveled rernnant of its hatching skin, and becornes a free new creature in the world. Being a grasshopper, it proceeds to jurnp, and with its first ef- forts clears a distance of four or rive inches, sornething like fifteen or twenty tirnes the length of its own body. When the young locusts hatch under normal undisturbed conditions, however, we rnust picture them as coming out of the eggs into the cavernous spaces of the egg pod, and ail buried in the earth. They are by no rneans yet free creatures, and they can gain their liberty only by burrow- ing upward until they corne out at the surface of the ground. Of course, they are hot very far beneath the sur- face, and rnost of the way will be through the easily pene- trated walls of the cells of the egg covering. But above the latter is a thin layer of soli which rnay be hard-packed after the winter's rains, and breaking through this layer can hot ordinarily be an easy task. Not many entomolo- gists have closely watched the newly-hatched grasshopper ernerge from the earth, but Fabre has studied thern under artificial conditions, covered with soli in a glass tube. He relis of the arduous efforts the tiny creatures rnake, press- ing their delicate bodies upward through the earth by rneans of their straightened hind legs, while the vesicles on the back of the neck alternately contract and expand to widen the passage above. Ail this, Fabre says, is done before the hatching skin is shed, and it is only after the surface is reached and the insect has attained the ffeedom of the upper world that the inclosing membrane is cast off and the limbs are unencurnbered. The things that insects do and the ways in which they do thern are always interesting as mere facts, but how much wiser might we be if we could discover why they do them! Consider the young locust buried in the earth, for example, scarcely yet more than an embryo. How does it know that it is hot destined to live here in this dark cavitv in which it first finds itself? What force activates the mech- anism that propels it through the earth? And finally, I9] INSECTS  7 what tells the creature that liberty is to be found above, and hOt horizontally or downward? Many people believe that these questions are hOt to be answered by human knowledge, but the scientist has faith in the ultimate solu- tion of ail problems, at least in terres of the elemental forces that control the activities of the universe. We know that ail the activities of animais depend upon the nervous system, within which a form of energy resides that is delicately responsive to external influences. Any kind of energy harnessed to a physical mechanism will produce results depending on the con- struction of the mechanism. So the ef- fects of the nerve force within a living animal are determined by the physical structure of the animal. An instinctive action, then, is the expression of nerve energy working in a particular kind of machine. It would involve a digression too long to explain here the modern con- ception of the nature of instinct; it is sufficient to say that something in the surroundings encountered by the newly- hatched grasshopper, or some substance generated within it, sers its nerve energy into action, that the nerve energy work- ing on a definite mechanism produces the motions of the insect, and that the mechanism is of such a nature that it FI6. 7- Eggs of a pecies of katydid at- works against the pull ofgravity. Hence tached to a twig; the the creature, if normal and healthy in ail young insect in suc- cessivestagesofernerg- respects, and if the obstacles are hOt too ing from an egg; and great, arrives at the surface of the ground the newly-hatched young as inevitably as a submerged cork cornes to the surface of the water. Some readers will object that an idea like this destroys the romance of lire, but whoever wants romance must go to the fiction writers; and even romance is hot good fiction [ THE GRASSHOPPER unless it represents an effort to portray some truth. lnsects hatched from eggs laid in the open may begin life under conditions a little easier than those imposed upon the young grasshopper. Here, for example (Fig. 7), are some eggs of insects belonging to the katydid family. They look like fiat oval seeds stuck in overlapping rows, some on a twig, others along the edge of a leaf. When about to hatch, each egg splits halfway down one edge and crosswise on the exposed fiat surface, allowing a flap to open on thls side, which gives an easy exit to the young insect about to emerge. The latter is inclosed in a delicate transparent sheath, within which its long legs and an- tennae are closely doubled up beneath the body; but when the egg breaks open, the sheath splits also, and as the young insect emerges it sheds the skin and leaves it within the shell. The new creature bas nothing to do now but to stretch its long legs, upon which it walks away, and, if given suitable food, it will soon be contentedly feeding. l.et us now take closer notice of the little grasshoppers (Fig. 8) that have just corne into the great world from the dark subterranean chambers of their egg-pods. Such an inordinatelv large head surely, you would say, must over- balance the short tapering body, though supported on three pairs of legs. But, whatever the proportions, nature's works never have the appearance of being out of drawing; because of some law of recompense, they never give you the uneasy feeling of an error in construction. In spite of its enormous head, the grasshopper infant is an agile crea- ture. lts six legs are ail attached to the part of the bodv immediately behind the head, which is known as the thorax (Fig. 63, Th), and the rest of the body, called the abdomen (,lb), projects free without support. .n insect, according to its name, is a creature divided into parts, "insect" means ïn-cut." A fly or a wasp, therefore, cornes closer to being the ideal insect; but, while l,ot literally in- sectcd between the thorax and abdomen, the grasshopper, like the tir and the wasp and ail othcr insects, consists of a [ll] INSECTS head, a thorax bearing the legs, and a terminal abdomen (Fig. 63). On the head is located a pair of long, slender antennae (Int) and a pair of large eyes (E). Winged in- sects bave usually two pairs of wings attached to the back of the thorax (II, II). The outside of the insect's body, instead of presenting a continuous surface like that of most animais, shows many encircling rings where the hard integument appears to be infolded, as it really is, dividing each body region except the head into a series of short overlapping sections. These body sections are called Fç. 8. A young grasshopper, or nymph, in the second stage after hatching segments, and ail insects and their relatives, in- cluding the centipedes, the shrimps, lobsters, and crabs, and the scorpions and spiders, are seg- mented animais. Thein- sect's thorax consists of three segments, the first of which carries the first pair of legs, the second the middle pair of legs, and the third the hind pair of legs. The abdomen usually consists of ten or eleven segments, but generally has no appendages, except a pair of small peglike organs at the end known as the cerci, and, in the adult female, the prongs of the ovipositor (Fig. 2 .B), which belong to the eighth and ninth segments. The head, besides carrying the antennae (Fig. 63,/lnt), has three pairs of appendages grouped about the mouth, which serve as feeding organs and are known collectively as the mouth parts. The presence of four pairs of append- ages on the head raises the question, then, as to why the head is hot segmented like the thorax and the abdomen. At an early stage of embryonic growth the head is seg- mented, and each pair of its appendages is borne by a single segment, but the head segments are later condensed [2] THE GRASSHOPPER into the solid capsule of the cranium. Thus we see that the entire body of an insect is composed of a series of seg- ments which have become grouped into the three body regions. Note that the insect does hot have a "nose" or any breathing apertures on its head. It has, however, many nostrils, called spirades (Fig. 7 o, Sp), distributed along each side of the thorax and the abdomen, lts breathing system is quite different from ours, but will be described in another chapter treating of the internal organization (page  4)- Most young insects grow rapidly be- cause they must compress their entire lives within the limits of a single season. Generally a few weeks suffice for them to reach maturity, or at least the ma- ture growth of the form in which they leave the egg, for, as we shall see, many in- sects complicate their lires by having several different stages, in each of which they present quite a dif- ferent form. The grass- hopper, however, is an in- sect that grows by a direct course from its form at hatch- ing to that of the adult, and at ail stages it is recog- nizable as a grass- hopper (Fig. 9)- A young moth, on the other hand, hatching in the FIG. 9- The metamorphosis of a grasshopper, Melanoplus atlanus, showing its six stages of develop- ment from the newly-hatched nymph to the fully- winged adult. (Twice natural size) INSECTS form of a caterpillar, bas no resemblance toits parent, and the saine is true of a young fly, which is a maggot, and of the grublike young of a bee. The changes of form that insects undergo during their growth are known as meta- rnorphosis. There are different degrees of such trans- formation; the grasshopper and its relatives bave a simple metamorphosis. An insect differs from a vertebrate animal in that its muscles are attached to its skin. Most species of insects bave the skin hardened by the formation of a strong out- side c««tic««la to give a firm support to the muscles and to reslst their pull. This function of the cuticula, however, imposes a condition of permanency on it after it is once formed. As a consequence the growing insect is con- fronted with the alternatives, after reaching a certain size, of being cramped to death within its own skin, or of discarding the old covering and getting a new and larger one. It bas adopted the course of expedlency, and peri- odically molts. Thus it cornes about that the lire of an insect progresses by stages separated by the molts, or the shedding of the cuticula. The grasshopper makes six molts between the time of hatching and its attainment of the final adult form, a period of about six weeks, and goes through six post- embryonic stages (Fig. 9)- The first molt is the shedding of the embryonic skin, which, we have seen, takes place normally as soon as the young insect emerges from the earth. The grasshopper now lires uneventfully for about a week, feeding by preference on young clover leaves, but taking almost any green thing at hand. During this time its abdomen lengthens by the extension of the membranes between its segments, but the hard parts of the body do hot change either in slze or in shape. At the end ofseven «r eight days, the insect ceases its activities and remains quiet for a while until the cuticula opens in a lengthwise sp[it over the back of the thorax and on the top of the hcad. "l'he dead skin is then cast off, or rather, the grass- THE GRASSHOPPER hopper emerges from it, carefully pulling its legs and an- tennae from their containing sheaths. The whole process consumes only a few minutes. The emerged grasshopper is now entering its third stage after hatching, but the shed- ding of the hatching skin is usually not counted in the series of molts, and the first subsequent molt, then, we will say, ushers it into its second stage of aboveground life. In this state the insect is different in some respects from what it was in the first stage: it is hOt onlv larger, but the body is longer in proportion to the size of'the head, as are also the antennae, and particularly the hind legs. Again the insect becomes active and pursues its routine life for another week; then it undergoes a second molting, ac- companied by changes in form and proportions that make it a little more like a mature grasshopper. After shedding its cuticula on three succeeding occasions, it appears in the adult form, which it will retain throughout the remainder of its life. The grasshopper developed its legs, its antennae, and most of its other organs while it was in the egg. It was hatched, however, without wings, and yet, as everyone knows, most full-grown grasshoppers have two pairs of wings (Fig. 63, kk',/4/'3), one pair attached to the back of the middle segment of the thorax, the other to the third segment. It has acquired its wings, therefore, during its growth from youth to maturity, and by examining the msect in its different stages (Fig. 9), we may learn some- thing of how the wings are developed. In the first stage, evidence of the coming wings is scarcely apparent, but in the second, the lower hind angles of the plates covering the back of the second and third thoracic segments are a little enlarged and project very slightly as a pair of lobes. In the third stage, the lobes have increased in size and may now be suspected of being rudiments of the wings, which, indeed, they are. At the next molt, when the insect enters its fourth stage, the little wing pads are turned upward and laid over the back, which disposition hot only I N S ECTS reverses the natural position of the wings, but brings the hind pair outside the front pair. At the next molt, the wings retain their reversed positions, but they are once more increased in size, though they still remain far short of the dimensions of the wings of an adult grasshopper. At the time of the last molt, the grasshopper takes a position with its head downward on some stem or twig, which it grasps securely with the claws of its feet. Then, when its cuticula splits, it crawls downward out of the skin. Once free, however, it reverses its position, and the wisdom of this act is seen on observing the rapidly expand- ing and lengthening wings, which can now bang down- ward and spread out freely without danger of crumpling. In a quarter of an hour the wings have enlarged from small, insignificant pads to long, rhin, membranous fans that reach to the tip of the body. This rapid growth is ex- plained by the fact that the wings are hollow sacs; their visible increase in size is a mere distention of their wrinkled walls, for they were fully formed beneath the old cuticula and lay there before the molt as little crumpled wads, which, when released by the removal of the cases that cramped them, rapidly spread out to their full dimensions. "Fheir rhin, soft walls then corne together, dry, and harden, and the limp, flabby bags are converted into organs of flight. |t is important to understand the process of molting as it takes place in the grasshopper, because the processes of metamorphosis, such as those which accomplish the trans- formation of a caterpillar into a butterfly, differ only in degree from those that accompany the shedding of the skin between any two stages of the grasshopper's life. The principal growth of the insect is ruade during those resting periods preceding the molts. It is then that the various parts enlarge and make whatever alterations in shape they are to bave. "l'he old cuticula is already loosened and the changes go on beneath it, while at the saine time a new cuticula is generated over the remodeled surfaces. The l'61 THE GRASSHOPPER increased size of the antennae, legs, and wings causes them to be compressed in the narrow space between the new and the old cuticula, and, when the latter is cast off, the crumpled appendages expand to their full size. The ob- server then gets the impression that he is witnessing a sud- den transformation. The impression, however, is a false one; what is really going on is comparable with the display of new dresses and coats that the merchant puts into his show windows at the proper season for their use, which he has just unpacked from their cases but which were pro- duced in the factories long before. The adult grasshoppers lead prosaic lires, but, like a great many good people, they fill the places allotted to them in the world, and see toit that there will be other occupants of their own kind for these saine places when they themselves are forced to vacate. If they seldom tir high, it is because it is hot the nature of locusts to do so; and if, in the East, one does sometimes soar above his fellows, he accomplishes nothing, unless he happens to land on the upper regions of a Manhattan skyscraper, when he may attain the glory of a newspaper mention of his exploit--most likely, though, with his naine spelled wrong. On the other hand, like ali common folk born to ob- scurity and enduring impotency as individuals, the grass- hopper in masses of his kind becomes a formidable creature. Plagues of locusts are of historic renown in countries south of the Mediterranean, and even in out own country hordes of grasshoppers known as the Rocky Mountain locust did such damage atone time in the States of the Middle West that the government sent out a commission of entomolo- gists to investigate them. This was in the years following the Civil V'ar, when, for some reason, the iocusts that normaily inhabited the Northwest, east of the Rocky Mountains, became dissatisfied with their usual breeding grounds and migrated in great swarms into the States of the Mississippi valley, where they brought destruction to [7] INSECTS ail kinds of crops wherever they chanced to alight. In the new localities thev. would lay their eggs, and the young of the next season, after acquiring their wings, would rnigrate back toward the region whence the parent swarrn had corne the year belote. The entornologists of the investigating commission in the vear 877 tell us that on a favorable day the rnigrating locu'ts "rise early in the forenoon, frorn eight to ten o'clock, and settle down to eat frorn four to rive in the afternoon. The rate at which they travel is variously estirnated frorn three to fifteen or twenty mlles an hour, deterrnined by the velocity of the wind. Thus, insects which began to fly in Montana by the middle of July may hot reach lklissouri until August or early September, a period of about six weeks elapsing before they reach their destined breeding grounds." The appearance of a swarrn in the air was described as being like that of "a vast body cf t']eecy clouds," or a "cloud of snowflakes," the rnass of flying insects "often having a depth that reaches frorn cornparatively near the ground to a height that baffles rhe keenest eye to distinguish the insects in the upper stratum." It was estirnated that the locusts could fly at an elevation of two and a hall rniles from the general surface of the ground, or 5,ooo feet above sea level. The descending swarrn falls upon the country "like a plague or a blight," said one of the entornologists of the com- mission, Dr. C. V. Riley, who bas left us the following graphic picture of the circumstances: The fariner plows and plants. He cultivates in hope, watching his growing grain in graceful, wave-like motion wafted to and fro by the warm summer winds. The green begins to golden; the harvest is at hand. Joy lightens his labor as the fruit of past toil is about to be realized. The day breaks with a smiling sun that sends his ripening rays through laden orchards and-promising fields. Kine and stock of every sort are sleek with plenty, and ail the earth seems glad. The day grows. Suddenlv the sun's'face is darkened, and clouds obscure the skv. The joy o(the morn gives way to ominous fear. The day closes, and ravenous Iocust-swarms have fallen upon the land. The [18] THE GRASSH(}PPER morrow cornes, and, ah! what a change it brings! The fertile land of promise and plenty bas hecome a desolate waste, and old Sol, even at his hrightest, shines sadlv through an atm«»sphere alive with mvriads «]f glittering insects. Even today the farmers of the Middle Western States are often hard put toit to harvest crops, especially alfalfa and grasses, from fields that are teeming with hungry grasshoppers. Bv two means, principally, they seek relief from the devouring hordes. One method is that of driv- ing across the fields a device known as a "hopperdozer," which collects the insects bodily and destroys them. The dozer consists essentially of a long shallow pan, twelve or fifteen feet in length, set on low runners and provided with a high back ruade either of metal or of cloth stretched over a wooden frame. The pan contains water with a rhin film of kerosene «»ver it. As the dozer is driven over the field, great numbers of the grasshoppers that fly up before it either land directlv in the pan or fall into it after striking the back, and the k-erosene film on the water does the test, for kerosene even in very small quantity is fatal to the insects. In this manner, many bushels of dead locusts are taken often from each acre of an al/alfa field; but still great num|}ers of them escape, and the dozer naturally can hot be used on rough or uneven ground, in pastures, or in fields with standing crops. A more generally effec- tive method of killing the pests is that of poisoning them. A mixture is prepared of bran, arsenic, cheap molasses, and water, suPficient]v moist to adhere in small ]umps, with usually some substance added which is supposed to make the "mash" more attractive to the insects. The deadlv bait is then finelv broadcast over the infested fields. While such methods of destruction are effective, thev bear the crude and c(}mmonplac¢ stamp (}f human wavs. See how the thing is done when insect contends agai:st insect. A fly, hot an ordinarv fly, but one known to entomologists as A'arcoph«,a ('«/lvi I I;ig. o), being n:tmed after l}r. E. {I. G. Kclly,vho has given us a INSECTS description of its habits, frequents the fields in Kansas where grasshoppers are abundant. Individuals of this fly, according to Doctor Keily's account, are often seen to dart af ter grass- FIG. IO. A fly whose larvae are parasitic on grass- hoppers, 8arcopaga kellyi. (Much enlarged) hoppers on the wing and strike against them. The stricken in- sect at once drops to the ground. Examination re- veals no physical injury to the vic- tire, but on a dose inspection there may be round ad- hering to the tln- der gurface of a wing severai tiny, sofi, white bodies. Poison piiis? Pellets of infection? Nothing so ordinary. The things are alive, they creep along the foids of the wing toward its base- they are, in short, young files born at the instant the body of the mother fly struck the wing of the grass- hopper. But a young fly wouid never be recognized as the offspring ofits parent; it is a wormlike creature, or maggot, having neither wings nor legs and capable of moving only by extending and contracting its sort, flexible body (Fig.  g'_ D). In form, the young Sarcophaga kellvi does hot differ par- ticu]ar]y from the maggots ofother kinds of flies, but the .qarcophaga flies in general differ from most other insects in that their eggs are hatched within the bodies of the females, and these flies, therefore, give birth to young maggots instead of iaying eggs. The female of Sarcophaga kell),i, then, when she ]aunches ber attack on the flying grasshopper, is munitioned with a ]oad of young maggots readv to be discharged and stuck by the moisture of their [ 20] THE GRASSHOPPER bodies to the object of contact. The young parasites thus palmed off by their mother on the grasshopper, who has no idea what has happened to him, make their way to the base of the wing of their unwitting host, where thev find a ten- der membranous area which thev penetrate and thereby enter the body of the victim. 12lere they feed upon the liquids or tissues of the now helpless insect and grow to maturity in from ten to thirty days. Meanwhile, how- ever, the grasshopper bas died; and when the parasites are full grown, they leave the dead bodv and burv themselves in the earth to a depth of from two to six inches. Here they undergo the transformation that will give them the form of their parents, and when thev attain this stage they issue from the earth as adult winged files. Thus, one insect is destroved that another may lire. ls the .'arcophaga kellvi a creature of uncanny shrewd- ness, an ingenious inventor of a novel way for avoiding the work of caring for ber offspring? Certainly her method is an improvement on that of leaving one's newborn prog- eny on a stranger's doorstep, for the victim of the flv must accept the responsibility thrust upon him whether "he will or hot. But Doctor Kelly tells us that the flies do hot know grasshoppers from other flying insects, such as moths and butterflies, in which their maggots do hot find congenial hosts and never reach maturity. Furthermore, he says, the ardent tir mothers will go after pieces of crumpled paper thrown into the wind and will discharge their maggots upon them, to which the helpless in fan ts cling without hope of survival. Such performances, and many similar ones that could be recounted of other insects, show that instinct is indeed blind and depends, hot upon fore- sight, but on some mechanical action of the nervous sys- rem, which gives the desired result in the majority of cases but which is hot guarded against unusual conditions or emergencies. When we consider the manv perfected instincts among insects, we are often shocked to find apparent cases of [21] INSECTS flagrant neglect on the part of nature for her creatures, where it would seem a remedy for their ills would be easy to supply. In human society of modern rimes the criminal element bas corne to look no different from the law-abiding class of citizens. Formerly, if we may judge from pictures and stage representations, thieves and thugs were tough-look- ing individuals that could hot be mistaken on sight, but A Ftt.. h Two blister beetles whose larvae feed on grasshopper eggs. (Twice natural size) A, Epicauta marginata. B, Eplauta :'ittata today our bandits are spruce young tllows that pass with- out suspicion in the crowd. And thus it is with the in- sects, ail unsuspectingly one may be rubbing elbows with another that overnight will despoil his home, or that bas already committed some act of violence against his neigh- bot. Here, for example, in the saine field with the grass- hoppers, is ara innocent-looking beetle, about three- quarters of an inch in length, black and striped with yellow (Fig. Il B). His entomological naine is Epicauta ,ittata, which, of course, means nothing to a locust. He is now a vegetarian, but in his younger days he ravished the nest of a grasshopper and devoured the eggs, and his progeny will do the same again. Epicauta and others of his family THE GRASSHOPPER are known as "blister beetles" because they have a sub- stance in their blood, called cantharidin, famous for its blistering properties and formerly much used in medicine. The female blister beetles of several species lay their eggs in the ground in regions frequented by grasshoppers, where the young on hatching can find the egg-pods of the latter. The little beetles (Fig. 1_) hatch in a form quite different from that of their parents and are known as triungulins hecause of two spines beside the single claw on each of their feet, which gives the foot a three-clawed appearance. Though the young scapegrace of a beetle is a housebreaker and a thief, his story, like that of too many criminals, unfortunately, makes interesting read- ing, and the following account is taken, with a few omissions, from the history of Epicauta vittata as given bv Dr. C. V. Riley: From July till the middle of October the eggs are being laid in the ground in loose, irreg- ular masses of about 3 o on an average--the female excavating a hole for the purpose, and afterwards covering up the mass by scratching with ber feet. She lays at several different intervals, producing in the aggregate probably from four to rive hundred ova. She prefers for purposes of oviposition the very saine warm sunny locations chosen by the locusts, and doubtless instinctively places ner eggs near those of these last, as I bave on several occa- Fw,. I. The first- sions round them in close proximity. In the stage larva, or °°triun- gulin,'" of the strlped course of abo'ut fo days--more 6r less accord- blister beetle ¢fig.  ing to the temperature of the grotlnd--the BI. Enlarged ltimes. first larva or triungulin hatches. These little (From Riley) triungulins (Fig. ioE), at first feeble ara| per- fectly white, soon assume their natt.ral light-br«»wn culor and commence to more ahout. At night, or during cold or wct weather, ail tll«»Se of a batch huddle together with littlc motion, but when warnlcd bv the sun they become very active, running with thcir hmg legs over thc ground, and prying with their large heads and strong jaws into everv crease and crevice in the soli, into which, in dut. time, thcy hurrow [231 INSECTS and hide. As becomes a carnivorous creature whose prey must be industriously sought, they display great powers of endurance, and will survive for a fortnight without food in a moderate temperature. Yet in the search for locust eggs many are, without doubt, doomed to perish, and only the more fortunate succeed in finding appropriate diet. Reaching a locust egg-pod, out triungulin, by chance, or instinct, or both combined, commences to burrow through the mucous neck, or covering, and makes its first repast thereon. If it bas been long in search, and its jaws are well hardened, it makes quick work through this porous and :ellular marrer, and at once gnaws away at an egg, first devouring a portion of the shell, and then, in the course of two or three days, sucking up the contents. Should two or more triun- gulins enter the saine egg-pod, a deadly conflict sooner or later ensues until one alone remains the victorious possessor. The surviving triungulin then attacks a second egg and more or ]ess comp]ete]y exhausts its contents, when, after about eight days from the time of its hatching, it ceases from its feeding and enters a period of rest. Soon the skin splits along the back, and the creature issues in the second stage of its existence. Very curiously, it is now quite different in appearance, being white and soft-bodied and having much shorter legs than before (Fig. 13). After feeding again on the eggs for about a week, the creature molrs a second time and appears in a still different form. Then once more, and yet a fourth time, it sheds its skin and changes its form. Just before the fourth molt, however, it quits the eggs FI. 3- The second- s,g h.-,., o« ,h¢ and burrows a short distance into the striped blister beetle, soli, where it composes itself for a (Frorn Riley) period of retirement, and here undergoes another mo]t, in which the skin is hot cast off. Thus the half-grown insect passes the winter, and in spring molts a sixth time and becomes active again, but hot for long- its larval lire is now about to close, and with anoher molt [4] THE GRASSHOPPER it changes to a pupa, the stage in which it is to be trans- formed back into the form of its beetle parents. The final change is accomplished in less than a week, and the creature then emerges from the soli, now a fully-formed striped blister beetle. The grasshoppers' eggs furnish food for many other insects besides the young blister beetles. There are species of flies and of small wasplike insects whose larvae feed in the egg-pods in much the saine manner as do the triungu- lins, and there are still other species of general feeders that devour the locust eggs as a part of their miscellaneous diet. Notwithstanding ail this destruction of the germs of their future progeny, however, the grasshoppers still thrive in abundance, for grasshoppers, like most other insects, put their trust in the admonition that there is safety in numbers. So many eggs are produced and stored away in the ground each season that the whole force of their enemies combined can hot destroy them ail, and enough are sure to corne through intact to render certain the continuance of the species. Thus we see that nature has various ways of accomplishing her ends--she might have given the grasshopper eggs better protection in the pods, but, being usually careless of individuals, she chose to guarantee perpetuance with fertility. [251 CHAPTER 1I THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS N.TURE'S tendency is to produce groups rather than in- dividuals. Any animal you can think of resembles in sol.ne way another animal or a numnber of other animnals. An insect resemnbles on the one hand a shrimnp or a crab, and on the other a centipede or a spider. Resel.nblances amnong animnals are either superficial or fundamnental. For examnple, a whale or a porpoise resel.nbles a fish and lires the lire of a fish, but has the skeleton and other organs of land-inhabiting mnamnmnals. Therefore, notwithstanding their formn and aquatic habits, whales and porpoises are classed as mammnals and hot as fishes. When resemnblances between animais are of a funda- mental nature, we believe that they represent actual blood relationships carried down frol.n sol'ne far-distant colmmon ancestor; but the determination of relationships between animnals is hot always an easy l'natter, because it is often diflïcult to know what are fundal.nental characters and what are superficial ones. It is a part of the work of zoologists, however, to investigate closely the structure of ail animnals and to establish their true relationships. The ideas of relationship which the zoologist deduces frol.n his studies of the structure of animais are expressed in his classification of thel.n. The primnary divisions of the Animal Kingdomn, which is generally likened to a tree, are called branches, or loh_vla (singular, lohylum). The insects, the centipedes, the spiders, and the shrimps, crayfish, lobsters, crabs, and other such creatures belong to the phylurn ,qrthrolooda. The naine of this phylumn means [61 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS "jointed-legs"; but, since many other animais have jointed legs, the naine is hot distinctive, except in that the legs of the arthropods are particularly jointed, each being com- posed of a series of pieces that bend upon each other in different directions. A naine, however, as evervbodv knows, does hot have to mean anything, for Mr. mit[a 1:,. 4- Examples of fi»ur common classes of the Arthropoda A,a crab /Crustacea). B,a spider (Arachnida). C, a centipede (Chilopoda). 1), a fly Ilnsecta, or Hexapoda) mav be a carpentér, and Mr. Carpenter a smith. A phylum is c]ivided into classes, a class into orders, an order into /amilies, a family into genera (singular, genus), and a genus is composed ofspecies (the singular of which is also species). Species are hard to define, but they are what we ordinarily regard as the individual kinds of animals. Species are given double names, first the genus naine, and second a specific naine. },'or example, species of a common grass- hopper genus named :lelanoplus are distinguished as ,1 tela,«oplus atlanus, ,,l lelanoplus f emur-rubrum, l$1elanoplus diflerentialis, etc. [27] INSECTS The insects belong to the class of the Arthropoda known as the Inse'ta, or t-Iexatoda. The word "insect," as we have seen, means "in-cut," while "hexapod" means "six- legged"--either term, then, doing very well for insects. The centipedes (Fig. 4 C) are the ;$IyriaIoda , or many- footed arthropods; the crabs (A), shrimps, lobsters, and others of their kind are the Oustacea, so called because most of them have hard shells; the spiders (B) are the .grack,,ida, named after that ancient Greek maiden so boastful of her spinning that Minerva turned her into a spider; but some arachnids, such as the scorpion, do not make webs. The principal groups of insects are the orders. The grasshopper and its relatives constitute an order; the beetles are an order; the moths and butterflies are another order; the flies another; the wasps, bees, and ants still another. The grasshopper's order is called the Ortottera, the word meaning "straight-wings," but, again, hot sig- nificant in ail cases, though serving very well as a name. The order is a group of related families, and, in the Or- thoptera, the grasshoppers, or locusts, make one family, the katydids another, the crickets a third; and ail these in- sects, together with some others less familiar, may be said to be the grasshopper's cousins. The orthopteran families are notable in many ways, some for the great size attained by their members, some for their remarkable forms, and some for musical talent. While this chapter will be devoted principally to the cousins of the grasshopper, a few things of interest may still be said about the grasshopper himself, in addition to what was given in the preceding chapter. THE GRASSHOPPER FaMLV The family of the grasshoppers, or locusts, is the Acrididae. Ail the members are much alike in form and habits, though some have long wings and some short wings, and mme reach the enormous size of nearly six inches in PLATE 1 A group of insects representing rive common entomological Orders. Figure 2 is a damselfly, a kind of dralonfly , from New Guinea, Order Odonata; 4 is a grasshopper, and 6 a winged walking-stick of Japan, representing two familles of Orthoptera;  and 8 are sucking bugs, Order Hemiptera, which includes also the aphids and the cicadas: 3 is a wasp ri'oto Paragmy, and 7 a solitarv bee from Chile, Order tlymenoptera; 5 is a two-winged tir of the Order Diptera, from Japan. To entomologists these insects are known as follows: , Pm:vphes laetus; OE, unidentified; 3, Pepsis completa; 4, Heliastus benjamini; 5, Pantophthahnus vittatus; 6, 3licadina çhh«ctanoides; 7, Caupolicana Fuk'icolli.,; 8, .llargasus afzeH THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS iength. The front wings are long and narrow (Fig. 63, H'_), somewhat stiff, and of a leathery texture. They are laid over the thinner hind wings as a protection to the latter when the wings are foided over the back, and for this reason they are called the tegmina (singular, tegmen). The hind wings, when spread (lI'), are seen to be large fans, each with many ribs, or veins, springing from the base. These wings are gliders rather than organs of flight. For most grasshoppers leap into the air by means of their strong hind legs and then saii off on the outspread wings as far as a weak fluttering of the latter wili carry them. One of our common species, however, the Carolina Iocust (Frontispiece), is a strong flyer, and when F. I 5. A grasshopper, Chloealtis conspersa, that rnakes a sound by scraping its hind thighs over sharp-edged veins of its wings A, the maie grasshopper, showing the sound-rnaking veins of the wing (b). B, inner surface of right hind leg, showing row of teeth (a) on the fernur. C, severa| teeth of the fernur (enlargedJ flushed flits away on an undulating course over the weeds and bushes and sometimes over the tops of small trees, but always swerving this wav and that as if unde- cided where to alight. The great fl'ights of the migratory locusts, described in the last chapter, are said to have been accomplished more by the winds than bv the insects' strength of wing. The iocusts are distinguished by the possession of large [zg] INSECTS organs on the sides of the body that appear to be designed for purposes of hearing. No insect, of course, bas "ears" on its head; the grasshopper's supposed hearing organs are located on the base of the abdomen, one on each side (Fig. 63, Tre). Each consists of an oval depression of the body wall with a thin eardrumlike membrane, or tympa- hum, stretched over it. Air sacs lie against the inner face of the membrane, furnishing the equilibrium of air pressure necessary for free vibration in response to sound waves, and a complicated sensory apparatus is attached to its inner wall. Even with such large ears, however, attempts at making the grasshopper hear are never very succeasful; but its tympanal organs bave the saine structure as those of insects noted for their singing, which presumably, therefore, can hear their own sound productions. Not many of the grasshoppers are muscial. They are mostly sedate creatures that conceal their sentiments, if they bave any. They are awake in the daytime and they sleep at night -commendable traits, but habits that seldom beget much in the way of artistic attainment. Yet a few of the grasshoppers make sounds that are perhaps music in their own ears. One such is an unpretentious little brown species (Fig. 15) about seven-eighths of an inch in length, marked by a large black spot on each side of the saddlelike shield that covers his back between the head and the wings. He bas no other naine than his scientific oneof Ckloealtis conspersa, for he is hot widely known, since his music is of a very feeble sort. According to Scudder, his only notes resemble tsikk-tsikk-tsikk, repeated ten or twelve times in about three seconds in the sun, but at a slightly lower rate in the shade. Chloealtis is a fiddler and plays two instruments at once. The fiddles are his front wings, and the bows his hind legs. On the inner surïace f each hind thigh, or./e»mr, there is a row of minute teeth (Fig. 5 B, a), shown more magnified at C. When the thighs are rulbed ()ver thc edges of the wings, their teeth scrape ,m a sharp-edged rein indicated bv b. This produces the [3ol THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS tsikk-sound just mentioned. Such notes contain little music to us, but Scudder says he has seen three males sing- ing to one female at the same time. This female, however, B cu \_.; C F«. 16. .tf grasshopper, Mecostethus gracilis, that makes a sound by scraping sharp ridges on the inner surfaces of its hind thighs over toothed veins of the wings A, the maie grasshopper. B, left front wing; the rasping rein is the one marked I. C, a part of the rasping rein and its branches more enlarged, showing rows of teeth was.busy laying her eggs in a near-by stump, and there is no evidence given to show that even she appreciated the efforts of her serenaders. Several other little grasshoppers fiddle after the manner of Chloealtis; but another, Mecostethus gracilis by naine (Fig. J6), instead of having the rasping points on the legs, has on each ri)re wing one rein (B, I) and its branches pro- vided with many small teeth, shown enlarged at C, upon which it scrapes a sharp ridge situated on the inner sur- face of the hind thigh. In another group of grasshoppers there are certair species that make a noise as they fly, a crackling sound [3 t ] INSECTS apparently produced in some way by the wings themselves. One of these, common through the Northern States, is known as the cracker locust, Circotettix verruculatus, on account of the loud snapping notes it emits. Several other members of the saine genus are also cracklers, the noisiest being a western species called C. carlingianus. Scudder says he has had his attention drawn to this grass- hopper "by its obstreperous crackle more than a quarter of a toile away. In the arid parts of the West it has a great fondness for rocky hillsides and the hot vicinity of abrupt cliffs in the full exposure to the sun, where its clattering rattle re-echoes from the walls." TuE KATYDID ITAMIL¥ While the grasshoppers give examples of the more primitive attempts of insects at musical production and may be compared in this respect to the more primitive of human faces, the katydids show the highest development of the art attained by insects. But, just as the accom- plishments of one member of a human family may give prestige to ail his relations and descendants, so the talent of one noted member of the katydid family bas given notoriety to ail his congeners, and his justly deserved naine has corne to be applied by the undiscriminating public to a whole tribe of singers of lesser or very mediocre talent whose only claire to the naine of katydid is that of family relationship. In Europe the katydids are called simply the longhorn grasshoppers. In entomology the family is now the Tettigoniidae, though it had long been known asthe Locustidae. The katydids in general are most easily distinguished from the locusts, or shorthorn grasshoppers, by the great length of their antennae, those delicate, sensitive, tapering threads projecting from the forehead. But the two fami- lles differ also in the number of joints in their feet, the grasshoppers having three (Fig. 17 A) and the katydids four (B). The grasshoppers place the entire foot on the [31 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS ground, while the katydids ordinarily walk on the three basal segments only, carrying the long terminal joint elevated. The basal segments have pads on their under sides that adhere to any smooth surface such as that of a leaf, but the terminal joint bears a pair of claws used when it is necessary to grasp the edge of a support. The katydids are mostly creatures of the night and, though usually plain green in color, many of them have elegant forms. Their attitudes and general comportment suggest much more re- finement and a higher breeding than that of the heavy-bodied locusts. Though some members of the katydid family live in the fields and are very grasshopperlike or even cricketlike in form and manners, the character- istic species are seclusive inhabitants of shrubbery or trees. These are the true aristocrats of the Orthoptera. An insect nmsician differs in many respects from a human musician, aside from that of being an insect in- stead of a human being. The insect artists are ail instrtlmentalists; but since the poets and other,,ignorant people alwavs speak of the singing" of the crickêts and katydids, it will be Fie.. 17. Distinctive char- acters in the feet of the three familles of singing Orthoptera A, hind foot of a grass- hopper. B, hind foot of a katydid. C, hind foot of a cricket easier to use the language of the public than to correct it, especially since we have nothing better to offer than the word stridldatbg, a l.atin derivative meaning "'to creak." But words do hot matter if we explain what we mean by them. It must be understood, therefore, that though we speak of the "songs" of insects, insects do not have true voices in the sense that "voice" is the production of sound by the breath playing on vocal cords. Ail the musical instruments of insects, it is true, are parts of their bodies; but they are to be likened to fiddles or drums, since, for the [331 INSECTS production of sound, they depend upon rasping and vibrat- mg surfaces. The rasping surfaces are usually, as in the instruments of the grasshoppers (Figs. 5, 6), parts of the legs and the wings. The sound may be intensified, as in the bGdy of a stringed instrument, by special resonating Fro. 8. The front wings, or tegmina, of a meadow grasshopper, Orchelimum laticauda, il[ustrating the sound-making organs typical of the katydid farnily _, left front wing and basal part of right wing of maie, showing the four main veins: subcosta (Se), radius (R), media (M), and cubitus (Cu); also the enlarged basal vibrating area, or tympanum (Tre), of each wing, the thick file rein (ft') on the left, and the scraper (s) on the rlght B, lower surface of base of left wing of maie, showing the file (]) on under side of the file rein (A, fv) C, right front wing of ferrmle, which bas no sound-making organs, showing simple normal venation areas, sometimes on the wings, sometimes on the body. The cicadas, a group of musical insects to be described in a special chapter, have large drumheads in the wall of the body with which they produce their shrill music. They do hot beat these drums, but cause them to vibrate by muscles in the body. The musical members of the insect familles are in nearly ail cases the males, and it is usually sup- posed that they give their concerts for the purpose of engaging the females, but that this is so in ail cases we can hot be certain. The musical instru- ments of the katydids are quite different from those of the grasshoppers, being situated on the over- [341 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS lapping bases of the Iront wings, or tegmina. On this account the front wings of the males are alwavs different flore those of the females, the latter retaining the usual or primitive structure. The right wing of a female in one of the more grasshopperlike species, Orchelimum laticauda (Fig. 3o),is shown at C of Figure 8. Thewingis trav- ersed by four principal veins springing flore the base. The one nearest the inner edge is called the cubitus (Cu) and the space be- tween it and this margin of the wing is filled with a network of small veins having no particular ar- rangement. In thewings of the maie, however, shown at A of the saine figure, this inner basal ..f field is much enlarged and consists of a thin, C crisp membrane (Tre), braced by a number of veins branching from the cubitus (Cu). One of these (fv), running cross- wise through the mem- brane, is very thick on the left wing, and when the wing is turned over (B) it is seen to have a close series of small cross- ridges on its under sur- face which convert it into FIG. 19. Wings, sound-making organs, and the "ears" of a conehead grasshopper, Neoconocephalus ensiger, a member of the katydid family A, B, right" and left wings, showing the scraper (s) on the right, and the file vein fv) on the left. C, under surface of the file vein, showing the file (f). D, front leg, showing slits (e) on the tibia opening into pockets containi.ng the hearing organs (fig. :zo A) a veritable file (f). On the right wing this saine rein is much more slender and its file is very weak, but on the basal angle of this wing there is a stiff ridge (s) hOt de- veloped on the other. The katydids always fold the [35] INSECTS ° wings with the ]eft overlappingthe right, and in this position the file of the former lies above the ridge (s) of the latter. If now the wings are moved sidewise, thefile grating on the ridge or scraper causes a rasping sound, and this is the way the katydid makes the notes of its music. The tone and w)lume of the sound, however, are probably in large part produced by the vibration of the thin basal membranes of the wings, which are called the t_vmpam (Tre). The instruments of different players differ somewhat in the details of their structure. There are variations in the form and size of the file and the scraper on the wings of dif- ferent species, and differences in the veins supporting the tympanal areas, as shown in the drawings of these parts from a conehead (Fig. 27) given at A, B, and C, of Figure 9- In the true katydid, the greatest singer of the family, the file, the scraper, the tympana, and the wings them- selves (Fig. 26) are ail ver)' highly developed to form an instrument ofgreat efficiencv. But, in general, the instru- ments of different species do hot differ nearlv so much as do the notes produced (rom them bv their owners. An endless number of tunes mav be played upon the saine fiddle. With the insects each musician knows onlv one tune, or a few simple variations of it, and this he bas in- herited from his ancestors along with a knowledge of how to play it on his inherited instrument. The stridulating organs are hOt functionally developed until maturity, and then the insect forthwith plays his native air. He never disturbs the neighbors with doleful notes while learning. Very curiously, none of the katydids nor any member of their family ha ; the earlike organs on the sides of the body possessed by the locusts. What are commonly supposed to be their organs of hearing are located in their front legs, as are the similar organs of the crickets. Two vertical slits on the upper parts of the shins, or tibiae (Fig. i 9 D, e), open each into a small pocket (Fig. 2o A, E) with a tym- panumlike membrane (Tre) stretched across its inner wall. Between the membranes are air cavities (Tra) and a coin- [36 ] THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS plicated sensorv receptive apparatus (B) connected by a nerve through the basal part of the leg with the central nervous system. There are several groups of katydids, classed as sub- Fie. o. The probable auditory organ of the front leg of Decticus, a member of the katydid family. (Simplified from Schwabe) Pi» cross-section of the leg through the auditory organ, showing the ear slits (e, e) leading into the large ear cavities (E, E) with the tympana (Tre, Tre) on their inner faces. Between the tympana are two tracheae (Tra» Tra) dividing the leg cavity into an upper and a iower channel (BC, BC). Tlie sensory apparatus forms a crest on the outer surface of the inner trachea, each ele- ment consisting of a cap cell (CCI), an enveloping cell (ECI) con- taining a sense rod &o), and a sense ,.ell (8Cl). Ct, the thick cuticula forming the hard wall of the leg B, surface view of the sensory organ, showing the elements graded in size from above downward. The sense oeils (8Cl) are attached to the nerve (Nv) along the inncr side of the leg families. A subfamily naine ends in inae to distinguish it from a family naine, which, after the Latin fashion, termi- nates in idae. THE ROUND-HEADED KATYDIDS The members of this first group of the katydid family are characterized by having large wings and a smooth [37] INSECTS round forehead. Thev compose the subfamily Phanerop- terinae, which includés species that attain the acme of grace, elegance, and refinement to be round in the entire orthopteran order. Nearlv ail the round-headed katydids ar musical to some degree, but their productions are not Fro. OE. A bush katydid, Scuddtriafurcata t'ppcr figure, a maie; Iowr, a female in the act of cleaning a hind foot of a high'order. On rhe other hand, though their notes are in a high key, they are usuallv hot loud and hot of the kind that keep you awake at night. Among this group are the bush katydids, the species of which are of medium size with slenderer wings than rhe others, and are comprised in the genus usually known as Scudderia but also called Ptzaneroptera. They bave ac- quired the naine of bush katydids because they are usually found on low shrubbery, particularly along the edges of moist meadows, though they inhabit other places, too, and their notes are often heard at nighr about the bouse. Out I381 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS commonest species, and one that occurs over most of the United States, is the fork-tailed bush katydid (Scudderia furcata). Figure 21 shows a male and a femme, the female in the act of cleaning the pads on one of her hind feet. The katydids are ail very particular about keeping their feet clean, for it is quite essential to have their adhesive pads always in perfect working order; but they are so con- tinually stopping whatever they may be doing to lick one foot or another, like a dog scratching fleas, that it looks more like an ingrown habit with them than a necessary act of cleanliness. The fork-tailed katydid is an unpreten- tious singer and has only one note, a high-pitched zeep re- iterated several times in succession. But it does not re- peat the series continuously, as most other singers do, and its music is likely to be lost to human ears in the general din from the jazzing bands of crickets. Yet occasionally its sort zeep, zeep, zeep may be heard from a near-by bush or from the lower branches of a tree. The notes of other species have been described as zikk, zikk, zikk, or zeet, zeet, zeet, and some observers have re- corded two notes for the saine species. Thus Scudder says that the day notes and the night notes of Scudderia curvi- cauda differ considerably, the day note being represented by bzrwi, the night note, which is only hall as long as the other, by tchw. (With a little practice the reader should be able to give a good imitation of this katydid.) Scudder furthermore says that they change from the day note to the night note when a cloud passes over the sun as they are singing by day. The genus ztmblycorypha includes a group of species hav- ing wider wings than those of the bush katydids. Most of them are indifferent singers; but one, the oblong-winged katydid (A/. oblongifolia), found over ail the eastern halfof the United States and southern Canada, is noted for its large size and dignified manners. A mme (Fig. _), kept by the writer one summer in a cage, never once lost his decorum by the humiliation of confinement. He lived ap- [391 INSECTS parently a natural and contented life, feeding on grape leaves and on ripe grapes, obtaining the pulp of the latter by gnawing holes through the skin. He was always sedate, always composed, his motions always slow and deliberate. In walking he carefully lifted each foot and brought the leg forward with a steady movement to the new position, where the foot was carefully set down again. Only in the act of jumping did he ever make a quick movement of any sort. But his preparations for the leap were as calm and unhurried as his other acts: pointing the head upward, dipping the abdomen slowly downward, the two long hind legs bending up in a sharp inverted V on each side of the body, he would lead one to think he was deiiberately pre- paring to sit down on a tack; but, ail at once, a catch seems to be released somewhere as he suddenly springs upward into the leaves overhead at wh]ch he had talen such long and careful aire. For a long rime the aristocratic prisoner uttered no sound, but at last one evening he repeated three rimes a [40] THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS squeaking note resembling shriek with the s much aspi- rated and with a prolonged vibration on the ie. The next evening he played again, making at first a weak swish, swish, swish, with the s verv sibilant and the i very vibra- tory. But after giving thi as a prelud, e he began a sh iii shrie-e-e-e-k, shrie-e-e-e-k, repeated sx times, a loud sound described by Blatchlev as a "creaking squawk-- like the noise ruade by drawing a fine-toothed comb over a taut string." The best-known members of the round-headed katydids, and perhaps of the whole familv, are the angular-winged katydids (Fig. 23). These are large, maple-leaf green in- sects, much flattened from side to side, with the leaflike wings folded high over the back and abruptly bent on their upper margins, giving the creatures the humpbacked ap- pearance from which they get their name of angular- winged katydids. The sloping surface of the back in front of the hump makes a large fiat triangle, plain in the female, but in the maie corrugated and roughened bv the veins of the musical apparatus. There are two species of the angular-winged katydids in the United States, both belonging to the genus Microcen- trum, one distinguished as the larger angular-winged katy- did, 31. rhombifolium, and the other as the smaller angu- lar-winged katydid, M. retinerve. The females of the larger species (Fig. 23) , which is the more common one, reach a length of 23. 8 inches measured to the tips of the wings. They lay fiat, oral eggs, stuck in rows overlapping like scales along the surface of some twig or on the edge of a leaf. The angular-winged katydids are attracted to lights and may frequently be round on warm summer nights in the shrubbery about the house, or even on the porch and the screen doors. Members of the larger species usually make their presence known by their sort but high-pitched notes resembling tzeet uttered in short series, the first notes re- peated rapidly, the others successively more slowly as the [41 ] INSECTS tone becomes also less sharp and piercing. The song may be written tzeet-tzeet-tzeet-tzeet-tzek-tzek-tzek-tzuk-tzuk, though the high key and shrill tones of the notes must be F*. 3- The larger angular-winged katydid, Microcentrum rhombifolium Upper figure, a maie; lower, a female imagined. Riley describes the song as a series of raspings "as of a stiff quill drawn across a coarse file," and Allard 14] THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS savs the notes "are sharp, snapping crepitations and sound like the slow snapping of the teeth of a stiff comb as some object is slowly drawn across it." He represents them thus: tek-ek-ek-ek-ek-ek-ek-ek-ek-ek-ek-tzip. But, however the song of Microcentrum is to be translated into English, it contains no suggestion of the notes of his famous cousin, the true katydid. Yet most people confuse the two species, or rather, hearing the one and seeing the other, they draw the obvious but erroneous conclusion that the one seen makes the sounds that are heard. The smaller angular-winged katydid, Jlicrocentrun reti- r, erae, is hOt so frequently seen as the other, but it has simi- lar habits, and may be heard in the vines or shrubbery about the house at night, lts song is a sharp zeet, zeet, zeet, the three syllables spaced as in ka-l.v-did, and it is probable that many people mistake these notes for those of the true katvdid. "I;he angular-winged katydids are very gentle and un- suspicious creatures, allowing themselves to be picked up without an}" attempt at escaping. But they are good ff.vers, and when launched into the air sail about like minia- ture airplanes, with their large wings spread out straight on each side. \¥hen at test thev have a comical habit of leaning over sidewise as if their fiat forms were top-heavy. "FHE TRUE KAT'DID \,'e now corne to that artist who bears by right the naine of "katydid," the insect /Fig. 2 4 ) known to science as Pteroph.vlla camellfolia and to the American public as the greatest of insect smgers. D,'hether the katydid is really a musician or hot, of course, depends upon the critic, but of his faine there can be no question, for his naine is a house- hold terre as familiar as that of any of out own great artists, notwithstanding that there is no phonographic record of his music. To be sure, the cicada has more of a world-wide reputation than the katydid, for he has repre- sentatives in many lands, but he has hot put his song into [431 ]NSECTS words the public can understand. And ifsimplicity be the test of true art, the song of the katydid stands the test, for nothing could be simpler than merely katy-did, or its easy variations, such as katy, katy-she-did, and katv-didn't. Yet though the music of the katydid is known by ear or by reputation to almost every native American, few of us FG. -4. The true katydid, Pterophylla camelloEolia, a maie are acquainted with the musician himself. This is because he almost invariably chooses the tops of the tallest trees for his stage and seldom descends from it. His lofty platform, moreover, is also his studio, his home, and his world, and the reporter who would have a personal interview must be efficient in tree climbing. Occasionally, though, it happens that a singer may be located in a smaller tree where access to him is easier or from which he may be dislodged by shaking. A specimen, secured in this way on August lived till October g and firnished material for the follow- ing notes: The physical characters of the captive and some of his attitudes are shown in Figures 2 4 and 2 5. His length is /4 inches from the forehead to the tips of the folded wings; the front legs are longer and thicker than in most other members of the family, while the hind legs are un- usually short. The antennae, though, are extremely long, slender, and very delicate filaments, 2'3/,6 inches in length. [44] THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS 13 Fc. =.ç. The katydid in various attitudes A, usua[ position of a maie while singlng. B, attitude v¢hile running rapidly on a smooth surface. C, preparing to [eap from a vertical surface. D, a maie, seen from above, showing the stridulating area at the base of the wings. E, a female, showing the broad, fiat. curved ovipositor [451 INSEC'I'S Between the bases of the antennae on the forehead there is a small conical pro.jection, a physical character which separates the true katydid from the round-headed katy- dids and assigns him to the subfamily called the Pseudo- phyllinae, which includes, besides our species, many others that live mostly in the tropics. The rear margins of the wings are evenly rounded and their sides strongly bulged outward as if to cover a very plump body, but the space between them is mostlv empty and probably forms a resonance chamber to give tone and volume to the sound produced by the stridulating parts. What might be the katydid's waistcoat, the part of the bodv exposed beneath the wings, has a row of prominent buttonlike swellings along the middle which rhythmically heave and sink with each respiratory movement. Ail the katydids are deep abdominal breathers. The color of the katvdid is plain green, with a conspicu- ous dark-brown triangl'e on the back covering the stridulat- ing area of the wings. The tips of the mouth parts are vellowish. The eyes are of a pale transparent green, but each has a dark center which, like the pupil in a painting, is alwavs fixed upon you from whatever angle you retreat. The movements of the captive individual are slow, though in the open he can run rather rapidly, and when he is in a hurry he often takes the rather absurd attitude shown at B of Figure 25, with the head down and the wings and bodv elevated. He never flies, and was never seen to spread ]is wings, but when making short leaps the wings are slightly fluttered, in preparing for a leap, if only one of a few inches or a foot, he makes very careful preparations, scrutinizing the proposed landing place long and closely, though perhaps he sees better in the dark and acts then with more agility. If the leap is tobe ruade from a horizontal surface, he slowlv crouches with the legs drawn together, assuming an attitude more familiar in a car; but, if the jump is tobe from a vertical support, he raises himself on his long front legs as at Cof Figure 25, [46l THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS suggesting a camel browsirg on the leaves of a tree. He sparingly eats leaves of oak and maple supplied to him in his cage, but appears to prefer fresh fruit and grapes, and relishes bread soaked in water. He drinks rather less than most orthopterons. When the katydids are singing at night in the woods they appear to be most wary of disturbance, and often the voice of a person approaching or a crackle underfoot is sufl:icient to quiet a singer far overhead. The maie in the cage never utters a note until he bas been in darkness and quiet for a considerable time. But when he seems to be assured of solitude he starts his music, a sound of tremendous volume in a room, the tones incredibly harsh and rasping at close range, lacking entirely that melody they acquire with space and distance. It is only by extreme caution that the per- former may be approached while singing, and even then the brief flash of a light is usuallv enough to silence those stentorian notes. Yet occasionally a glimpse may be had of the musician as he plays, most frequently standing head downward, the bodv braced rather stiffly on the legs, the front wings onlv slghtly elevated, the tips of the hind wings projectin a little from between them, the abdomen depressed and breathing strongly, the long antennal threads waving about in all directions. Each syllable ap- pears to be produced by a separate series of vibrations ruade bv a rapid shuPrting of the wings, the middle one be- ing more hurried and the last more conclusivelv stressed, thus producing the sound so suggestive of ka-t.v-'did', ka-tv- did', which is repeated regularly about sixty times a minu-te on warm nights. Usually at the start, and often for some rime, only two notes are uttered, ka-t.v, as if the player bas diflîculty in falling at once into the full swing of ka-tv-did. The structure of the wings and the details of the s}ridu- lating parts are shown in Figure 26. The wings (A, B) fold vertically against the sides of the body, but their inner basal parts form wide, stiff, horizontal, triangular flaps that overlap, the left on top of the right. A thick, sunken, [47] INSECTS crosswise vein (fv) at the base of the left tympanum (7,) is the file rein. It is shown from below at C where the broad, heavy file (f) is seen with its row of extremely coarse raspmg ridges. The saine rein on the right wing (B) is lnuch smaller and bas no file, but the inner basal angle of the tyn{panum is pro.duced into a large lobe bear- mg a strong scraper (s) on its "Sç s m a rgl n. R B 'I(;. 6. Wings and the sound-mak- ing organs of the maie katydid A, left front wing, showing the greatly enlarged tympanal area (Tre), with its thick file rein (#). B, base of right fore wing, with large scraper («) on its inn«r angle, but with a very small file rein. C, under surface of file rein of left wing, showing the large, fiat, coarsely-ribbed file (t') the notes, but one lacking in artist of such repute. In New England, the katydids heard bv the writer in Connecticut and in the western part of Massachusetts uttered only two syllables much [48] The quality of the katv- did's song seems to diffC somewhat in different parts of the country. In the vicin- itv of Wash'ington, the in- sects certainlv sav ka-tv'-did as plainly as any insect could. Of course, the sound is lnore literallv to be represented as ka ki-kak', accented on the last svllable. When only two svllab]es are pronounced they are alwavs the tirst two. Sometime's an individua] in a hand utters four syllable.s, "katv-she-did" or ka a.i-lea- kak','and again a whole band is heard singing in four notes with onlv an occasiona] singer givi;g three. It is said that in certain parts of the South the katvdid is called a "cackle-jak," a naine which, it must be adlnitted, is a verv literal translation of sentiment and t,nbefittilg an THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS more commonly than three, and the sounds were extremelv harsh and rasping, being a loud squ-wk', squ-wk', squ-wk', the second svllable a little longer than the first. This is hot the case wit] those that s.y ka-tv. When there were three syllables the series was squ-w-wk'. If ail New England katydids sing thus, itis hot surprising that some New England writers have failed to see how the insects ever got the naine of "katvdid." Scudder says "their notes have a shocking lack'of melodv"; he rep- resents the sound by xr, and records that the song is usually of onlv two syllables. "That is," he says, " they rasp their fore wings twice rather than thrice; these two notes are of equal (and extraordinary) emphasis, the latter about one-quarter longer than the former; or if three notes are given, the first and second are alike and a little shorter than the last." When we listen to insects singing, the question always arises of why they sing, and we might as well adroit that we do hot know what motive impels them. It is prob- ably an instinct with males to use their stridulating organs, but in many cases the tones emitted are clearly modified by the physical or emotional state of the player. The music seems in some wav to be connected with the mating of the sexes, and the ustial idea is that the sounds are attractive to the females. With many of the crickets, however, the real attraction that the maie has for the female is a liquid exuded on his back, the song apparently being a mere ad- vertisement of his wares. In any case the ecstacies of love and passion ascribed to maie insects in connection with their music are probably more fanciful than real. The subject is an enchanted field wherein the scientist bas most often weakened and wandered from the narrow path of observed facts, and where he bas indulged in a free- dom of imagination permissible to a poet or to a newspaper reporter who wishes to enliven his chronicle of some event in the dailv news, but which does hot contribute anything substantia] to our knowledge of the truth. [49] INSECTS THE CONEH EADS This group of the katydid (amily contains slender, grasshopperlike insects that bave the forehead produced Flç. OE7" A conehead grasshopper, or katydtd, Neocono- cephalus retusus Upper figure, a maie; Iower, a female, with extremelv long ov*positor into a large cone and the face strongly receding, but which also pos- sess long, slen- der antennae that distinguish them from the true or short- horn grasshop- pers. They con- stitute the sub- family Copi- phorinae. One of the commonest and most widely distributed of the larger cone- heads ls the species known as Neoconocephalus ensiger, or the "sword- bearing conehead." It is the female, however, that carries the sword; and it is hot a sword either, but merely the immensely long egg-laying instrument properly called the ovipositor. The female conehead shown at B of Figure "-7, bas a similar organ, though she belongs to a species called retusus. The two species are very similar in all respects except for slight differences in the shape of the cone on the head. They look like slim, sharp-headed grasshoppers, J  to J3/44 inches in length, usually bright green in color, though sometimes brown. 15oi THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS The song of ensiger sounds like the noise of a miniature sewing machine, consisting merelv of a long series of one note, tick, tick, tick, tick, etc., repeated indefinitelv. Scudder says ensiger begins with a note like brw, then pauses an instant and immediatelv emits a rapid succession of sounds like chwi at the rate of about rive per second and continues them an unlimited rime. lX.IcNeil repre- sents the notes as zip, zip, zip; Davis expresses them as ik, ik, and Allard hears them as tsiD, tsip, tsip. The song ofretusus (Fig. 7) is quite different. It consists of a long shrill whir which Rehn and Hebard describe as a continuous zeeeeeeeeee. The sound is hot loud but is in a very high key and rises in pitch as the player gains speed in his wing movements, till to some human ears it becomes almost in- audible, though to others it is a \ plain and distinct screech. A large conehead and one with a much stronger instrument is the robust conehead, .\'eoconocepha/tts robttsttts (Fig.  ' -). He is one of the [oudest singers of North American ()rthoptera, his song being an intense, continuous buzz, Fro. =8. The rob.st cone- head, Neoconocephalus robus- s«maewhat resembling thar of a tu*, in position ofsinging, with cicada. A caged specimen singing çor wings separated and in a room makes a deafening noise, somewhat elevated, the head downward The principal buzzing sound is ac- companied by a lower, droning hum, the origin of which ls hot clear, but which is probably some secondary vibra- tion of the wings. The player alwavs sits head downward 15,1 INSECTS while performing, and the breathing motions of the abdo- men are very deep and rapid. The robust conehead is an inhabitant of dry, sandy places along the Atlantic coast from Massachusetts to Virginia and, according to Blatch- ley, of similar plac.es near the shores of Lake Michigan in Indiana. The wnter made its acquaintance n Con- necticut on the sandv flats of the uinnipiac Valley, north of New Haven, where its shrill song may be heard on summer nights from long distances. THE MEADOW GP,.ASSHOPPERS These are trim, slim little grasshopperlike insects, active by day, that lire in moist meadows where the vegetation is always fresh and juicy. They constitute the subfamily Conocephalinae of the katydid family, having conical FIG. 9- The common meadow grasshopper, Orchelimum vulgare, a member of the katydid family heads like the last group, but being mostly of smaller size. There are numerous species of the meadow grasshoppers, but most of them in the eastern part of the United States belong to two genera known as Orche/imum and Conoceph- ahLs. The most abundant and most widely distributed member of the first is the common meadow grasshopper, Orchelimum ,ulgare. A maie is shown in Figure 9- He is a little over an inch in length, with head rather large for his size and with big eves of a bright orange color. The ground color of his body" is greenish, but the top of the head and the thoracic shield is occupied by a long tri- angular dark-brown patch, while the stridulating area of [5oEl THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS Fro. 3o. The hand- some meadow grass- hopper, Orchelimum laticauda Upper figure, a maie; |ower, a fema|e the wings is marked bv a brown spot at each corner. "J'hese little grasshoppers readilv sing in con- finement, both in tae day and at night. Their music is verv unpre- tentious and might easilv be lost out of doors, consisting mostly of a sort, rustling buzz that ]asts two or three seconds. Often the buzz is preceded or followed bv a series of clicks ruade bv a slower movenlent of the wings. Frequently the player opens the wmgs for the start of the song with a single click, then proceeds with the buzz, and finallv closes with a few slow movements that produce the con- cluding series of clicks. But very commonlv he gives onlv the buzz without prelude or staccato end- ing. Another com- mon member of the genus is the agile meadow grasshopper, Or- che/imum e«gi/e. l ts music is said tobe a long zip, zip, zip, ze«-«-«-«, with the zip syl- lable repeated manv times. These two elements, the zip and zee, are charac- teristic of the songs of ail the Orcheli- mures, some giving more stress to the first and others to the second, and Fro. 3,. The slender meadow grasshopper, Conocephalus fasciatus, one of the smal|est members of the katy- did fami|y [531 INSECTS sometimes either one or the other is omitted. A verv pretty species of the genus is the handsome meadow grasshopper, Orcl, eHml«m latical«d« (or pdchellum) shown m Figure 30.. When at test, both males and females usuallv sit close to a stem or leaf with the middle of the bodv n contact with the support and the long hind legs stretched out behind. Davis savs the song of this species is a zip, zip, zip, , , .., quite ditinguishable flore that of O. çwlgare. Still smaller meadow grasshppers belong to the genus Cozoc@hah, s, more commonlv called .Viphidil«m. One of the most abundant species, the slender meadw grass- hopper, C../asciatus, is shwn in Figure 3 - It is less than an inch in length, the bodv green, the back of the thorax dark brown, the wings redlish-brown, and the back of the abdomen marked with a broad bmwn stripe. Allard says the song of this little meadow grasshpper may be ex- pressed as tip, tip, tip, tseeeeeeeeeeeeee, but that the entire song is so faint as almost to escape the hearing. Piers describes it as ple-e-e-e-e-e, tz#, tzit, tzit, tzit. l.ike the song of Orchelimz«m ,u/gare it apparently mav either begin or end with staccato notes. THE SHIELD BEARERS Another large group of the katvdid family is the sub- familv Decticinae, mostlv cricketl'ike insects that lire on the ground, but which bave wings so short (Fig. 3"-) that they are poor musicians. They are called "shield bearers" because the large back plate of the first body segment is more or less prolonged like a shield over the back. Most of the species live in the western parts of the United States, where the individuals sometimes become so abtmdant as to form large and very destructive bands. One such species is the Mormon cricket, .tnabrus simplex, and an- other is the Coulee cricket, Perambrus scaricollis (Fig. 32), o(the dry central region of the State of Washington. The females of these species are commonly wingless, but the [54] THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS males have short stubs of front wings that retain the stridulating organs and enable them to sing with a brisk chirp. Still another large subfamilv of the Tettigoniidae is the Fro. 3oEE. The Coulee cricket, Perauabrus srbri¢ollis, maie and female, an e×ample of a cricketlike member of the katydid family Rhadophorinae, including the insects known as "camel crickets." But these are ail wingless, and therefore silent. TI-IE CRICKET I¢AlXlIL'," The chirp of the cricket is probably the most familiar note of ail orthopteran music. But the only cricket com- monly known to the public is the black field cricket, the lively chirper of out vards and gardens. His European cousin, the house cricket, is famous as the "cricket on the hearth" on acconnt of his fondness for fireside warmth which so stimulates him that he must express his animation in song. This bouse cricket bas been known as Gryllus since the time of the ancient Greeks and Romans, and his naine has been ruade the basis for the naine of his family, the Gryllidae, for there are numerous other crickets, some that live in trees, some in shrubbery, some on the ground, and others in the earth. The crickets bave long slender antennae like those of the katydids, and also stridulating organs on the bases of the wings, and ears in their front legs. But they differ from the katydids in having only three .ioints in their feet (.Fig. 17 C). The cricket's foot in this respect resembles the foot [SSl INSECTS of the grasshopper (A), but usually differs from that of the grasshopper in having the basal joint smooth or hairy ail aroundor with only one pad on the under surface. In most crickets, also, the second joint of the foot is very small. OEAC du Sc l:L i, Cu(fv) i  C c,,  D c Fe. 33- The wings of a tree cricket A, right front wing of an immature female, showing normal arrangement of veins: 8r, subcosta; R, radius; ./, media; Cut, first branch of cubitus; second branch of cubitus; zH, first anal. (From Comstock and Needham) B, front wing of an adult female of the narrow-winged tree cricket C, front wing of an immature maie, showing widening of inner hall to form vibrating area, or tympanum, and modification of veins in this area. (From Comstock and Needham) D, right front wing of adult maie of the narrow-winged tree cricket; the second branch of cubitus (Cu.-) becomes the curved file rein ([v); s, the scraper Some crickets have large wings, some small wings, some no wings at ail. The females are provided with long oviposi- tors for placing their eggs in twigs of trees or in the ground (Figs. 35, 36) • The musical or stridulating organs of the crickets are similar to those of the katydids, being formed from the veins of the basal parts of the front wings. But in the crickets the organs are equally developed on each wing, and it looks as if these insects could play with either wing up- permost. Yet most of them consistently keep the right [s6l THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS wing on top and use the file of this wing and the scraper of the left, just the reverse of the custom among the katvdids. "lahe front wings of maie crickets are usually very broad and have the outer edges turned down in a wide flap that folds over the sides of the body when the wings are closed. The wings of the females are simpler and usually smaller. The differences between the front wings in the maie and the female of one of the tree crickets (Fig. 37) is shown at B and D of Figure 33. The inner half of the wing (or the rear half when the wing is extended) is very large in the maie (D) and has only a few veins, which brace or stiffen the wide membranous vibratory area or t_vmpanlm. The inner basal part, or a,lal area, of the maie wing is also larger than in the female and contains a prominent rein (CI«_) which lnakes a sharp curve toward the edge of the wing. This rein has the stridulating file on its under sur- face. The veins in the wing of an adult female (B) are comparatively simple, and those of a young female (A) are more so. But the complicated venation of the maie wing has been de- veloped from the simple type of the female, which is that common to in- sects in general. The wing of a young maie (C) is hot so different from that of a young female (A) but that the cor- responding veins can be identified, as shown by the lettering. Taking next the wing of the adult maie (D), it is an easv marrer to determine which veins Fro.a4. A rnole cricket, bave been distorted to produce the N««rtitta a,*Z*«tt* stridulating apparatus. When the tree crickets sing thev elevate the wings above the back like two broad fans (igs. 37, 4 °) and move them sidewise so that the file of the right rubs over the scraper of the left. [57] INSECTS THE MOLE CRICKETS The mole crickets (Fig..34) are solemn creatures of the earth. They lire like true moles in burrows underground, usually in wet fields or along streams. Their forefeet are broad and turned outward for digging like the iront feet of moles. But the mole crickets differ from real moles in having wings, and sometimes thev leave their burrows at night and fly about, being occasionally attracted to lights. Their front wings are short and lie fiat on the back over the base of the abdomen, but the long hind wings are folded lengthwise over the back and project beyond the tip of the body. Notwithstanding the gloomy nature of their habitat, the maie mole crickets sing. Their music, however, is solemn and monotonous, being alwavs a series of loud, deep-toned chirps, like churp, churp, cAurp, repeated very regularly about a hundred rimes a minute and continued indefinitelv if the singer is hot disturbed. Since the notes are most frequently heard coming from a marshy field or from the edge of a stream, they might be supposed to be those of a small frog. It is diPficult to capture a mole cricket in the act of singing, for he is most likely standing at an opening in his burrow into which he retreats before he is discovered. THE FIELD CRICKETS This group of crickets includes Grvllus as its typical member, but entomologists give firstplace to a smaller brown cricket called Nemobms. There are numerous spe- cies of this genus, but a widely distributed one is N. ïitta- tus, the striped ground cricket. This is a little cricket, about three-eighths of an inch in ]ength, brownish in color, with three darker stripes on the abdomen, common in fields and dooryards (Fig. 35)- In the fall the females lay their eggs in the ground with their slender ovipositors (D, E) and the eggs (F) hatch the following summer. The song of the maie Nemobius is a continuous twitter- [58] THE GRAS.'.;H()PPER'S CO[ IN."; / F D Fç. 3- The striped ground cricket, NemoMus "oittatus A, B, fema]es, distinguished by the long ovipositor. Ci a maie. D, a fema]e in the act of thrusting her ovipositor in to the ground. E, a female, with oviposi- tor fui] length in the ground, and extruding an egg from its tip. F, an eggin the ground ing trill so faint that you must listen attentively to hear it. In singing the maie raises his wings at an angle of about 45 °. The stridulating vein is set with such fine ridges that [591 INSECTS they would seem incapable of producing even those whis- permg Nemobius notes. Most of the muscial instruments of insects can be ruade to produce a swish, a creak, or a grating noise of some sort when handled with our clumsy fingers or with a pair of forceps, but only the skill of the living insect can bring from them the tones and the volume of sound they are capable of producing. Our best-known cricket is Gryllus, the black cricket (Fig. 36), so common everywhere in fields and yards and occasionally entering houses. The true house cricket of Europe, Grvllus domesticus, bas become naturalized in this country anal occurs in small numbers through the Eastern States. But out common native species is Grvllus. assimilis. Etomologists distinguish several varieties, though thev are inclined to regard them ail as belonging to the one species. Mature individuals of Gryllus are particularly abundant in the fall; in southern New Egland they appear every year at this season by the millions, swarming everywhere, hopping across the country roads in such numbers that it is impossible to ride or walk without crushing them. Most of the females lay their eggs in September and October, de- positing them singly in the ground (Fig..]6 D, E) in the saine way that Nemobius does. These eggs hatch about the first ofJune the following year. But at this saine rime another group of individuals reaches maturity, a group that hatched in midsummer of the preceding year and passed the winter in an immature condition. The males of these begin singing at Washington during the last part of May, in Connecticut the first of June, and may be heard until the end of June. Then there is seldom anv sound of Gryllus until the middle of August, when the males of the spring group begin to mature. From now on their notes become more and more common and by early rail they are to be heard almost continuouslv day and night until frost. The notes of Grvllus are always vivacious, usually cheer- fui, sometimes angry in tone. They are merelv chirps, and [6o1 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS may be known from ail others by a broken or vibratory sound. There is little music in them, but the player has enough conceit to make up for this lack. Two vigorous Flc. 3 6. The comrnon black cricket, Gryllus assimilis A, a rnale with wings raised in the attitude of singing. B, a female with long - ovipositor. C, young crickets recently hatched (enlarged about 2 rimes). D, a female inserting her ovipositor in the ground. E, a female with ovipositor buried full length in the ground [6,1 INSECTS males that were kept in a cage together with several females gave each other little peace. Whenever one began to play his fiddle the other started up, to the plain disgust of the first one, and either was always greatly annoyed and provoked to anger if any of the females happened to run into him while he was playing, lfone male was fiddling alone and the other approached him, the first dashed at the intruder with jaws open, increasing the speed of his strokes at the saine rime till the notes became almost a shrill whistle. The other male usuallv retaliated by play- ing, too, in an apparent attempt to outfiddle the first. The chirps flore both sides now came quicker and quicker, their pitch mounting higher and higher, till each player reached his limit. Then both would stop and begin over again. Neither maie ever inflicted any actual damage on his rival, and in spire of their savage threats neither was ever seen really to grasp any part of the other with hisjaws. Ether would dash madly at a female that happened to disturb him while fiddling, but neither was ever seen to threaten a female with open jaws. The weather bas much influence on the spirits of the males; their chirps are alwavs loudest and their rivalry keenest when it is bright and warm. Setting their cage in the sun on «)ld days always started the two males at once to singing. Out of doors, though the crickets sing in all weather and at ail hours, variations of their notes in tone and strength according to the temperature are very notice- able. This is hot owing to anv effect of humiditv on their instruments, for the two belligérent males kept in the bouse never had the retaper on cold and gloomy days that char- acterized their actions and their song on days that were warm and bright. This, in connection with the fact that their music is usuallv aimed at each other in a spirit clearly suggestive of vindiciveness and anger, is ail good evidence that Grvllus sings to express/limse/.[ and hot to "charm the females." In fact, it is often hard to feel certain whether he is singing or swearing. If we could understand the 1621 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS words, we might be shocked at the awful language he is hurling at his rival. However, swearing is only a form of emotional expression, and singing is another. Gryllus, like an opera singer, simply expresses ail his emotions in music, and, whether we can understand the words or not, we understand the sentiment. At last one of the two caged rivals died; whether from natural causes or by foui means was never ascertained. He was alive early on the dav of his demise but apparently weak, though still intact. In the middle of the afternoon, however, he lay on his back, his hind legs stretched out straight and stiff; only a few movements of the front legs showed that life was not yet quite extinct. One antenna was lacking and the upper lip and adjoining parts of the face were gone, evidently chewed off. But this is hot neces- sarily evidence that death had followed violence, for, in cricketdom, violence more commonly follows death; that is, cannibalism is substituted for interment. A few days before, a dead female in the cage had been devoured quickly, ail but the skull. After the death of this maie, the remaining one no longer fiddled so often, nor with the saine sharp challenging tone as before. Yet this could hot be attributed to sadness; he had despised his rival and had clearlv desired to be rid of him; his change was due rather to the lack of any special stimulus for expression. THE TREE CRICKETS The unceasing ringing that alwavs rises on summer eve- nings as soon as the shadows begin to darken, that shrill melody of sound that seems to corne from nothing but from everywhere out of doors, is mostly the chorus of the tree crickets, the blend of notes from innumerable harpists playing unseen in the darkness. This sound must be the most famiIiar of ail insect sounds, but the musicians them- selves are but little known to the general public. And when one of them happens to corne to the window or into the house and plays in solo, the sound is so surprisingly [631 INSECTS loud that the player is hot suspected of being one of that band whose mingled notes are heard outside softened by distance and mufiqed by screens of foliage. Out of doors the music of an individual cricket is so elusive that even when you think you have located the ex- Fro. 37- The snowy tree cricket, Oecanthus niveus The upper figures, males, the one on the right with fore wings raised vertically in attitude of singing below, a female, with narrow wings folded close against the body act bush or vine from which it comes the notes seem to shift and dodge. Surely, you think, the player must be under that leaf; but when you approach your ear to it, the sound as certainly cornes from another over yonder; but here you are equally convinced that it cornes from still [641 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS another place farther off. Finally, though, it strikes the ear with such intensity that there can be no mistaking the source ofits origin, and, right there in plain sight on a leaf sits a little, delicate, slim-legged, pale-green insect with hazy, transparent sails outspread above its back. But can such an insignificant creature be making such a deafen- ing sound! It has required very cautious tactics to ap- proach thus close without stopping the music, and it needs but a touch on stem or leaf to make it cease. But now those gauzy sails that before were a blurred vignette have acquired a definite outline, and a little more disturbance may cause them to be lowered and spread fiat on the creature's back. The music will not begin anew until you have passed a period of silent waiting. Then, suddenly, the lacy films go up, once more their outlines blur, and that intense scream again pierces your ear. In short, you are witnessing a private performance of the broad-winged tree cricket, Oecanthus latipennis. But if you pay attention to the notes of other singers, you will observe that there is a variety of airs in the medley gomg on. Many notes are long trills like the one just identified, lasting indefinitely; but others are softer purr- ing sounds, about two seconds in length, while still others are short beats repeated regularly a hundred or more times every minute. The last are the notes of the snowy tree cricket, Oecanthus niveus, so-called on account of his pale- ness. He is really green in color, but a green of such a very pale shade that he looks almost white in the dark. The maie (Fig. 37) is a little longer than hall an inch, his wings are wide and fiat, overlapping when folded on the back, with the edges turned down against the sides of the body. The female is heavier-bodied than the maie, but her wings are narrow, and when folded are furled along the back. She has a long ovipositor for inserting her eggs into the bark of trees. The males ofthe snowy cricket reach maturity and begin to sing about the middle of July. The singer raises his [65] INSECTS wings vertically above the back and vibrates them sidewise so rapidly that they are momentarily blurred with each note. The sound is that treat, treat, treat, treat already de- scribed, repeated regularly, rhythmically, and monoto- nously all through the night. At the first of the season there may be about  5 beats every minute, but later, on hot nights, the strokes become more rapid and mount to 6o a minute. In the fall again the rate decreases on cool evenings to perhaps a hundred. And finally, at the end of the season, when the players are benumbed with cold, the D C D F«. 3 8. Distinguishing marks on the basal segments of the antennae of common species of tree crickets A, B» narrow-winged tree cricket, Otcanthus angustiptnnis.. C, snowy tree cricket, niveus. D, four-spotted tree cricket, nigri- cornis çuadripunctatus. E, black-horned tree cricket, nigricornis. F, broad-winged tree cricket, latiptnnis notes become hoarse bleats repeated slowly and irregularly as if produced with pain and difficulty. The several species of tree crickets belonging to the genus Oecanthus are similar in appearance, though the males differ somewhat in the width of the wings and some species are more or less diffused with a brownish color. But on their antennae most species bear distinctive marks (Fig. 38) by which they may be easily identified. The snowy cricket, for example, bas a single oral spot of black on the under side of each of the two basal antennal joints (Fig. 38 C). Another, the narrow-winged tree cricket, bas [66] THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS a spot on the second.joint and a black J on the first (A, B). A third, the four-spotted cricket (D), has a dash and dot side by side on each joint. A fourth, the black-horned or striped tree cricket (-lï), bas tvèo spots on each joint more or less run together, or sometimes has the whole base of the antenna blackish, while the color may also spread over the fore parts of the body and, on some individuals, form Fç...19- Maie and female of the narrow-winged tree cricket, Oecanthus angusti- The female is feeding on a liquid exuded from the back of the maie, while the latter holds his fore wings in the attitude of singing. (Enlarged about 3 times} stripes along the back. A fifth species, the broad-winged (F), has no marks on the antennae, which are uniformly brownish. The narrow-winged tree cricket (Oecanthus angusti- permis) is almost everywhere associated with the snowy, but its notes are very easily distinguished. They consist of slower, purring sounds, usually prolonged about two seconds, and separated by intervals of the same length, but as rail approaches they become slower and longer. Always thev are sad in tone and sound far off. The three other common tree crickets, the black-horned or striped cricket, Oecanthus ngricornis, the four-spotted, [67] INSECTS Flç. #o. A maie of the broad- winged tree crlcket, Oecanthu latipennis, with wings elevated in position ofsinging, seen from above and behind, showing the basin (B) on bis back into which the liquid is exuded that attracts the female O. nigricornis quadripunctatus, and the broad-winged, O. lati- permis, are ail trillers; that is, their music consists of a long, shrill whir kept up indefinitely. Of these the broad-winged cricket makes the loudest sound and the one predominant near Washing- ton. The black-horned is the common triller farther north, and is particularly a daylight singer. In Connecticut his shrill note rings everywhere along the road- sides, on warm bright afternoons of September and October, as the player sits on leaf or twig fully exposed to the sun. At this season also, both the snowy and the narrow-winged sing by day but usually later in the after- noon and generally from more concealed places. We should naturally like to know why these little creatures are such persistent singers and of what use their music is to them. Do the males t really sing to charm and attract the females as is usually pre- sumed? We do not know; but sometimes when a maie is sing- ing, a female approaches him flore behind, noses about on his back, and soon finds there a d.eep basinlike cavity situated just Fc.. 41. The back of the behind the bases of the elevated third thoracic segment of the wings. This basin contains a broad-winged tree cricket, with its basin (B) that receives clear liquid which the female secretionfromtheglands(GI) proceeds fo lap up very eagerly, inside the body 168] THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS as the maie remains quiet with wings upraised though he bas ceased to play (Fig. 39). We must suspect, then, that in this case the female has been attracted to the maie rather by his confectionerv offering than by his music. The purpose of the latter, tJaerefore, would appear to be to advertise to the female the whereabouts of the maie, who she knows has sweets to offer; or if the liquid is sour or bitter it is all the same--the female likes it and cornes after it. If, now, this luring of the female sometimes ends in marriage, we mav see here the real reason for the male's possessing his mus'ic-making organs and his instinct to play them so continuouslv. A male cricket with h[s front wings raised, seen from above and behind as he might look to a female, is shown in Figure 4 o. The basin (B) on his back is a deep cavity on the dorsal plate of the third thoracic segment. A pair of large branching glands (,Fig. 4, GI) within the body open just inside the rear lip of the basin, and these glands fur- nish the liquid that the female obtains. There is another kind of tree cricket belonging to an- other genus, Neoxabia, called the two-spotted tree cricket, N. bipunctata, on accourir of two pairs of dark spots on the wings of the female. This cricket is larger than any of the species of Oecanthus and is of a pinkish brown color. It is widelv distributed over the eastern hall of the United States, but is comparatively rare and seldom met with. Allard savs its notes are low, deep, mellow trills con- tinued for" a few seconds and separated by short intervals, as are the notes of the narrow-winged Oecanmus, but that their tone more resembles that of the broad-winged. THE BUSH CRICKETS The bush crickets differ from the other crickets in having the middle joint in the foot larger and shaped more like the thirdjoint in the foot ofa katydid (Fig. 7 B). Among the bush crickets there is one notable singer common in the neighborhood of Washington. This is the jumping bush [691 INSECTS cricket, Orocharis saltator (Fig. 4z), who cornes on the stage late in the season, about the middle of August, or shortly after. His notes are loud, clear, piping chirps with a rising inflection toward the end, suggestive of the notes of a srnall tree toad, and they at once str]ke the listener as sornething new and different in the insect prograrn. The play- ers, however, are at first very hard to lo- cate, for they do hot -_ perform continuously --one note seerns to corne frorn here, a  second from over there, and a third frorn a different an- gle, so that it is al- rnost impossible to place any one of thern. But after a week or so the crick- Fiç. 4- The lumping bush cricket, Orocharis saltator ets becoITle more nu- Upper figure, a maie; lower, a female ITlerous and each player more persistent till soon their notes are the predorni- nant sounds in the.nightly concerts, standing out loud and clear against the whole tree-cricket chorus. As Riley says, this chirp "is so distifictive that when once studied it is never lost arnid the louder racket of the katydids and other night choristers." After the first of Septernber it is hot hard to locate one of the perforrners, and when discovered with a flashlight, he is round to be a rnediurn-sized, brown, short-legged cricket, built sornewhat on the style of Grvllus but srnaller (Fig. 49-). The maie, however, while snging raises his wings straight up, after the rnanner of the tree crickets, and he too, carries a basin ofliquid on his back rnuch sought after [7 ° ] THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS by the female. In fact the liquid is so attractive to her that, at least in a cage, she is sometimes so persistent in her efforts to obtain it that the maie is clearly annoyed and tries to avoid her. One maie was observed to say very distinctly by his actions, as he repeatedly tried to escape the nibbling of a female, presumably his wife since she was taken with him when captured, "I do wish you would quit pestering me and let me sing!" Here is another piece of evidence suggesting that the maie cricket sings to express his own emotions, whatever they may be, and hot pri- marily to attract the female. But if, as in the case of the tree crickets, his music tells the female where she may find her favorite confection, and this in turn leads to matrimony, when the male is in the proper mood, it suggests a practical use and a rea- son for the stridulating apparatus and the song of the maie insect. [71 ] V'A LKI NG-STIc KS AND I.EA " INSECTS Talent often seems to run in familles, or in re- lated familles, but it does hot necessarily express it- self in the saine wav. If the katydids and crickets FIG. 43" The common walking-stick in- are noted musicians, sect, Diapheromera femorata, of theeastern some of their relatives, var, of the United States. (Length  belonging to the family Phasmidae, are incomparable mimics. Their mimicry, however, is hot a conscious imitation, but is one bred in their bodily forms through a long line of ancestors. INSECTS If sometime in the woods you should chance to see a short, slender piece of twig suddenly corne to lire and slowiv walk away on six slim legs, the marvel would not be a miracle, but a walking-stick in- sect (Fig. 43). These insects are fairly common in the eastern parts of the United States, but on ac- count of their resemb]ance to twigs, and their habit ofremaining perfectly quiet for a long time with the body pressed close to a branch of a tree, they are more frequently overlooked than seen. Sometimes, however, they occur locally in great numbers. It is supposed that the stick insects so closely resemble twigs for the pur- pose of protection from their enemies, but it has hot been shown just what enemies they avoid by their elusive shape. The stick in- sects are more common in the South and in tropical countries, where some attain a remarkable length, one species flore Affica, for example, being eleven inches long when full-grown. In New Guinea there lives a species that looks more like a small club than FIG. 44- A gigantic spiny walking-stickinsect, Eury- a stick, it being a large, heavy- canthus horrida, from New bodied, spm.y creature, nearly Guinea. (Length g3" SiX inches m length and an inches) inch in width through the thick- est part of its body (Fig. 44)- Other members of the phasmid family have specialized on imitating leaves. These insects have wings in the adult stage, and, of course, the wings make it easier for [7"-1 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS them to take the form of leaves. One famous species that lives in the East Indies looks so much like two leaves stuck together that it is truly marvelous that an insect could be so fashioned (Fig. 45). The whole body is fiat, and about three inches long, the bases of the legs are broad and irregu- larly notched, the abdomen is spread out almost as thin as a real leaf, and the leafiike wings are held close above it. Finally, the color, which is leaf-green or brown, gives the last touch necessary for complete dissim- ulation. TIqE Mar'rltS I t is often observed that genius may be perverted, or put to evil purposes. Here is a family of insects, the Man- tidae, related to the grass- hoppers, katydids, and crick- Fro. 45. A tropical leaf insect, Pulchriph.vllium pulchrfoliurn, a mernber of the walking-stick farn- ily. (Length 3 inches) ets, the members of which are clever enough, but are deceitful and malicious. The praying mantis, Stagmomantis carolina (Fig. 46), though he may go by the aliases of "rear-horse" and "soothsayer," gets his more common naine from the prayerful attitude he commonly assumes when at rest. The long, necklike prothorax, supporting the small head, is elevated and the front legs are meekly folded. But if you examine closely one of these folded legs, you will see that the second and third parts are armed with suspicious- looking spikes, which are concealed when the two parts are closed upon each other. In truth, the mantis is an arch hypocrite, and his devotional attitude and meek looks betoken no humility of spirit. The spiny arms, [731 IN  ECTS so innocently folded upon the breast, are direful weapons held ready to strike as soon as some unsuspecting insect happens within their reach. Let a small grasshopper corne near the posing saint: immediately a sly tilt of the head belles the suppliant manner, the crafty eyes leer upon the approaching insect, losing no detail of his movements. Then, suddenly, without warning, the pray- ing mantis becomes a demon in action. With a nice cal- culation of distance, a swift movement, a snatch of the Fro. 4 6. The praying mantis, 8tagmomantis carolina, and remains of its last meal. (Length v..* inches) terrible clasps, the unlucky grasshopper is a doomed captive, as securelv held as if a steel trap had closed upon his body. As rhe'hapless creature kicks and wrestles, the jaws of the captor sink inro the back of his head, evidently in search of the brain; and hardlv do his weakening strug- gles cease belote the victim isdevoured. Legs, wings, and other fragments unsuitable to the taste of an epicure are thrown aside, when once more the mantis sinks into repose, piously folds his arms, and meekly awaits the [741 THE GRASSHOPPER'S COUSINS chance arrival of the next ..... -- course in his ever unfinished "' / banquet of living fare. « / ..... Some exotic species of mantids have the sides of kil II the prothorax extended to forma wide shield (Fig. 47), beneath which the forelegs are folded and completely hidden. It is hot clear what advantage they derive from this device, but it seems to be one more expression of deceit. Of course, as we shall take occasion to observe later, goodness ness are largely FG. 48. Egg case of a mantis attached to a twig, 8ta.momantis carolina and bad- Fro. 47. A mantis from Ecuador with matters of a shieldlike extension of its back. (Length 3' inches) relativity. The mantis is an evil creature from the standpoint of a grasshopper, but he would be regarded as a benefactor by those who bave a grudge against grass- hoppers or against other insects that the mantis destroys. Hence, we must reckon the mantis as at least a beneficial insect relative to human welfare. A large species of mantis, introduced a few years ago into the eastern States from China, is now regarded as a valuable agricul- rural asset because of the number of harmful insects it destroys. The mantids lay their eggs in large cases stuck to the twigs of trees (Fig. 48). The substance of which the case is ruade is similar to that with which the locusts inclose their eggs, and is exuded from the [751 INSECTS bodv of the female mantis when the eggs are laid. The young mantids are active little creatures, without wings but with long legs, and it is the rate of those unprotected green bugs, the aphids, or plant lice, that in(est the leaves of almost ail kinds of plants, to become the principal victims of their vouthful appetites. [76] CHAPTER 11I ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS ,''E used to speak quite confidentlv of time as something definite, measurable bv the clock, and of a vear or a cen- tury as specific quantities ofduration. In ttiis present age of relativity, however, we do hot feel so certain about these things. Geologists calculate in years the probable age of the earth, and the length of time that has elapsed since certain events took place upon it, but their figures mean only that the earth has gone around the sun approximately so many rimes during the interval. ! In biology it signifies nothing that one animal has been on the earth for a million years, and another for a hundred million, for the unit of evolution is hot a year, but a generation. If one animal, such as most insects, has from one to many generations every year, and another, such as man, has only four or rive in a century, it is evident that the first, by evolutionary reckoning, will be vastly older than the second, even though the two have ruade the saine number of trips with the earth around the sun. An insect that antedates man by several hundred million years, therefore, is ancient indeed. The roach scarcely needs an introduction, being quite well known to ail classes of society in every inhabited part of the world. That he has long been established in human communities is shown bv the fact that the various nations have bestowed different names tapon him. His common English naine of "cockroach" is said to corne from the Spanish, cucaracha. The Germans call him, rather di,s- respectfully, Kiichenschabe, which signifies "kitchen [771 INSECTS louse." The ancient Romans called him Blatta, and on this his scientific familv naine of Blattidae is based. A small species of Europe, named by rhe entomologisrs C Fc. 49- The four species of common household roaches A, the German roach, or Croton bug, Blattella gerrnanica (length N inch). B, the American cockroach, Periplaneta arnericana (length 3s inches). C, the Australian cockroach, Periplaneta australasiae (length i/ci/ inches). D, the wingless female of the Oriental roach, Blatta orientalis (length i/ inches). E, the winged maie of the Oriental roach (length  inchl [78] ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS Blattella germanica, which isnow our most common American roach, received the nickname of "Croton bug" in New York, because somehow he seemed to spread with the introduction of the Çroton Valley water system, and this appelation has stuck to him in many parts of the cotm try. The Croton bug, or German roach ('Fig. 49 A), is the smallest of the "domestic" varieties of roaches. It is that rather slender, pale-brown species, about five-eighths of an inch in length, with the two dark spots on the front shield of its body. This roach is the principal pest of the kitchen in the eastern part of the United States, and prob- C A B FIG. 50. Egg cases of rive spectes of roaches. (Twice natural size) A, egg case of the Australian roach (fig. 49 C). B, that of the American roach (fig. 49 B); the other three are ruade by out-of-door species ably the best support of the trade in roach powders. Sev- eral other larger species are fortunately less numerous, but still familiar enough. Among these are one called the American roach (Fig. 49 B), a second known as the Australian roach (C), and a third as the Oriental roach (D, E). These four species of cockroaches are all great travelers and recognize no ties of nationality. They are equally at home on land and at sea, and, as uninvited [791 INSECTS passengers on ships, they have spread to ail countries where ships bave gone. Besides the household roaches, there are great numbers of species that lire out of doors, especially in warm and tropical regions. Most of these are plain brown of various shades, or blackish, but some are green, and a few are spotted, banded, or striped. Different species vary much in size, some of the largest reaching a length of four inches, measured to the tips of the folded wings, while the smallest are no longer than three thirty-seconds of an inch in length. They nearly ail bave the familiar flattened form, with the head bent down beneath the front part of the body, and the long, slender antennae projecting forward. Most species bave wings which they keep closely folded over the back. In the Oriental roach, the wings of the female are very short (Fig. 49 D), a character which gives them such a different appearance from the males (E) that the two sexes were formerly supposed to be differen t species. The roach, of course, was hot designed to be a household insect, and it lived out of doors for ages before man con- structed dwellings, but it happens that its instincts and its form of body particularly adapt it to a lire in bouses. Its keen sense, its agility, its nocturnal habits, its omnivorous appetite, and its flattened shape are ail qualities very fitting for success as a domestic pest. Many kinds of roaches give birth to living young; but most ofour common species lay eggs, which they inclose in hard-shelled capsules. The material of the capsule is a tough but flexible substance resembling horn, and is pro- duced as a secretion by a special gland in the body of the female opening into the egg duct. The capsule is formed in the egg duct, and the eggs are discharged into it while the case is held in the orifice of the duct. When the re- ceptacle is full its open edge is closed, and the eggs are thus tightly sealed within it. The sealed border is finely notched, and transverse impressions on the surface of the capsule indicate the position of the eggs within it. [ 8ol ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS The Croton bug, or German roach (Fig. 49 A), makes a small fiat tabloid egg case, which the female usually carries about with her for some time projecting from the end of her body, and sometimes the eggs hatch while she is still carrylng the case. The American and Australian roaches (Fig. 49 B, C) make egg cases much resemblin miniature pocketbooks or tobacco pouches, about three-eighths or halfan inch in length, with a serrated clasp along the upper edge (Fig. 5 ° A, B). The cases of some of the smaller species of roaches are only one-sixteenth of an inch long FiG. 51. Young of the German roacia, or Croton bug (fig. 49 A), m various stages just before and after hatching A, the young roach in the egg just before hatching. B, the young roach just after hatching, shedding its embryonic covering membrane. C, young roach after shedding the embryonic covering. D, the saine individual hall an hour old (C), while larger species may make a case three-quarters of an inch in length (È). The embryo roaches mature within the eggs, and when they are ready to hatch they emerge inside the egg case. By some means, the roughened edge of the case where it was last closed is opened to allow the imprisoned insects to escape. Small masses of the tiny creatures now bulge out, and finally the whole wriggling contents of the cap- sule is precting from the dit. First one or two indi- viduals free themselves, then several together rail out, then more of them, until soon the case containing the empty eggshells is deserted. [8] INSECTS \Vhen the young roaches first liberate themselves from the capsule, they are helpless creatures, for each is con- tained in a close-fitting membrane that binds its folded legs and antennae tightly to the body and keeps the head pressed down against the breast (Fig. 5I A). The inclos- ing sheath, however, a film so delicate as to be almost invisible, is soon burst by the struggling of the little roach anxious to be free--it splits and rapidly slides down over the bodv (B), from which it is at last pushed off. The shrunken, discarded remnant of the skin is now such an insignificant flake that it scarce seems possible it so re- cently could have enveloped the body of the insect. The newly liberated young roach dashes off on its slim legs with an activity quite surprising in a creature that bas never had the use of its legs belote. It is so slender of figure (Fig. 5  C) that it does hot look like a roach, and it is pale and colorless except for a mass of bright green material m its abdomen. But, almost at once, it begins to change; the back plates of the thorax flatten out, the body shortens by the overlapping of its segments, the abdomen takes on a broad, pear-shaped outline, the head is retracted be- neath the prothoracic shield, and by the end of hall an hour the little insect is unmistakably a young cockroach (D). The roaches bave a potent enemy in the bouse centipede, that creature of so many legs ('Fig. 5) that it looks like an animated blur as it occasionally darts across the living- room floor or disappears in the shades of the basement before vou are sure whether you bave seen something or hot, but which is often trapped in the bathtub, where its appearance is likely to drive the housewife into hysteria. [.nless you are fond of roaches, however, the bouse centi- pede should be protected and encouraged. The writer once placed one of these centipedes in a covered glass dish containing a female Croton bug and a capsule of ber eggs which were hatching. No sooner were the young roaches running about tban tbe centipede began a feast which [J ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS ended only when the last of the brood had been devoured. The mother roa(h was not at the time molested, but next morning she lay dead on her back, her head severed and dragged some distance from the body, which was sucked dry of its juices--mute evidence of the tragedy that had befallen some- time in the night, probably when the pangs of returning hunger stirred the centipede to renewed activitv. The bouse centipede does hot confine itself to a diet of live roaches, for it will eat almost any kind of food, but itis never a pest of the household larder. Most species of roaches have two pairs of well-developed wings, which thev ordinarily keep folded over the back, for in their usunl pursuits the domestic spe- cies do hot often fly, except oc- casionallv when hard pressed to avoid capture. The front wings are longer and thicker than the hind wings, and are laid over the latter, which are rhin and folded fanwise when not in use. 111 these characters the roaches resemble the grasshoppers and katydids, and their famih', the Blattidae, is Fro. ç2. The common house centipede, &tligtra forctps natural size), a destroyer of young roaches usually placed with these insects in the order Orthoptera. The wings of insects are interesting objects to studv. When spread out fiat, as are those of the roach shown in Figure 53, thev are seen to consist of a thin membranous tissue strengtlened by manv branching ribs, or veins, extending outward from the base. The wings of ail insects are constructed on the saine general plan and have the [831 INSECTS saine primary veins; but, since the great specialty of in- sects is flight, in their evolution they bave concentrated on the wings, and the different groups bave tried out different styles of venation, with the result that now each is dist]nguished by some particular pattern in the arrangement of the vems and their branches. The entomologist can thus hot onlv distinguish by their wing structure the various orders o(insects, as the Orthoptera, the dragonflies, the moths, the bees, and the flies, but in F*ç. _ç'. Wings of a cockroach, Periplaneta, showing the rein pattern characteristic of the roach family manv cases he can identifv families and even genera. Part"cularlv ;tre the wings ol  value to the student of fossil insects, for the bodies are so poorly preserved in most cases that without the wings the paleontologist could bave ruade little headwav in the studv of insects of the past. As it is, however, much is knowa of insects of former times, and a studv of their fossil remains bas con- tributed a great deal to our knowledge of this most versatile and widespread group of animais. [841 ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS The paleontological history of life on the earth shows us that the land bas been inhabited successively by different forms of animais and plants. A particular group of creatures appears upon the scene, first in comparative insignificance; then it increases in numbers, in diversity of forms, and usually in the size of individuals, and may become the dominant form of lire; then again it falls back to insignificance as its individuals decrease in size, its species in numbers, until perhaps its type becomes extinct. Meanwhile another group, representing another type of structure, cornes into prominence, flourishes, and declines. It is a mistake, however, to get the impression that ail forms of life have had this succession of up and down in their history, for there are manv animais that have existed with little change for immense periods of rime. The history of insects gives us a good example of per- manence. The insects must have begtm tobe insects somewhere in those remote periods of time before the earliest known records of animais were preserved in the rocks. They must bave been present during the age when the water swarmed with sharks and great armored fishes; they certainly flourished during the era when our coal beds were being deposited; thev saw the rise of the huge amphibians and the great reptilian beasts, the Dinosaurus, the l«hth),osaurus, the Plesiosaurus, the .losasaurus, and ail the test of that monster tribe whose names are now familiar household words and whose bones are to be seen in ail our museums. The insects were branching out into new forms during the time when birds had teeth and were being evolved from their reptile ancestors, and when the flowering plants were beginning to decorate the land- scape; they were present from the beginning of the age of mammals toits culmination in the great fur-bearing creatures but recently extinct; they attended the advent of man and have followed man's whole evolution to the present rime; they are with us yet--a vigorous race that INSECTS shows no sign of weakening or of decrease in numbers. Of ail the land animais, the insects are the true b[ue-blood aristocrats by length of pedigree. The first remains of insects known are found in the upper beds of the rocks laid down in the geological period of the earth's history known as the Carboniferous. Dur- Fro. 5,t. A group of common Carboniferous plants reaching the sze and pro- portions of large trees. (From Chamberlin and Salisbury, drawn by Mildred 1Marvin from restorations of fossil specimens.) Courtesy of Henry Hoir & Co. Of the two large trees in the foreground, the one on the left is a Sigillaria, that on the right a Lepidodendron; of the two large central trees in the background the left 3 a Cordaite's, the right a tree fern; the rail stalks in the outermost circle are Calamites, plants related to our horsetail ferns ing Carboniferous rimes much of the land along the shores of inland seas or lakes was marshy and supported great forests from which our coal deposits have been formed. But the Carboniferous landscape would have had a strange and curious look to us, accustomed is we 1861 ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS are to an abundance of hard-wood, leafy trees and shrubs, and a multitude of flowering plants. None of these forms of vegetation had yet appeared. lXluch of the undergrowth of the Carboniferous swamps was composed of fernlike plants, many of which were, indeed, true ferns, and perhaps the ancestors of our modern brackens. Some of these ancient ferns grew to a great size, and rose above the rest in treelike forms, at- taining a height of sixty feet and more, to branch out in a feathery crown of huge spreading fronds. Another group of plants characteristic of the Carboniferous flora comprised the seed ferns, so named because, while closely resembling ferns in general appearance, thev differed from true ferns in that they bore seeds instead of spores. The seed ferns were mostly small plants with delicate, ornate leaves, and they have left no descendants to modern times. Along with the numerous ferns and seed ferns in the Carboniferous swamps, there were gigantic club mosses, or lycopods, which, ascending to a height sometimes of much more than a hundred feet, were the conspicuous big trees in the forests of their day (Fig. 54)- These lycopods had long, cvlindrical trunks covered with small scales arranged in regular spiral rows. Some had thick branch- ing limbs starting from the upper part of the trunk and closelv beset with stiff, sharp-pointed leaves; others bore at the top of the trunk a great cluster of long slender leaves, giving them somewhat the aspect of a gigantic varietv of our present-day yucca, or Spanish bayonet. The bases of the larger trees expanded to a diameter of three or four feet, and were supported on huge spreading underground branches from which issued the roots--a device, perhaps, that gave them an ample foundation in the soft mud of the swamps in which they grew. The Carboniferous lycopods furnished most of our coal, and then, in later times, their places were taken by other types of vegetation. But their race is not yet extinct, INSECTS for we have numerous representatives of them with us today in those lowly evergreen plants known as club mosses, whose spreading, much-branched limbs, usually trailing on the ground, are covered bv rows of short, stiff leaves. The most familiar of the club mosses, though hot a typical species, is the "ground pine." This humble little shrub, so much sought for Christmas decoration, still in some places carpets our woods with its sort, broad, frondlike stems. In the fall when its rich dark green so pleasingly contrasts with the somber tones of the season's dying foliage, it seems tobe an expression of the vitality that has preserved the lycopod race through the millions of years which have elapsed since the days of its great ancestors. The "resurrection plant," often sold to housekeepers under false or exaggerated claires of a marvelous capacity for rejuvenation, is also a descendant of the proud lycopods of ancient rimes. In our present woodlands, along the banks of streams or in other moist pl.aces, there grows also another plant that has been preserved to us from the Carboniferous forests--the common "horsetail fern," or Equisetum, that green, rough-ribbed stalk with the whorls of slender branches growing from its joints. Out equisetums are modest plants, seldom attaining a height of more than a few feet, though in South American countries some species may reach an altitude of thirty feet; but in Carboniferous rimes their ancestors grew to the stature of trees (Fig. 54) and measured their robust stalks with the trunks of the lycopods and giant ferns. Aside from the numerous representatives of these sev- eral groups of plants, ail more or less allied to the ferns, the Carboniferous forests contained another group of treelike plants, called Cordaites, from which the cycads of later times and out present-day maidenhair tree, or ginko, are probably descended. Then, too, there were a few representatives of a type that gave origin to out modern conifers. [88] ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS It is probable that a visitor to those davs of long ago might give us a more complete account of he vegetation that grew in the Carboniferous swamps than can be known from the records of the rocks, but the paleobotanist bas a wealth of material now at hand suflîcient to give us at least a pretty reliable picture of the setting in which the earliest of known insects lived and died. And now, what were the insects like t.hat inhabited the forests of those early rimes? Were they, too, strangel fashioned creatures, fit denizens of a far-off fairyland? No, nothing of the sort, at least hot in appearance or structure, though "fit" they probably were, from a physi- cal standpoint, for insects are fitted to lire almost any- where. In short, the Carboniferous insects were prin- cipally roaches! Yes, those woods and swamps of millions of years ago were alive with roaches little different from our own familiar household pests, or from the numerous species that bave hot forsaken their native habitats for lire in the cities. Whoever looks to the geological records for evidence of the evolution of insects is sorelv disappointed, for even in the venation of the wings those early roaches (Fig. 55) were almost identical with our present species (Fig. 5.])- As typical examples of the Carboniferous roaches, the species shown in Figure 55 serve well, and anyone can see, even though the specimens lack antennae and legs, that the creatures were just common roaches. Hence, we can easily picture these ancient roaches scut- tling up the rail trunks of the scaly lycopds, and shuffling in and out among the bases of the close-set leaf stems of the tree ferns, and we shou]d expect to find an abundant infestation of them in the vegetational refuse matted on the ground, lnsects of those days must have been com- paratively free from enemies, for birds did hot yet exist, and ail that host of parasitic insects that attack other insects were not evolved until more recent rimes. Though by far the greater number of the Carboniferous [89] I N SECTS insects known are roaches, or insects closely related to roaches, there were many other forms besides. Some of these are of particular interest to entomologists because, in some ways, they are more simple in structure than are B Fro. 5g. Fossil cockroaches from Upper Carboniferous rocks A, tls«oalatta zona, round in lllinois, length of wing one inch. (From Handlirsch after Scudder.) B, Pkvloalatta caronaria, round in Germany. (From Handlirsch) any of the modern insects, and in this respect they ap- parently stand doser to the hypothetical primitive insects than do any others that we know. And yet, the charac- ters by which these oldest known insects, called the Paleodictyoptera, differ from modern forms are so slight that thev would scarcdv be noticed bv anvone except an entomo]ogist; to the casua] observer, the Paleodic- tyoptera would be just insects. Their chief distinguish- ing marks are in the pattern of the wing venation, which is more symmetrical than in other winged insects, and, therefore, probably closer to that of the primitive ances- tors of ail the winged insects. These ancient insects probably did hot fold the wings over the back, as do most present-day insects, showing thus another primitive [9ol ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS character, though nota distinctive one, since rnodern dragonflies (Fig. 58) and rnayflies (Fig. 60) likewise keep the wings extended when at test. The question of how insects "acquired wings is always one of special interest, since, while we know perfectly well that the wing of a bird or of a bat is rnerely a rnodi- fied fore lirnb, the nature of the primitive organ frorn which the insect wing bas been evolved is still a rnystery. The Paleodictyoptera, however, may throw light upon the subject, for sorne of thern had srnall fiat lobes on the lateral edges of the back plate of the prothorax, which in fossil specirnens look like undeveloped wings (Fig. 56). The presence of these prothoracic lobes, occurring as they do in sorne of the oldest known insects, bas suggested the 56. Examples of the earliest known fossil insects, called the Paleodic- tyoptera, having small lobes (a) projecting like wings from the prothorax 8tenodictya lobata (from Brongniart). B, EuMeptus danielsi (drawn from specimen in U. S. Nat. Mus.): TI, T,, Ta, back plates of three thoraclc segments idea that the true wings were evolved from similar flaps of the rnesothorax and rnetathorax. If so, we rnust pic- ture the irnrnediate ancestors of the winged insects as creatures provided with a row of three flaps on each side of the body projecting stiffly outward frorn the edges of the thoracic segrnents. Of course, the creatures could not actually fly with wings of this sort, but probably [9'] INSECTS they could glide through the air flore the branches of one tree to another as well as cana modern flying squirrel bv means of the folds of skin stretched along the sides of its bodv between the fore and the hind legs. If such lobes the/ became flexible at their bases, it required only a slight adjustment of the muscles already present in the bodv to give them motion in an up-and-down direction; and the wings of modern insects, in most cases, are still moved bv a very simple mechanism which has involved the acquisition of few extra muscles. It appears, however, that three pairs of fully-developed wings would be too many for mechanical eflïciency. In the later evolution of insects, therefore, the prothoracic lobes were never developed beyond the glider stage, and in ail modern insects this first pair of lobes bas been lost. Furthermore, it was subsequently found that swift flight is best attained with a single pair of wings; and nearly ail the more perfected insects of the present rime bave the hind pair of wings reduced in size and locked to the front pair to insure unity of action. The files bave carried this evolution toward a two-winged condition so far that thev bave practically achieved the goal, for with them the h]nd wings are so greatly reduced that they no longer bave the form or function of organs of flight, and these insects, named the Diptera, or two-winged insects, fly with one highly specialized and eflïcient pair of wings (Fig.  67). The Paleodictyoptera became extinct by the end of the Çarboniferous period, and their disappearance gives added support to the idea that they were the last sur- vivors of an earlier type of insect. But they were by no means the primitive ancestors of insects, for, in the possession of wings alone, they show that they must bave undergone a long evolution while wings were in the course of development; but of this stage in the history ofinsects we know nothing. The rocks, so far as bas yet been revealed, contain no records of insect life below the upper [9 z ] ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS beds of the Carboniferous deposits, when insects were already fully winged. This fact shows how cautious we must be in making negative statements concerning the extinct inhabitants of the earth, for we know that insects must have lived long before we have evidence of their existence. The absence of insect fossils earlier than the Carboniferous is hard to explain, because for millions of years the remains of other animais and plants had FtG. 57- Machilis, a modern representative of ancient insects before the development of wings. ¢Length of body s inch) been preserved, and have since been round in compara- tive abundance. As a consequence, we bave no concrete knowledge of insects before thev became winged creatures evo]ved almost to their modern form. At the present time there are wingless insects. Some of them show clearlv that thev are recent descendants from winged forms." Others suggest bv their structure that their ancestors never had wings. Such as these, therefore, mav have corne down to us bv a long line of descent from "the primitive wingless ancestors of all the insects. The common "fish moth," known to entomolo- gists as Lepisma, and its near relation, Machilis (Fig. 57), :tre familiar examples of the trulv wingless insects of the present time, and if their remote ancestors were as fragile and as easilv crushed as they, we mav see a reason why they never lft their impressions in the rocks. Along with the Carboniferous roaches and the Paleo- dictyoptera, there lived a few other kinds of insects, manv of which are representative of certain modern [93] INSECTS [94] ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS groups. Among the latter were dragonflies, and some of these must have been of gigantic size, for insects, because they attained a wing expanse of fully two feet, while the largest of modern dragonflies do not measure more than eight inches across the expanded wings. But the length of wing of the extinct giant dragonflies does not necessarily mean that the bulk of the body was much greater than that of the largest insects living today. In general, the insects of the past were of ordinary size, the majority of them probably matching with insects of the present time. The modern dragonflies (Fig. 58) are noted for their rapid flight and for the ability to make instantaneous changes in the direction of their course while flying. These qualities enable them to catch other insects on the wing, which constitute their food. Their wings are pro- vided with sets of special muscles, such as other insects do not possess, showing that the dragonflies are descended along a line of their own from their Carboniferous pro- genitors. They still retain a character of their ancestors in that they are unable to fold the wings fiat over the back in the manner that most other insects fold their wings when they are hot using them. The larger dragonflies hold the wings straight out from the sides of the body when at rest (Fig. 58); but a group of slender dragonflies, known as the damselflies (Plate , Fig. .), bring the wings together over the back in a vertical plane. The dragonflies are usually found most abundantly in the neighborhood of open bodies of water. Over the unobstructed surface of the water the larger sp.ecies find a convenient hunting ground; but a more important reason for their association with water is that they lay their eggs either in the water or in the stems of plants growing in or beside it. The young dragonflies (Fig. 59) are aquatic and must have an easy access to water. They are homely, often positively ugly, creatures, having none of the elegance of their parents.. They feed on other living creatures which their swlmmlng powers enable [951 INSECTS them to pursue, and which they capture by means of grasping hooks on the end of their extraordinarily long underlip (Fig. 134 A), which can be shot out in front of the head (B). The great swampy lakes of Paleozoic times must have furnished an ideai habitat for dragonflies, and [ZIG- 59" A young dragon- fly, an aquatic creature that leaves the water only when ready to transform into the adult (fig. 58) it is probable that the most ancient dragonflies known had a structure and habits not very different from those of modern species. Another very common insect of the present time, which appears likewise to be a direct descendant of Paleozoic ancestors, is the may- flv (Fig. 60). The young mayflies (lig. 6) also liv-e in the water, and are provided with giils for aquatic" " breathing, having the form of flaps or filaments situated in a row along each side of the body. The adults (Fig. 60) are very delicate insects with four gauzy wings, and a pair of long threadlike taiis projecting from the rear end of the body. At the rime of their transformation they often issue in great swarms from the water, and they are par- ticularly attracted to strong lights. For this reason large numbers of them corne to the cities at night, and in the morning they may be seen sitting about on walls and windows, where they find themselves in a situation totallv strange to their native habits and instincts. The mayf]ies do hot fold their wings horizon- tally, but when at test bring them together verticallv over the back (Fig. 60). In this respect they, too, appear to preserve a character of their Paleozoic ancestors; though it must be observed that the highly evolved modern butterflies close their wings in the saine fashion. [961 ROACHES AND OTHER ANCIENT INSECTS The roaches, the dragonflies, and the mayflies attest the great antiquity of insects, for since these forms ex- isted practically as thev are today in Paleozoic times, the primitive ancestors of'ail the insects, of which we bave no remains in the geological records, must bave lived in times vastlv more remote. However, though we may search in vain the paleontological records for evidence of the origin and earlv development of insects, the subq sequent evolution of the higher forms of modern insects is clearly shown by the species preserved in eras later t Fxo. 6o. A mayfly, representative of another order of primitive winged insects having numerous relations in Paleozoic rimes. (Twice natural size) than the Carboniferous. Such insects as the beetles, the moths, the butterflies, the wasps, the bees, and the files are entirely absent in the older rocks, but make their appearance at later periods or in comparatively recent rimes, thus confirming the idea derived from a study of their structure that they bave been evolved from an- cestors more closely resembling the paleodictyopteran types of the Carboniferous beds. The long line of descent of the roach, with almost no change of form or structure, furnishes material for a special lesson in evolution. If evolution has been a [971 INSECTS matter of survival of the fittest, the roach, judged by survival, must be a most fit insect. Its fitness, however, is of a general nature; it is one that adapts the roach to lire successfully in many kinds of conditions and circum- stances. Most other forms of mod- Fie,. 6I. ,ai young mayfly, a water-inhabiting crea- rure. (One-half larger than natural size) ern insects bave been evolved through an adaptation to more special kinds of habitats and to particular ways of living or of feed- mg. Such insects we say are spccialized, while those exemplified in the roach are said to be general- ized. Survival, therefore, may de- pend either on generalization or on specialization. Generalized forms of animais bave a better chance of surviving through a series of chang- ing conditions than has an animal which is specifically adapted to one kind of life, though the latter mav bave an advantage as long as con- ditions are favorable to it. The roaches, therefore, have sur- vived to present times, and will probably lire as long as the earth is habitable, because, when driven from one environment, they make themselves at home in another; but we have ail seen how the specialized mosquito disappears when its breeding places are destroyed. From this consideration we can draw some consolation for the human race, if we do hot mind likening ourselves to roaches; for, as the roach, man is a versatile animal, capable of adapting himself to ail conditions of living, and of thriving in extremes. [98] CHAPTER IV WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING IN our hunàan society each individual must obtain the things necessary for existence; the manner bv which he acquires them, whether by one trade or another, by this means or by that, does hOt physica]ly matter so long as he provides himself and his familv with food, clothing, and shelter. Exactly so it is wita all forms of lire. The physical demands of living matter make certain things necessary for the maintenance of lire in that matter, but nature has no law specifying that any necessity shall be acquired in a certain manner. Lire itself is a circum- scribed thing, but it bas complete freedom of choice in the ways and means of living. It is useless to attempt to make a definition of what living matter is, or ofhow it differs from non-living matter, for ail definitions bave failed to distinguish animate from non-animate substance. But we ail know that living things are distinguishable from ordinary non-living things by the fact that they make some kind of response to changes in the contact between themselves and their environment. The "environment," of course, must be broadly inter- preted. Biologically, it includes all things and forces that m any way touch upon living matter. Not only bas every plant and animal as a whole its environment, but every part of it has an environment. The cells of an animal's stomach, for example, have their environment in the blood and lymph on one side, the contents of the stomach on the other; in the energy of the nerves distributed to them; and in the effects of heat and cold that penetrate them. [991 INSECTS The environmental conditions of the life of cells in a complex animal are too complicated for an elemental study; the elements of lire and its basic necessities are bet- ter understood in a simple organism, or in a one-celled animal; but for purposes of description, it is most con- venient to speak of the properties of mere protoplasm. AIl the vital needs of the most highly organized animal are .pr.esent in any part of the protoplasmic substance of which t ,s composed. Protoplasm is a chemical substance, or group of sub- stances, the structure of which is verv comp]ex but is main- tained so long as there is no disturbance in the environ- '°- ° BCIs BCIs BC]s A ]3 C FIG. 6. Diagram show]ng the relation of the germ ce]ls (GCIs) and the body cells (BCIs) in successive generations A fertilized germ cell of generation A forms the germ cells and by cells of B, a fert]lized germ cell of B forms the germ cells and by cells of C, and so on. The offspring C of B derives nothing from the body cells of the parent B, but both offsp6ng C and parent B have a oemmon origin in a germ cell of A metat. Let some least thing happen, however, such as a change in the temperature, in the strength of the light, in the weight of pressure, or in the chemical composition of the surrounding medium, and the protoplasmic molecules, in the presence ofoxygen, are likely to have the balance of their constituent particles upset, whereupon they partly decompose by the union of their less stable elements with oxygen to form simpler and more permanent compounds. The decomposition of the protoplasmic substances, like ail processes of decomposition, liberates a certain amount of energy that had been stored in the making of the molecule, and this energy may manifest itselfin various ways. Ifit [ I00] WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING takes the form of a change of shape in the protoplasmic mass, or movement, we sav the mass exhibits signs of life. The state of being alive, however, is more truly shown if the act can be repeated, for the essential property of living matter is its power of reverting to its former chemical composition, and its ability thus gained of again reacting to another change in the environment. In restoring its lost elements, it must get these elements anew from the environment, for it can hot take them back from the sub- stances that have been lost. Here, expressed in its lowest terres, is the riddle of the physical basis of lire and of the incentive to evolution in the forms of lire. Not that these mvsteries are anv more easily understood for being thus analyzed, but they are more nearly comprehended. Being alive is maintaining the power of repeating an action; it involves sensitivitv to stimuli, the constant presence of free oxygen, elimination of waste, and a supply of substances from which carbon, hydrogen, nitrogen, and oxygen, or other necessary ele- ments, are readilv available for replacement purposes. Evolution results from the continual effort of living matter to perform its lire processes in a more efficient manner, and the different groups of living things are the result of the different methods that lire has tried and found advan- tageous for accolnplishing its ends. Living organisms are machines that have become more and more complex in structure, but always for doing the saine things. If animals mav be compared with machines in their physical mechanim, they are like them, too, in the fact that they wear out and are at last beyond repair. But here the simile ends, for when your car will no longer run, you must go to the dealer and order a new one. Nature provides continuous service by a much better scheme, for each organism is responsible for its own successor. This phase of lire, the replacement of individuals, opens another subject involving ways and means, and it, likewise, can be understood best in its simpler manifestations. [ I0I ] INSECTS The facts of reproduction in animais are hot well ex- pressed by our naine for them. Instead of "reproduc- tion," it would be-truer to say "repeated production," for individuals do hot literally reproduce themselves. Genera- tions are serially related, hot each to the preceding; they follow one another as do the buds along the twig of a tree, Flç. 6 3. The external structure of an insect The body of a grasshopper dissected showing the head (H), the thorax and the abdomen (.4b). The head carries the eyes (E), the antennae (,llnt), and the mouth parts, which include the labrum (Lrn), the mandibles (Md), the maxillae {Mx), and the labium (Lb). The thorax consists of three segments {I, 2,), the flrst separate and carrying the first legs (L,), the other two com- bined and carrying the wings (1¢', 11"), and the second and third legs (L,, L.). The abdomen consists of a series of segments; that of the grasshopper bas a large tympanal organ (Tre), probably an ear, on each side of its base. The end of the abdomen carries the external organs of reproduction and egg-laying and buds on the saine twig are identical or nearly so, not because one produces the next, but because ail are the result of the saine generative forces in the twig. If the spaces of the twig between the buds were shortened until [ 102 ] WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING one bud became contiguous with the one before, or became enveloped by it, a relation would be established between the two buds similar to that which exists between succes- sive generations of lire forms. The so-called parent gen- eration, in other words, contains the germs of the succeeding generation, but it does not produce them. Each generation is simply the custodian of the germ cells entrust- ed to i t, and the "off- spring" resembles the parent, hot because it is a chip off the parental block, but because both parent and offspring are developed from the saine line of germ cells. Parents create the conditions under wli, ch the germ cells will de- velop; they nourish and protect them during the period of their develop- ment; and, when each generation has served the purpose of its ex- istence, it sooner or later dies. But the in- dividuals produced from F,c. 64. The leg of a young grasshopper, showing the typical segmentation of an insect's leg The leg is supported on a pleural plate (Pi) in the lateral wall of its segment. The basal segment of the free part of the leg is the coxa (Cx), then cornes a small trochanter (Tf), next a long femur (F) separated by the knee bend from the tibia (Tb), and lastly the foot, consisting of a sub-segmented tarsus (Tar), and a pair of terminal claws (CI) with an ad- hesive lobe hetween them its germ cells do the saine for another set of germ cells produced simultaneously with themselves, and so on as long as the species persists. To express the facts of succession in each specific form of animal, then, we should analyze each generation into germ cells and an accompanying mass of protective cells which [i] INSECTS forms a body, or soma, the so-called parent. Both the body, or somatic, cells and the germ cells are formed from a single primary cell, which, of course, is usually produced by the union of two incomplete germ cells, a spermatozoon and an egg. The primary germ cell divides, the daughter cells divide, the cells of this division again divide, and the division continues indefinitely until a mass of cells is pro- duced. At a very early stage of division, however, two groups of cells are set apart, one representing the germ cells, the other the somatic cells. The former refrain from further development at this time; the latter proceed to build up the body of the parent. The relation of the somatic cells to the germ cells may be represented diagram- matically as in Figure 62, except that the usual dual par- enrage and the union of germ cells is not expressed. The sexual form of reproduction is not necessary with ail lower animals, nor with ail generations of plants; in some insects the eggs can develop without fertilization. The fully-developed mass of somatic cells, whose real function is that of a servant to the germ cells, has assumed such an importance, as public servants are prone to do, that we ordinarily think of it, the body, the active sentient animal, as the essential thing. This attitude on our part is natural, for we, ourselves, are highly organized masses of somatic cells. From a cosmic standpoint, however, no creature is important. Species of animais and plants exist because they have found ways and means of living that have allowed them to survive, but the physical universe cares nothing about them--the sunshine is hOt ruade for them, the winds are not tempered to suit their conven- ience. Life must accept what it finds and make the best of it, and the question of how best to further its own wel- fare is the problem that conffonts every species. The sciences of anatomy and physiology are a study of the methods by which the soma, or body, bas contrived to meet the requirements imposed upon it by the unchanging laws of the physical universe. The methods adopted are as [ o41 WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING numerous as the species of plants and animais that have existed since lire began. A treatise on entomology, there- fore, is an account of the ways and means of living that insects have adopted and perfected in their somatic organ- ization. Before discussing insects in particular, however, we must understand a little more fully the principal con- ditions of living that na- ture places on ail forms of lire. As we have seen, lire is a series of chemical re- actions in a particular kind of matter that can carry on these reactions. A "reaction" is an action; and every act of living matter involves a break- ing down of some of the substances in the proto- plasm, the discharging of the waste materials, and the acquisition of new materia]s to replace those lost. The reaction is in- herent in the physical or chemical properties of protoplasmic compounds and depends upon the substances with which the protoplasm is sur- rounded. It is the func- Tb .'Fb :!ïllen Fm. 6 5. Legs of a honeybee, showing special modifications A, outer surface of a hind leg, with a pollen basket on the tibia (Tb) loaded with pollen. B, a fore leg, showing the antenna cleaner (a) between the tibia and the tarsus, and the long, halry basal segment of the tarsus (t Tar), which is used as a brush for cleaning the body tion of the creature's mechanism to see that the con- ditions surrounding its living cells are right for the con- tinuance of the cell reactlons. Each cell must be provided with the means of eliminating waste material and of restoring its lost material, since it can hot utilize that which it has discarded. [ o51 INSECTS With the conditions of living granted, however, proto- plasm is still only potentially alive, for there is yet required a stimulus to set it into activity. The stimulus for lire activities cornes from changes in the physical forms of energy that surround or infringe upon the potentially living substance; for, "live" marrer, like ail other marrer, is subject to the law of inertia, which decrees that it must remain at rest until motion is imparted to it by other E FIO. 66. The head and mouth parts of a grasshopper A, facial view of the head, showing the positions of the antennae (dnt), the large cornpound eyes (E), the slrnple eyes, or ocelli (O), the broad front lip, or labrum (Lin) suspended from the cranium by the clypeus (Clp), and the bases of the mandibles (Md, Md) closed behind the labrum B, the rnouth parts separated from the head in relative positions, seen from in front: Hphy, hypopharynx, or tongue, attached to base of labiurn; Lb, labiuml Lin, labrum; Md, mandibles; Mx, maxillae motion. A very small degree of stimulating energy, how- ever, may result in the release of a great quantity of stored energy. The food of ail living matter must contain carbon, hydrogen, nitrogen, and oxygen. The mechanism of plants enables them to take these elements from com- pounds dissolved in the water of the soli. Animais must get them from other living things, or from the products of [ Io6l WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING living things. Therefore, animals principally have de- veloped the power of movement; they have acquired grasp- ing organs of some sort, a mouth, and an alimentary canal for holding the food when once obtained. In the insects, the locomotory function is subserved by the legs and by the wings. Since all these organs, the three pairs of legs and the two pairs of wings, are carried by the thorax (Fig. 63, Th), this region of the body is distinctly the locomotor center of the insect. The legs (Fig. 64) are adapted, by modifications of structure in different species, for walking, running, leaping, digging, climbing, swim- ming, and for many varieties of each of these ways of pro- gression, fitting each species for its particular mode of living and of obtaining its food. The wings of insects are important accesslons to their locomotory equipment, since they greatly increase their means of getting about, and thereby extend their range of feeding. The legs, fur- thermore, are often modified in special ways to perform some function accessory to feeding. The honeybee, as is well known, has pollen-collecting brushes on its front legs (Fig. 65 B), and pollen-carrying baskets on its hind legs (A). The mantis, which captures other insects and eats them alive, bas its front legs ruade over into those efficient organs for grasping its prey and for holding the struggling victim which have already been described (Fig. 46). The principal organs bv which insects obtain and ma- nipulate their food consist )f a set of appendages situated on the head in the neighborhood of the mouth, which, in their essential structure, are of the nature of the legs, for insects have no jaws comparable with those of vertebrate animais. The mouth appendages, or mouth parts as they are called, are very different in form in the various groups of insects that have different feeding habits, but in all cases they consist of the saine fundamental pieces. Most important is a pair of jawlike appendages, known as the mandibles (Fig. 66 B, Md), placed at the sides of the mouth (A, Md), where they swing sidewise and close upon each other [ o7] INSECTS below the rnouth. Behind the rnandibles is a pair of maxdlae lB, Mx) of more cornplicated forrn, fitted rather for holding the food than for crushing it. Following the rnaxillae is a large under lip, or labium I Lb), having the Ant - C Ht .- /I] An  Vent SoeGng C 6 7. Lençthwse se«t{on of • grshopper, showng the enrl he pnn«p/ mtoEnl ornons, excep the resp{tory rachel system and the organs of repruction anus; .g.t, anoenna; Br, brain; Cr, op: Ht, heart: l.t, intestine: Malpighian tubules: Mt. mouth: Oe, oesophagus; SoeGn, suesopheal ganghon; ent, stomach (vent6culus); .VC, ventral nerve rd; , wings structure of two rnaxi[lae united bv their inner rnargins. A broad flap hangs downward befo're the rnouth to forrn an upper lip, or labrum (Lm). Between the rnouth ap- pendages and attached to the front of the Iabiurn there is a large rnedian lobe of the lower head wall behind the rnouth, known as the h.vpopharynx (Hphy). Insects feed, sorne on solid foods, others on [iquids, and their rnouth parts are rnodified accordingly. So it cornes about that, according to their feeding habits, insects rnav be separated into two groups, which, like the fox and the stork, could hot feed either at the table of the other. Those insects, such as the grasshoppers, the crickets, the beetles, and the caterpillars, that bite off pieces of food tissue and chew thern, have the rnandib[es and the other rnouth parts of the type described above. Insects that partake only of liquids, as do the plant lice, the cicadas, the rnoths, the butterflies, the rnosquitoes and other flies, bave the [ IO8] WAYS AND MEANS OF I_.IVING mouth parts fitted for sucking, or for piercing and sucking. Some of the sucking types of mouth parts will be described in other chapters (Figs. , 63, 83) , but it will be seen that ail are merelv adaptations of form based on the ordi- narv biting type of mouth appendages. The fossil records of t'he history of insects show that the sucking insects are the more recent products of evolution, since ail the earlier kinds of insects, the cockroaches and their kin, have typical biting mouth parts. The principal thing to observe concerning the organs of feeding, in a studv of the physiological aspect of anatomy, is that thev serve in ail cases to pass the natural food materials from the outside of the animal into the alimen- tarv canal, and to live them whatever crushing or masti- canon is necessarv. It is within the alimentary canal, therefore, that the next steps toward the final nutrition of the animal take place. The a]imentarv cana] of most insects is a simple tube (Fig. 68), extend'ing either straight through the body, or FI{I. 68. The alimentary canal of a grasshopper IInt, anterior intestine; dn, anus; Cr, crop; GC, gastric caeca, pouches of the stomach; Hphy, hypopharynx (tongue); Lb, base of labium; Mal, Malpighian tubules; Mlnt, raid-intestine; llth, mouth; Oe, oesophagus; Rect, hind intestine (rectum); SIGI, salivary glands opening by their united ducts at base of hypo- pharynx; I/ent, ventriculus (stomach) making only a few turns or loops in its course. It con- sists of three principal parts, of which the middle part is the true stomach, or ventriculus (Fent) as it is called by insect anatomists. The first part of the tube includes a [ 'o91 INSECTS pharynx irnrnediately behind the rnouth, followed by a narrower, tubular oesophagus (Oe), after which cornes a sac- like enlargernent, or crop (Cr), in which the food is tern- porarily stored, and finally an antecharnber to the stornach, narned the proventriculus. The third part of the alimen- tary canal, connecting the stomach with the anal opening, is the intestine, usually cornposed of a narrow anterior part, and a wide posterior part, or rectum (Rect). Muscle layers surrounding the entire alirnentary tube cause the food to be swallowed and to be passed along from one section to the next toward the rear exit. With the taking of the food into the alirnentary canal, the/natter of nutrition is by no rneans accornplished, for the animal is still confronted with the problern of getting the nutrient rnaterials into the inside of its body, where alone they can be used. The alirnentary tube bas no openings anywhere along its course into the body cavity. Whatever food substances the tissues of the animal receive, therefore, rnust be taken through the walls of the tube in which they are inclosed, alad this transposition is accorn- plished by dissolving thern in a liquid. Most of the nutri- ent rnaterials in the raw food rnatter, however, are hot soluble in ordinary liquids; they rnusr be changed chern- ically into a forrn that will dissolve. The process of get- ring the nutrient parts of the raw foodstuff into solution constitutes digestion. The digestive liquids in insects are furnished rnostly by the stornach walls or the walls of tubular glands that open into the stornach, but the secretion of a pair of large glands, called the salivarv glands (Fig. 68, SIGI), which open between the rnouth parts, perhaps bas m sorne cases a digestive action on the food as it is taken into the mouth. Digestion is a purely chemical process, but it must be a rapid one. Consequently the digestive juices contain hot only substances that will transforrn the food rnaterials into soluble cornpounds, but other substances that will [ II0] WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING speed up these reactions, for otherwise the animal would starve on a full stomach by reason of the slowness of its gastric service. The quickening substances of the diges- tive fluids are called enzymes, and each kind of enzyme acts on only one class of food material. An animal's prac- tical digestive powers, therefore, depend entirely upon the specific enzymes its digestive liquids contain. Lacking this or that enzyme it can hot digest the things that depend upon it, and usually its instincts are correlated with its enzymes so that it does hot fill its stomach with food it can hot digest. A few analyses of the digestive liquids of in- sects have been ruade, enough to show that their digestive processes depend upon the presence of the saine enzymes as those of other animais, including man. The grosser digestive substances, in cooperation with the'enzymes, soon change all the parts of the food ma- terials in the stomach that the animal needs for its suste- nance into soluble compounds which are dissolved in the liquid part of the digestive secretions. Thus is produced a rich, nutrient juice within the alimentary canal which can be absorbed through the walls of the stomach and intes- tine and can so enter the closed cavity of the body. The next problem is that of distribution, for still the food ma- terials must reach the individual cells of the tissues that compose the animal. The insect's way of feeding, of digesting its food, and of absorbing it is hot essentially different from that of the higher animais, including ourselves, for alimentation is a very old and fundamental function of ail animais. Its means of distributing the digested food within its body, however, is quite different from that of vertebrates. The absorbed pabulum, instead of being received into a set of lymphatic vessels and from these sent into blood-filled tubes to be pumped to ail parts of the organism, goes directly from the alimentary walls into the general body cavity, which is filled with a liquid that bathes the inner surfaces of ail the body tissues. This body liquid is called [ III ] INSECTS the "blood" of the insect, but it is a colorless or slightly yellow-tinted lymph. It is kept in motion, however, by a pulsating vessel, or heart, lying Fro. 69. Diagram of the typical structure of an insect's heart and supporting dia- phragm, with the course of the circulating blood marked by ,o, aorta, or anterior tubular part of the heart without lateral openings; Dpk, mem- branous diaphragm; Ht, ante- rior three chambers of the heart, which usually extends to the posterior end of the body; Md, muscles of dia- phragm, the fibers spreading from the body wall to the heart; Ost, ostium, or oneofthe lateral openings into the heart chambers in the dorsal part of the body; and by this means the food, now dissolved ira the body liquid, is carried into the spaces between the various organs, where the cells of the latter can have access to it. The heart of the insect is a slender tube suspended along the midline of the back close to the dorsal wall of the bodv (Fig. 67, 1/t). It has intake apertures along its sides I Vig. 69, Ost), and its anterior end opens into the body cavitv. It pulsates for- ward, by means of muscle fibers in its walls, thereby sucking the blood in through the lateral openings and discharging it by way of the front exit. An im- perfect circulation of the blood is thus established through the spaces between the organs of the bodv cavity, sufficient for the purposes of so small an animal as ara insect. The final act of nutrition cornes now when the blood, charged with the nutrient materials ab- sorbed from the digested food in the alimentarv canal, brings these materials into contact with the inner tissues. The tissue cells, by the inherent power of [ 112] WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING ail living rnatter (which depends on the laws of osrnosis and on chernical affinity), take for thernselves whatever they need frorn the menu offered bv the blood, and with this rnatter they build up their own substance. It is evident, therefore, that the blood rnust contain a suffi- cient quantity and varietv of dietary elernents to satisfy ail possible cell appetites; that the stornach's walls and their associated glands must furnish the enzyrnes appro- priate for rnaking the necessary elernents available frorn the raw food rnatter in the stornach; and, finally, that it rnust be a part of the instincts of each animal species to consume such native foodstuffs of its environment as will supply every varietv of nourishing elernents that the cells dernand. As we have seen, the dernand for food cornes frorn the loss of rnaterials that are decornposed in the tissues during cell activitv. Better stated, perhaps, the chernical break- down with[n the cell is the cause of the cell activity, or is the cell activity itself. The way in which the activity is expressed does hot rnatter; whether bv the contraction of a muscle cell, the secretion of a gland cell, the generation of nerve energy bv a nerve cell, or just the rninirnurn activity that rnaintains'life, the result is the saine always--the loss of certain substances. But, as with rnost chernical reduc- tion processes, the protoplasrnic activity depends upon the presence of available oxygen; for the decornposition of the unstable substances of the protoplasrn is the result of the affinity of sorne of their elernents for oxygen. Conse- quently, when the stimulus for action cornes over a nerve frorn a nerve center, a sudden reorganization takes place between these protoplasrnic elernents and the oxygen atorns which results in the formation of water, carbon dioxide, and various stable nitrogenous cornpounds. The substances discarded as a result of the cell activi- ties are waste products, and nlust be elirninated frorn the organisrn for their presence would clog the further activitv of the cells or would be poisonous to thern. The anirnai, [3] INSECTS therefore, must have, in addition toits mechanisms for bringing food and oxygen to the cells, a means for the re- moral of wastes. The supplying of oxygen and the removing of carbon dioxide and some of the excess water are accomplished by respiration. Respiration is primarily the exchange of gases between the cells of the body and the outside air. If an animal is suflîciently small and soft-skinned, the gas ex- change can be made directly by diffusion through the skin. Larger animais, however, must bave a device for conveying air into the body where the tissues wil| bave closer access toit. It will be evident, then, that there is hot neces- sarily only one way of accomplishing the purposes of respiration. Vertebrate animais inhale air into a sac or pair of sacs, called the lungs, through the very thin walls of which the oxygen and carbon dioxide can go into and out of the blood respectively. The blood contains a special oxygen carrier in the red matter, hemog|obin, of its red corpuscles, by means of which the oxygen taken in from the air is transported to the tissues. The carbon dioxide is carried from the tissues partly by the hemoglobin, and partly dissolved in the blood liquid. Insects bave no lungs, nor bave they hemoglobin in their blood, which, as we have seen, is merely the liquid that fills the spaces of the body cavity between the organs, lnsects bave adopted and perfected a method of getting air dis- tributed through their bodies quite different from that of the vertebrates. They bave a system of air tubes, called tracheae (Fig. 7o), opening from the exterior by small breathing pores, or spiracles (Sp), along the sides of the body, and branching minutely within the body to ail parts of the tissues. By this means the air is conveyed directly to the parts where respiration takes place. There are usually in insects ten pairs of spiracles, two on the sides of the thorax, and eight on the abdomen. The spiracles communicate with a pair of large tracheal trunks lying 114] WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING along the sides of the body (Fig. 7o), and from these trunks are iven off branches into each body segment and into the head, which go to the alimentary canal, the heart, the nervous system, the muscles, and to ail the other organs, where they break up into finer branches that terminate in minute end tubes going practically to every cell of the body. Many insects breathe by regular movements of expansion and contrac- tion of the under surface of the abdo- men, but experimenters have hot yet agreed as to whether the air goes in and out of the saine spiracles or whether it enters one set and is ex- pelled through another. It is probable that the fresh air goes into the smaller tracheal branches principally by gas diffusion, for some insects make no perceptible respiratory movements. The actual exchange of oxygen from the air and carbon dioxide from the tissues takes place through the rhin walls of the minute end tubes of the tracheae. Since these tubes lie in im- mediate contact with the cell surfaces the gases do not have to go far in order to reach their destinations, and the insect has little need of an oxygen carrier in its blood--its whole body, practically, is a lung. And yet some investigations have ruade it appear likely that the insect blood does con- tain an oxygen carrier that functions in a manner similar to that of the hemoglobin of vertebrate blood, though the importance of oxygen transportation in insect physiology has [51 Fe. 7 . Respirator l' system of a eaterpillar. The external breathing apertures, or spiracles (S/, S/), along the sides of the body open into lateral tracheal trunks (a, a), which are connected crosswise by transverse tubes (b, b) and give off mi- nutely branching tra- cheae into ail parts of the head (H) and body INSECTS hOt been determined. In any case, the tracheal method of respiration must be a very efficient one; for, consider- ing the activity of insects, especially the rate at which the wing muscles act during flight, the consumption of oxygen must at times be pretty high. The activity of insects depends very much, as every one knows, upon the temperature. We bave ail observed how the bouse flies disappear upon the first cold snap in the rail and then surprise us by showing up again when the weather turns warm, just after we bave taken down the screens. AIl insects depend largely upon external warmth for the heat necessary to maintain cellu[ar activity. While their movements produce heat, they bave no means of con- serving this heat in their bodies, as bave "warm-blooded" animais. That insects radiate heat, however, is very evident from the high temperature that bees can maintain in their hives during winter by motion of the wings. Ail insects exhale much water vapor from their spiracles, an- other evidence of the production of heat in their bodies. The solid matter thrown off from the cells in activity is discharged into the blood. These waste materials, which are mostly compounds of nitrogen in the form of salts, must then be removed from the b]ood, for their accumula- tion in the body would be injurious to the tissues. In vertebrate animais, the nitrogenous wastes are eliminated by the kidneys. Insects bave a set of tubes, comparable with the kidneys in function, which open into the intestine at the junction of the latter with the stomach (Fig. 68, Mal), and which are named, after their discoverer, the Malpighian tubule«. These tubes extend through the prin- cipal spaces of the body cavity, where they are looped and tangled like threads about the other organs and are continually bathed in the blood. The cells of the tube walls pick out the nitrogenous wastes from the blood and discharge them into the intestine, whence they are passed to the exterior with the undigested food refuse. We thus see that the inside of an insect is hOt an unor- [116] WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING ganized mass of pulp, as believed by those people whose education in such naatters cornes principally from under- foot. The physical unity of ail fornas of lire makes it neces- sary that every creature naust perforna the sanae vital functions. The insects have, in naany respects, adopted their own wavs of accomplishing these functions, but, as already pointC out, the naeans of doing a thing does hot count with nature so long as the end results are attained. The essential conditions are the supply of necessities and the removal of wastes. The body of a conaplex aninaal naay be likened to a great factory, in which the individual workers are represented by the cells, and groups of workers by the organs. That the factorv naay accornplish its purpose, the activities of each worker naust be coordinated with those of all the other workers by orders fron a directing office. Just so, the ac- tivities of the cells and organs of the animal must be con- trolled and coordinated; and the directing office of the aninaal organization is the central nervous systena. The work of almost every cell in the body is ordered and con- trolled by a "nerve inapulse" sent toit over a nerve fiber frona a nerve center. The inner structure of the nervous tissues and the work- ing mechanisna of the nerve centers are essentially alike in ail animals, but the form and arrangenaent of the nerve tissue masses and the distribution of the nerve fibers naay differ nhuch according to the plan of the general body or- ganization. The insects, instead of following the verte- brate plan of having the central nerve cord along the back inclosed in a bonv sheath, bave round it just as well for their purposes to lave the principal nerve cord lying free in the lower part of the bodv (Fig. 67, I'.VC). In the head there is a brain (Figs. 7, 7 -, Br) situated above the oesophagus (Fig. 67, Oe), but it is connected by a pair of cords with another nerve mass below the pharynx in the lower part of the head (SoeGlg). Frona this nerve naass another pair of nerve cords goes to a third nerve mass [7] INSECTS D o Fro. 7 . The nervous system of the head of a grass- hopper, as seen by removal of the facial wall .4ntNv, antennal nerve; 1Br, gBr,3Br, the three parts of the brain; CoeCon, circumoesophageal connectives; 3Corn, suboesophageal commissure of the third Iobes of the brain; FrGng, frontal ganglion FrCon, frontal ganglion connective with the brain; LbNv, labial nerve; LraNv, labral nerve; MdNv mandibular nerve; MxNv, maxillary nerve; O, simple eye; OpL, optic lobe connected with the brain; RNv, recurrent nerve; 8oeGng, suboesophageal ganglion lying against the lower wall of the first body seg- ment (Fig. 7, Gng ), which is likewise connect- ed with a fourth mass in the sec- ondsegment,and so on. The cen- tral nervous sys- tem of the insect thus consists of a series of small nerve masses united by double nerve cords. The nerve masses are known as gan- glia (Gng), and the uniting cords are called the connectives (Fig. 7, Con). Typi- cally there is a ganglion for each of the first eleven body seg- ments, besides the brain and the lower gan- glioia of the head. The brain of an insect (Fig. 7 ) has a highly complex internal structure, but it is a less important controlling center than is the brain of a vertebrate animal. The other ganglia have much independence of function, each giving the stimuli for movements of its own segment. For this WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING reason, the head of an insect may be cut off and the rest of the creature may still be able to walk and to do various other things until it dies of starvation. Similarly, with some species, the abdomen may be severed and the insect will still eat, though the food runs out of the cut end of the alimentary canal. The detached abdomen may lay eggs, if properly stimulated. Though the insect thus appears to be largely a creature of automatic regulations, acts are hOt initiated without the brain, and full coordination of the functions is possible only when the entire nervous system is intact. The active elements of the nerve centers are nerve cells; the nerve fibers are merely conducting threads extended from the cells. If the nerve force that stimulates the other kinds of cells into activity cornes from nerve cells, the question then arises as to whence cornes the primary stimulus that activates the nerve cells. We must discard the old idea that nerve cells act automatically; being mat- ter, they are subject to the laws of matter--they are inert until compelled fo act. The stimulus of the nerve cells cornes from something outside of them, either from the environmental forces of the external world or from sub- stances formed by other cells within the body. Nothing is known definitely of the internal stimuli of insects, but there can be no doubt that substances are formed by the physiological activiries of the insect tissues, similar to the horrnones, or secretions of the ductless glands of other animais, that control action in other organs either directly or through the nervous system. Thus, some in- ternal condition must prompt the insect to feed when its stomach is empty, and the entrance of food into its pharynx must stimulate the alimentary glands to prepare the diges- tive juices. Probably a secretion from the reproductive organs of the female, when the eggs are ripe in the ovaries, gives the stimulus for mating, and later sets into motion the reflexes that govern the laying of the eggs. The cater- pillar spins its cocoon at the proper rime for doing so; the [I191 INSECTS Store Gris'2 l+Ii+lll V GnçVl - - ..... VI FIG. 7 2. The general nervous system of a grass- hopper, as seen from above /lnt, antenna; /o, aorta;/i'r, brain; Cer, cercus; E, compound eye; Gngl, ganglion of prothorax; Gng2, ganglion of mesothorax; Gng3+I+II+III, compound ganglion of metathorax, comprising the ganglia belonging to the metathorax and the first three abdominal segments; Gngll/oEngl/llI, ganglia of the fourth to eighth abdominal seg- ments; O, ocelli; Proc, proctodeum, or posterior part of alimentary canal; .ça, suranal plate; .çeglI--X, second to tenth segments of abdomen; .çoeGng, suboesophageal ganglion; .çtom, stomo- deum, or anterior part of alimcntary canal stimulus, most like- ly, comes from the products of physio- logical changes be- ginning to take place in the body that will soon result in the transformation of the caterpillar into a chrysalis, a stage when the insect needs the protection of a cocoon. These activities of insects we call instincts, but the term is simply a cover for our ignor- ance of the processes that cause them. External stimuli are things of the outer environment that affect the living organism. They in- clude matter, elec- tromagnetic energy, and gravity; but the known stimuli do hot comprise ail the activities of marrer or of the "ether." The common stimuli are: pressure of solids, liquids, and gases; humidity; chemical qualities (odors and tastes); [ 120] WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING sound, heat, light, and gravity. Most of these things stim- ulate the nerve centers indirectly through nerves connected with the skin or with specialized parts of the skin called sense organs. An animal can respond, therefore, onlv to those stimuli, or to the degrees of a particular stimulus, to which it is sensitive. If, for example, an animal has no re- ceptive apparatus for sound waves, it will hot be affected by sound; if it is not sensitized to certain wave lengths of light, the corresponding colors will not stimulate it. There are few kiMs of natural activities in the environment that animais do not perceive; but even our own perceptive powers fMI far short of registering ail the degrees of any activity that are known to exist and which the physicist tan measure. |nsects respond to most of the kinds of stimuli that we perceive bv out senses; but if we say that they see, hear, smell, taste, or touch we make the implication that insects have COllSCiOUSlleSS. | t is most likely that their reactions to external stimuli are for the most part performed un- consciously, and that their behavior under the effect of a stimulus is an automatic action entirely comparable to out reflex actions. Behavioristic acts that result from reflexes the biologist calls tropim. Coordinated groups of tropisms constitute an instinct, though, as we have seen, an instinct may depend also on internal stimuli. It can hot be said that consciousness does hOt play a small part in determining the activities of some insects, es- pecially of those species in which memory, i.e., stored impressions, appears to give a power of choice between different conditions presented. The subject of insect psychology, however, ls too intricate to be discussed here. The phases of lire thus far described, the complexity of physical organization, the response to stimuli, the phenomena of consciousness from their lowest to their highest manifestations, ail pertain to the soma. Yet» somehow, the plan of the edifice is carried along in the [121] INSECTS germ cells, and by them the whole somatic structure is rebuilt with but little change of detail from generation to generation. This phase of lire activity is still a mystery to us, for no attempted explanation seems adequate to account for the organizing power resident in the germ cells that accomplishes the familiar facts of repeated k-X DO A B Fç. 73- Dirams f the internal organ of reproduction in insects A, the female otgans, mprising a pair f aries (Or), ea«h «ompsed f  group f g tubuls (oe), a pair f ovidu«ts (DOv),and a median ourlet tube,r vina (g), ith usually a pair of «olleterial glands (CIÇI) dis«haing into the agina, and a sperm roEeptade» r spermatha (p), opening from the upr surface of the latter B, the maie oans, comprising a pair of restes (Tes) coms of spermatic tubules, a pair of srm ducts, or vasa deferentia (D), a pair of srm vesicles (gS), and an outlet tube, or ductus ejaculatorius (DES, with usually a pair of mucous glands (MGI) discharging into the ducts of the sperm vesicles development which we call repruction._ When we can explain the repetition of buds along the twig, we may bave a key to the secret of the germ cellsand possibly to that of organic evolution. The organs that house the germ cells in the mature insect consist of a pair of ovaries in the female (Fig. 73 A, Or) in which the eggs mature, and of a pair of testes in the [l WAYS AND MEANS OF LIVING maie (B, Tes) in which the spermatozoa reach their com- plete growth. Appropriate ducts connect the ovaries or the testes with the exterior near the rear end of the body. The female usually has a sac connected with the egg duct (A, Spm) in which the sperm, received at mating, are stored until the eggs are ready to be laid, when they are VIII IX X Cet" I I / .-A t I Fxc. 74- The oviposltor of a long-horned grasshopper, a member of the katydid family, showing the typical structure of the egg-laying organ of female insects A, the ovipos'itor (Ovp) in natural condition, projecting from near the posterior end of the body B, the parts of the ovlpositor separated, showing the six component pieces, two arising from theeighth abdominal segment (FIII), and four from the nlnth (IX). /ln, anus; Cet, cerci; IX, ninth abdominal segment; Ovp, ovipositor; FgO, vaginal opening; FIH, eighth abdominal segment; X» tenth abdominal segment extruded upon the latter and bring about fertilization. The egg cells ordinarily are ail alike, but the spermatozoa are of two kinds; and according to the kind of sperm re- ceived by any particular egg, the future individual will be maie or female. [3] INSECTS The germ cells accompanying each new soma undergo a series of transformations within the parent body before thev themselves are capable of accomplishing their pur- pose. Thev multiply enornaously. With some animais, only a few of them ever produce new members of the race; but with insects, whose motto is "safety in numbers," each species produces every season a great abundance of new individuals, to the end that the many forces arrayed against them mav hot bring about their extermination. The world seems full of forces oppos.ed to organized lire. But the truth is, ail organization s an opposition to established forces. The reason that the forms of life now existing have held their places in nature is that they have found and perfected wavs and means of opposing, for a time, the forces that tend to the dissipation of energy. i.ife is a revolt against inertia. Those species that have died out are extinct, either because they came to the end of their resources, or because they became so inflexibly adapted to a certain kind-of lire that thev were unable to meet the emergency of a change ira the conditions that ruade this lire possible. Eflïciency ira the ordinary means of living, rather than specialization for a particular way of living, appears to be the best guarantee of continued existence. [ -4] CHAPTER V TERMITES lr was the custom, hot long ago, to teach the inexperienced that the will can achieve whatever ambition mav desire. "Believe that vou can, and vou can, ifonly you work hard enough"; this was the subjéct of manv a maxim very en- couraging, no doubt, to the young adventurer, but just as likely to lead to a bench in I.'nion Square as to a Fifth Avenue studio or a seat in the Stock Exchange. Now it is the fashion to give us mental tests and voca- tional suggestions, and we are admonished that it is no use trying to be one thing if nature bas ruade us for some- thing else. This is sound advice; the onlv trouble is the difficultv of being able to detect at an eariy age the char- acters tat are to distingtfish a pl.umber from a doctor, a cook from an actress, or a financier from an entomologist. Of course, there really are differences between ail classes of people from the time they are born, and a fine thing it would be if we could know in our vouth just what each one of us is designed to become, in the present chap- ter we are to learn that certain insects appear to have achieved this very thing. The termites are social insects; consequently in study- ing them, we shall be confronted with questions of con- duct. Therefore, it will be well at the outset to look somewhat into the subject of morality; hot, be assured, to learn any of its irksome precepts, but to discover its biological significance. Right and wrong, some people think, are general ab- stractions that exist in the very nature of things. They INSECTS are, on the contrary, specific attributes that are condi- tioned by circumstances. An act that is right is one in accord with the nature of the creature performing it; that which is.wrong is a contrary act. Hence, what is right for one specles of animal may be wrong for another, and the reverse. The conduct of adult human individuals, according to human standards of right and wrong, we call morals; the similar conduct of other animais is a part of what biolo- gists call behavior. But we unconsciously recognize some- thing in common between morals and behavior when we speak of the acts of a child, which we call his behavior rather than his morals. Behavior, in other words, we regard as in- volving less of personal responsibility than mo- rality. Hence we say Fo. 75- A common that animais and chil- speci«s of termite of dren behave, but that eastern North America inhabiting dead wood, adult human beings con- Reticulitermes flaipes, sciously do right or A, B, winged forms, wrong. Yet, the two C, a soldier. D, workers - modes of action accom- plish similar results: if the child behaves properly, his actions are right; if the adu]t bas a proper]y deve]oped moral sense, he too does the right thing, or at least he terrains from doing the wrong thing unless misguided by circumstances or by his reasoning. Animais other than the human, it appears, generally do what is right from their standpoint; but their actions, we say, are instinctive. Some will insist that the terres "right" and "wrong" can bave no appli- cation to them. Substitute then, if you please, the expression "appropriate or non-approprate to the ani- [IŒEE6] TERMITES mal's way of living." And still, our morality will analyze into the saine two elements; our acts are right or wrong according as they are appropriate or non-appropriate to out way of living. The difference between human actions and those of other animais is hot essentially in the acts themselves, but in the methods by which they are brought about. Animais are controlled by instincts, mostly; man is controlled by a conscious feeling that he should do this or that--"con- science," we call it--and his specific actions are the result of his reasoning or teaching as to what is right and what is wrong, excepting, of course, the acts of perverted indi- viduals who lack either a functional conscience or a well- adjusted power of reason, or of individuals in whom the instincts of an earlier way of living are still strong. The general truth is clear, however, that in behavior, as in physiology, there is hot just one way of arriving at a common result, and that nature may employ quite dif- ferent means for determining and activating conduct in her creatures. Since right and wrong, then, are hOt abstract prop- erties, but are terres expressing fitness or non-fitness, judged according to circumstances, or an animal's way of living, it is evident that the quality of actions will differ much according to how a species lires. Particularly will there be a difference in the necessary behavior of species that lire as individuals and of those that lire as groups of individuals. In other words, that which may be right for an individualistic species may be wrong for a communal species; for, with the latter, the group re- places the individual, and relations are now established within the group, or pertaining to the group as a whole, that before applied to the individual, while relations that formerly existed between individuals become now rela- tions between groups. The mority of animais live as individuals, each wandering here and there, wherever its fancy leads or [ IOE7] I NSECTS Fro. 7 6 . Termite work in a piece of wood. Tunnels following the grain are ruade by species ofRetieulitermes, the coin- mon underground termites-of the eastern United States wherever the food supply attracts it, recognizing no ties or responsibilities to others of its species and contending witb its fellows, often in dead]y combat, for whatever advantage it can gain. A few animals are communistic or social in their mode of lire; notab]y so are man and certain insects. Tbe best-known exam- pies of social insects are the ants and some of the bees and wasps. The termites, however, con- stitute anotber group of social insects of no less interest than the ants and bees, but whose hab- its bave hot been so long observed. More fami]iar]y to some peop]e, termites are known as "white ants." But since they are hot ants, nor a]ways white or even pale in color, we should discard this mis- leading and unjustifiable appellation and learn to know the termites by the name under which thev are universally known to entomologists. If you split open an old board that has been lying almost anywhere on the ground for some time, or if, wben out in tbe woods, you cut into [ TERMITES a dead stump or a log, you are more than likely to find it tunneled ail through with small tubular galleries running with the grain of the wood, but everywhere connected crosswise bv small openings or short passages. Within the exposed[ galleries there will be seen numerous small, pale, wingless insects running here and there in an effort to conceal themselves. These insects are termites. They are the miners or the descendants of miners that have excavated the tunnels in which they live. Not all of the galleries in the nest are open runways, many of them being packed solidly with small pellets of refuse. If the termites confined themselves to useless wood, they would be known onlv as interesting insects; but since they often extend the[r operations into fence posts, telegraph poles, the woodwork of bouses, and even into furniture, they have placed themselves among the de- structive insects and bave acquired an important place in the pages of economic entomology. Stored papers, books, cloth, and leather are hot exempt from their at- tack. In the United States it hot infrequently happens that the flooring or other wooden parts of buildings must be replaced, owing to the unsuspected work of termites; and piled lumber is especially liable to invasion by these insidious insects. But in tropical countries the termites are far more numerous than in temperate regions, and are vastly more destructive than they are with us. Their seclusive habits make the termites a particularly vexa- tious pest, because they bave usually accomplished an irreparable amount of damage before their presence is known or suspected. The economic entomologist study- ing termites gives most of his attention, therefore, to devising methods of preventing the access of the insects to ail wooden structures that they might destroy. The work of termites and the ways and means that bave been contrived to prevent their ravages bave been described in many agricultural publications, and the reader whose tastes are purely practical is referred to [ xoE9] INSECTS the latter for information. Here we will look more closely into the lives of the termites themselves to see what lessons we may learn from these creatures that have adopted something of our own way of living. When a termite nest is broken open, it does hot appear that there is much of an organization among the inseets Fro. 77- Reticulitermesflavipes (much enlarged) A, a mature worker. B, a mature soldier. C, a young termite. D, an immature winged (orm hurrying to take refuge in the recesses of the galleries, but neither when a bomb strikes one of out own dwellings is there probably much evidence of order within. The most casual observation of the termites, however, will [3o] TERM ITES show something of interest concerning them. In the first place, it is to be seen that not ail the members of the colony are alike. Some, usuallv the greater number, are small, ordinary, soft-bodied, wingless insects with rounded heads and inconspicuous jaws (Figs. 75 D, 77 A). Others, less numerous, have bodies like the first, and are also wingless, but their heads are relatively of enormous size and support a pair of large, strong jaws projecting out in front (Figs. 75 C, 77 B). The individuals of the latter kind are known as soldiers, and the naine is hot entirely fanciful, since fighting is hot necessarily the everyday occupation of one in military service. The others, the small-headed individuals, are called z'orkers, and they earn their title literally, for, even with their small jaws, they do most of the work of excavating the tunnels, and they perform whatever other labors are to be done within the nest. Both the workers and the soldiers are males and females, but so far as reproductive powers go, they may be called "neuters," slnce their reproductive organs never mature and they take no part in the replenishment of the colony. In most species of termites the workers and the soldiers are blind, having no eyes or but rudiments of eyes. In a few of the more primitive termite genera, workers are absent, and in the higher genera they may be of two types of structure. The large jaws of the soldiers (Fig. 78 A) are weapons of defense in some species, and the soldiers are said to present themselves at any break in the walls of the nest ready to defend the colony against in- vasion. In some speeies, the soldiers have a long tubular horn projecting forward from the face (Fig. 78 B), through which opens the duct of a gland that emits a sticky, semiliquid substance. This glue is discharged upon an attacking enemy, who is generally an ant, and so thor- oughly gums him up that he is rendered helpless--a means of combat yet to be adopted in human warfare. The facial gland is developed to such efficiency as a [131] INSECTS weapon in manv species of one termite family that the soldiers of these species have no need of jaws, and their mandibles have become rudimentary. In ail cases, the militarv specialization of the soldiers has rendered them incapable of feeding themselves, and they must depend on the workers for food. In addition to the soldiers and the workers, there would probably be seen within the termite nest, at cer- //lVid F. 7 8. Two forms of defensive organs of termite soldler A, head of soldier of Termopsis, showing the highly developed mandibles (Md), and the great muscles within the head (admd) that close them. B, a soldier of Nasutitermes (from Banks and Snyder); the head has small jaws but is provided with a long snoutlike horn through which i ejected a gummy liquid used for defense tain seasons of the year, many individuals (Fig. 77 D) that have small wing rudiments on their thoracic seg- ments. As the season advances, the wing pads of these individuals increase in length, until at last they become long, gauzy, fully-developed wings extending much beyond the tip of the body (Figs. 75 A, B, 79)- The color of the body also becomes darker, and finally blackish when the insects are mature. Then, on some particular day, the l J32 ] TERMITES whole winged brood issues from the nest in a great swarm. Since insects are normally winged creatures, itis evident that these flying termites represent the perfect forms of the termite colony--they are, in fact, the sexually mature males and females. The several forms of individuals in the termite com- munity are known as castes. An intensive search through the galleries 9f a termite nest might reveal, besides workers, soldiers, and the members of the winged brood in various stages of devel- opinent, a few individuals of still different kinds. These have heads like the winged forms, but rather larger bodies; some have short wing rudiments (Fig. 8o), others have none; and finally there are two individuals, a maie and a femme, bearing wing stubs from which, evidently, fully-formed wings have been broken off. The mme of this last pair is just an ordinary-looking, though dark- bodied termite (Fig. 82 A); but the female is dis- tinguished from ail the other mem- bers of the colony bv the great size oi her abdomen (B). Through the in- vestigations of entomologists it is known that the Fzç. 79- Adult winged caste of Reticulitermes tibialis, short-winged, and wings shown on oneBanksSideandOfSnyder)the body only. (From wingless individu- als of this group comprise both males and femmes that are potentially capable of reproduction, but that in general ail the eggs of the colony are actually produced by the large-bodied female, whose consort is the maie that has lost his wings. In other words, this fertile [133] INSECTS female corresponds with the "queen" in a hive of bees; but, unlike the queen bee, the queen termite allows the "king" termite to live with her throughout ber lire in the community. It appears, then, that the termite community is a com- plex society of castes, for we must now add to the worker and soldier castes the two castes of potentially repro- ductive individuals, and the "royal" or actual producing caste, consisting of the king and the queen. We are thus introduced to a social state quite different from anything known in our own civilization, for, though we may have castes, the distinctions between them are largely matters of polite concession by the less aspiring members of the communitv. We theoretically claire that we are ail born equal. TÎaough we know that this is but a gratifying illusion, our inequalities at least do hOt go by recognized caste. A termite, however, is literally born into his place in society and eventually has his caste insignia in- delibly stamped in the structure of his body. This state of affairs upsets ail our ideas and doctrines of the funda- mental naturalness and rightness of democracy; and, if it is true that nature not only recognizes castes but creates them, we must look more closely into the affairs of the termite society to see how such things may corne about. Let us go back to the swarm of winged males and females that have issued from the nest. The birds are already feeding upon them, for the termites' powers of flight are at best feeble and uncertain. The winds have scattered them, and in a short rime the fluttering horde will be dispersed and probably most of its members will be destroved one way or another. The object of the swarming, however, is the distribution of the insects, and, if a few survive, that is ail that will be necessary for the continuance of the race. When the fluttering insects alight they no longer bave need of their wings, and by brushing against olects, or bv twisting the body until I J341 TERMITES the tip of the abdomen cornes against the wing bases, the encumbering organs are broken off. It may be observed that there is a suture across the base of each wing just to make the breaking easy. The now wingless termites, being young males and females just corne to maturity, naturally pair off; but Fro. 80. The second forrn, or short-winged reproductive caste, of Reticuliterraes tibialis. (From Banks and Snyder) A, rnale. B, fernale hot for a companionate marriage, which, it must be confessed, is the popular form of matrimony with most insects. The termites take the vows of lifetime fidelity, or "till death do us part," for with the female termite intensive domesticity and maternitv are the ruling pas- sions. To find a home site and there round a colony is her consuming ambition, and, whether the maie likes it or hot, he must accept her conditions. The female, therefore, searches out a hole or a crevice in a dead tree or a decayed stump, or crawls under a piece of wood lying on the ground, and the maie follows. If the site [ I35 ] INSECTS proves suitable, the fernale begins digging into the wood or into the ground beneath it, using her jaws as exca- vating tools, perhaps helped a little by the maie, and soon a shaft is sunk at the end of which a cavity is hol- lowed out of sufficient size to accornrnodate the pair and to serve the purposes of a nest where true rnatrirnony m ay begin. Naturally it would be a very difficult rnatter to follow the whole course of events in the building of a termite cornrnunity frorn one of these newly married pairs, for the termites live in absolute seclusion and any disturbance of their nests breaks up the routine of their lives and frustrates the efforts of the investigator. Many phases, however, of the life and habits of our cornrnon eastern United States termites, particularly of species belonging to the genus Reticulitermes, have been discovered and recorded in nurnerous papers by Dr. T. E. Snyder of the U. S. Bureau of Entornology, and, thanks to Doctor Snyder's work, we are able to give the following accourir of the life of these termites and the history of the de- veloprnent of a fairly cornplex cornrnunity fforn the progeny of a single pair of insects. The young rnarried couple live amicably together in conjugal relations within their narrow cell. The maie, perhaps, was forced to eject a would-be rival or two, but eventually the rnouth of the tunnel is perrnanently sealed, and fforn now on the lives of this pair will be cornpletely shut in frorn the outside world. In due tirne, a rnonth or six weeks after the rnating, the fernale lays ber first eggs, six or a dozen of thern, deposited in a rnass on the floor of the charnber. About ten days thereafter the eggs hatch, and the new home becornes enlivened with a brood of little termites. The young termites, though active and able to run about, are hOt capable of feeding thernselves, and the parents are now conffonted.with the task of keeping a dozen growing appetites appeased. The feeding formula [ 3 6 ] TERMITES of the termite nursery calls for predigested wood pulp; but fortunately this does not have to be supplied from outside--the walls of the house furnish an abundance of raw material and the digesting is done in the stomachs of the parents. The pulp needs then only to be regurgi- tated and handed to the infants. This feature in the termite economy bas a double convenience, for not only are the young inexpensively fed, but the gathering of the food automatically enlarges the home to accommodate the increasing need for space of the growing family. That insects should gnaw tunnels through dead wood is not surprising; but that they should be able to subsist on sawdust is a truly remarkable thing and a dietetic feat that few other animais could perform. Dry wood consists mostly of a substance called cellulose, which, while it is related to the starches and sugars, is a carbo- hydrate that is entirely indigestible to ordinary animais, though eaten in abundance as a part of all vegetable food. The termites, however, are unusually gifted, not with a special digestive enzyme, but with minute, one- celled, cellulose-digesting protozoan parasites that lire in their alimentary canals. It is through the agency of their intestinal inhabitants, then, that the termites are able to lire on a diet of dead wood. The young termites receive some of the organisms with the food given them by their parents and are soon able to be wood eaters themselves. Not ail termites, however, are known to possess these intestinal protozoa, and, as we shall see, many of them feed on other things than wood. The termite brood thrives upon its wood-pulp diet, and by December following the spring in which the young were hatched, the members of the new generation begin to attain maturity after having progressed through a series of moltings, as does any other growing insect. But observe, the individuals of this generation, instead of developing into replicas of their parents, have taken on the form of workers and soldiers! However, one should [137] INSECTS never express surprise when dealing with insects; and for the present we must accept the strange deve[opment of the young termites as a matter of fact, and pass on. During the middle of winter things remain thus in the new familv colonv. The members of termite species that lire in the ground, or that pass from wood into the ground, probably have tunneled deep into the earth for Flc. 8. A queen oi r the third form, or wingless re- productive caste, of Reti- culitermes flaipes. (From Banks and Snyder) protection flore the cold. But in February, the mother termite, now the queen of the brood, responds again to the urge of maternity with some more eggs, probably with a greater nt, mber this rime than on the first occasion. A month later, or during March, the termitary is once more enlivened with young termites. The king and the queen are now, however, relieved of the routine of nursery duties bv the workers of the first brood. The latter take over the feeding and care of their new brothers and sisters, and also do ail the excava- tion work involved in the enlarging of the home. In the spring the termites as- cend to the st, rface of the ground beneath a board or log, or at the base of a stump, and reoccupy their former habitation. As the galleries are extended, the family moves along, slowly migrating thus to uneaten parts of the wood and leaving the old tunnels behind them mostly packed with excreted wood-pt, lp and earth. When June cornes again, the young family may consist of several dozen individuals; but ail, except the king and [ 38 ] TERMITES queen, are soldiers and workers, the latter much out- numbering the former. During the second year, the queen lays a still greater number of eggs and probably produces them at more frequent intervals. With the increase in the activity of her ovaries, her abdomen enlarges and she takes on a matronly appearance, attaining a length fully twice that of her virgin figure and a girth in proportion. The king, however, remains faithful to his spouse; and he, too, may fatten up a little, sufficiently to give him some distinction amongst his multiplying subjects. The termite king is truly a king, in the modern way, for he has renounced ail authority and responsibility and leads a care-free lire, observing only the decorums of polite society and adhering to the traditions of a gentleman; but he also achieves the highest distinction of democracy, for he is literallv the father of his country. Another year rolls by, bringing more eggs, more workers, more soldiers. And now, perhaps, other forms appear in the maturing broods. These are marked at a certain stage of their development by the possession of short wing stubs or pads on the back of the normally wing- bearing segments. With succeeding molts the wing pads become larger afid larger, until they finally develop, in most of these individuals, into long wings like those of the king and the queen when they first flew out from the parent colony. At last, then, the new family is to have its first swarm; and when the fully-winged members are ail ready for the event and the proper kind ofday arrives, the workers open a few exits from the galleries, and the winged ones are off. We already know their history, for they will only do what their parents did before them and what their ancestors have done for millions of gener- ations, l.et us go back to the galleries. A few of the individuals that developed winged pads are fated to disappointment, for their wings never grow to a functional size and they are thereby prevented from joining the swarm. Their reproductive organs and their [ 39 ] INSECTS instincts, however, attain rnaturity, and these short- winged individuals, therefore, becorne rnales and fernales capable ofprocreation. They differ frorn the fully-winged sexual forrns in a few respects other than the length of the wings, and they constitute a true caste of the termite comrnunity, that of the short-winged males and 2(emales (Fig. 80). The rnernbers of this caste rnature along with the others, and, Doctor Snyder relis us, rnany of thern, regardless of their handicap, actually leave the nest at the tirne the long-winged caste is swarrning; as if in them, too, the instinct for flight is felt, though the organs for accornplishing it are unable to play their part. Just what becornes of these unfortunates is a rnystery, for Doctor Snyder says that after the swarrning none of thern is to be found in the nest. It rnay be that some of thern pair and round new colonies after the rnanner of the winged forrns, but the facts concerning their history are hot known. It is at least true that colonies are sorne- rimes found which bave no true royal pair, but in which the propagating individuals are rnembers of this short- winged reproductive caste. Finally, there are also found in the termite colonies certain Viingless individuals that otherwise resemble the winged forrns, and which, as the latter, are functionally capable of reproduction when rnature. These individuals constitute a third reproductive caste--the wing]ess males and.females. Little is known of the rnernbers of this caste, but it is surrnised that they rnay leave the nests by subterranean passages and found new colonies of their ovin. Just how long the prirnary queen of a colony can keep on laying eggs is hot known, but in the course of years she norrnally cornes to the end of her resources, and before that tirne she rnay be injured or killed through sorne ac- cident. Her death in any case, however, does hot rnean the end of the colony, for the king rnay provide for the continuance of his race, and at the saine tirne console TERMITES himself in his bereavement, by the adoption of a whole harem of young short-winged females. But if he too should be lost, then the workers give the succession to one or more pairs of the second- or third-caste repro- ductive forms, to whom they grant the royal prerogatives. The progeny of any of the fertile castes will include the caste of the parents and all castes below them. In other words, only winged forms can produce the whole series of castes; short-winged parents can hot produce long-winged offspring; and wingless parents can hot produce winged Fç. 82. The usual king (A) and queen (B), or winged repro- ductive caste after having Iost the wings (fig. 79), of Reticuli- termesflavipes. (From Banks and Snyder) offspring of any form; but both short-winged and wing- less parents can produce soldiers and workers. It ap- pears, therefore, that each imperfect fertile insect lacks something in its constitution that is necessary for the pro- duction of a complete termite individual. The production of constitutionally different castes from the eggs of a single pair of parents would be a [ 4  ] INSECTS highly disconcerting event if it happened anywhere else than in a termite colony, where it is the regular thing. Bt, t the fact of its being regular with termites makes it none the less disconcerting to entomologists, for it seems to defv the ver}" laws of heredity. The're can be no doubt of the utility of a caste system where the menbers of each caste know their places and their duties, and where nobody ever thinks of starting a social revoit, tion. But we shot, ld like to know how such a svstem was ever established, and how individuals of a fanqilv are hot only born different but are ruade to adroit it and to act accordingly. These are abstruse qt,estions, and entomologists are divided in opinion as to the proper answers. Some have maintained that the termite castes are hot distinguished when the various individuals are young, but are pro- dt,ced later by differences in the feeding--in other words, it is claimed the castes are ruade to order by the termites themselves. One particular objection to this view is that no one has succeeded in finding out what the miraculous pabulun mav be, and no one has been able to bring about a structural change in any termite by controlling its diet. On the other hand, it has been shown that in some species there are actual differences in the young at the rime of hatching, and such observations establish the fact that insects from eggs laid by one female tan, at least, give fise to offspring of two or more forms, beside those of sex, and that potential differences are determined in the eggs. It is most probable that in these forms no struc- tural differences could be discovered at an early embryonic period, and hence it may be that, where differences are hot perceptible at the time of hatching, the period of differentiation has only been delayed to a later stage of growth. It is possible that a solution to the problem of the termite castes will be found when a study of the eggs themselves bas been ruade. We may conclude, therefore, that the structural differ- [ 4 OE ] TERMITES ences between the termite castes are probably innate, and that they arise from differences in the constitutional elements of the germ cells that direct the subsequent development of the embryos in the eggs and of the young after hatching. Still, however, there remain questions as to the nature of the force that controls termite behavior. Whv do the termites remain together in a community instead of scattering, each to live its own lire as do most other in- sects? Whv. do the workers accept their lot and perform ail the menial duties assigned to them ? Why do the sol- diers expose themselves fo danger as defenders of the nesrs? Structure can account for rhe things it is im- possible for an animal to do, but if can hot explain positive behavior where seemingly rhe animal makes a choice between manv lines of possible action open to it. In the communirv of rhe cells that make up rhe body of an animal, as we learned in Chapter IV, organization and controi are brought about eirher rhrough the nerves, which rransmir an activating or inhibiring force to each cell from a central controlling station, or through chemical substances thrown inro the blood. In rhe insect com- munity, however, there is norhing corresponding to either of these regulating influences; nor is there a law- making individual or group of individuals as in human socieries, nor a police force fo execure the orders if any were issued. If would seem rhat there must be some inscrutable power rhar mainrains law and order in the ternaire galleries. Are we, then, fo adroit rhat there is a "spirir of the nest," an "âme collective," as Maeterlinck would have us believe--some pervading force that unites rhe individuais and guides the destinies of the colony as a whole? No, scientists can hot accept any such idea as that, because it assumes that nature's resources are no greater than those of man's imagination. Nature is alwavs narural, and ber ways and means of accomplish- ing nyrhing, when once discovered, never invoke things [ 143] INSECTS that the human mind can hOt grasp, except in their ultimate analysis into first principles. Those who have faith in the consistency of nature endeavor to push a little farther into the great unknown knowable. There are a few things known about the termites that help to explain some of the apparent mysteries concerning them. For example, the members of a colony are for- ever licking or nibbling at one another; the workers ap- pear to be always cleaning the queen, and they are as- siduous in stroking the young. These labial attentions, or lip affections, moreover, are hot unrewarded, for it appears that each member of the colony exudes some substance through its skin that is highly agreeable to the other members. Furthermore, the termites ail feed one another with food material ejected from the alimen- tary canal, sometimes from one end, sometimes from the other. Each individual, therefore, is a triple source of nourishment to his fellows--he has to offer exudates from the skin, crop food from the mouth, and intestinal food from the anus--and this mutual exchange of food appears to form the basis for much of the attachment that exists among the members of the colony. It accounts for the maternal affections, the care of the queen and the young by the workers, the brotherly love between the workers and the soldiers. The golden rule of the termite colony is "feed others as you would be fed by them." The termites, therefore, are social creatures because, for physical reasons, no individual could lire and be happy away from his fellows. The saine might be said of us, though, of course, we like to believe that our social instincts have hot a purely physical basis. Be that as it may, we must recognize that any kind of social tie is but one of various possible means by which the benefits of community lire are insured to the members of the community. The custom of food exchange in the termite colonies can hot be held to account by any means for ail the things [ I44] TERMI'FES that termites do. Where other explanations rail, we have always to rail back on "instinct." A true instinct is a response bred in the nervous system; and the behavior of termites, as of ail other insects, is largely brought Fç. 8 3. A fore wing of a termite, Kaloterrnes approximatus, showing the humerai suture (hs) where the wing breaks off when it is discarded about by automatic reflexes that corne into action when external and internal conditions are right for their pro- duction. The physical qualities of the nervous system that make certain reactions automatic and inevitable are inherited; they are transmitted from parent to off- spring, and bring about ail those features of the animal's behavior that are repeated from generation to genera- tion and which are hot to be attributed to the individual's response to environmental changes. The termites have an ancient lineage, for though no traces of their family have been round in the earlier records, there can be no doubt that the ancestors of the termites were closely related to those of the roaches; and the roach family, as we have seen in Chapter III, may be reckoned among the very oldest of winged insects. In human society it means a great deal to belong to an "old family," at least to the members of that family; but in biology generally it is the newer forms, the upstarts of more recent times, that attain the highest degree of organizatlon; and most of the social insects--the ants, the bees, and the wasps--belong to families of compara- tively recent origin. It is refreshing, therefore, to find [I451 INSECTS the belief in aristocracy vindicated by the ancient and honorable line of descent represented by the roaches and flowering in the termites. One particular piece of evidence of the roach ancestry of the termites is furnished by the wings. With most termites the wings (Fig. 83) are hot well developed, and Ftc,. 84. Wings of AIastotermes, the hind wing with a basal expansion similar to that of the hind wing of a roach (fig. suggesting a relationship between termites and roaches their muscles are partly degenerate. In some forms, how- ever, the wings (Fig. 84) are distinctly of the roach type of structure (Fig. 53), and these forms are undoubtedly more closely representative of the ancestral termites than are the species with the usual termite wing structure. Our termites and those of other temperate regions con- stitute the mere fringes of termite civilization. The ter- mites are particularly insects of warm climates, and it is in the tropics that they find their most congenial environ- ment and attain the full expression of their possibilities. In the tropics the characteristic termites are hot those that inhabit dead wood, but species that construct detinite and permanent nests, some placed beneath the ground, [ I461 TERMITES others reared above the surface, and still others built against the trunks or branches of trees. Different species employ different building materials in the construction of their nests. Some use particles of earth, sand grains, or clay; others use earth mixed with saliva; still others make use of the partly digested wood pulp ejected from their bodies; and some use mixed materials. Certain kinds of tropical termites, moreover, have foraging habits. Fro. 8 5. Vertical section of an underground nest of an African termite, Terme« badius. (From Hegh, after Fuller) The large central chamber is the principal "fungus garden"; in the wall at the left is the royal chamber (rc); tunnels lead from the main part ofthe nest to smaller chambers containing fungus, and to the small mounds at the surface Great armies of workers of these species leave the nests, even in broad daylight, and march in wide columns guarded by the soldiers to the foraging grounds, where they gather bits of leaves, dead stems, or lichens, and return laden with provender for home consumption. The underground nests (Fig. 8 5) consist chiefly of a ['47] INSECTS cavity in the earth, perhaps two by three feet in diameter and a foot beneath the surface, walled with a thick cernent lining; but frorn this charnber there rnay extend tunnels upward to the surface, or horizontally to other smaller charnbers located at a distance frorn the central one. The termites that lire in these nests subsist principally upon horne-grown food, and it is in the great vaulted central charnber that they raise the staple article of their diet. The cavity is filled almost entirely with a porous, spongy rnass of living fungus. The fungi as we ordinarily see them are the toadstools and rnushrooms, but these fungus forms are merely the fruiting bodies sent up frorn a part of the plant concealed beneath the ground or in the dead wood; and this hidden part has the form of a network of fine, branching threads, called a OEycelium. The rnyceliurn lires on decaying wood, and it is the rnycelial part of the fungus that the termites cultivate. They feed on srnall spore-bearing stalks that sprout frorn the threads of the rnyceliurn. The substraturn of the termite fungus beds is generally rnade of pellets of partly digested wood pulp. The nests that termites erect above the ground include the rnost rernarkable architectural structures produced by insects. They are round in South America, Australia, and particularly in Africa. In size they vary frorn rnere turrets a few inches high to great edifices six, twelve, or even twenty feet in altitude. Sorne are simple rnounds (Fig. 86 A), or rnere hillocks; others have the form of towers, obelisks, and pyrarnids (B); still others look like fantastic cathedrals with buttressed walls and taper- ing spires (Fig. 87) ; while lastly, the strangest of ail re- semble huge toadstools with thick cylindrical stalks and broad-brirnrned caps (Fig. 86 C). Many of the termites that build mound nests are also fungus-growing species, and one charnber or several chambers in the nest are given over to the fungus culture. Termite nests built in trees are usually outlying retreats [ 148 ] TERMITES of colonies that live in the ground, for such nests (Fig. 86 D) are connected with an underground nest by covered runways extending down the trunk of the tree. The queens of nearly all the termites that lire in perma- nent nests attain an enormous size by the growth of the abdomen, the body becoming thus so huge that the royal ,! -.,.-- ...-, --'- I -\ 'ï"'" " ::'-- t " ç «. -: "'";"  " / " ;"\  " ..«- ., .-  «-.), I _.- «.,,, \  ,,,,/' ..... ..,., .: «),' t:  l:,, ." , .,..,,«.  ",/ ;!'-"L ,,, FzG. 86. Four common types of above-ground nests ruade by tropical termites A, type of small mound nest, varying from a few inches to several feet in helght. B, type of a large tower or steeple nest, reaching a height of 9 or zo feet. C, a mushroom-shaped nest, ruade by certain African termites, from 3 to z6 inches high. D, a tree nest, showing the covered runway going down to the ground female ls rendered completely helpless, and must be attended in ail her wants by the workers. With such species the queen is housed in a special royal chamber which she never leaves. Her body becomes practically a great bag in which the eggs are produced, and so great s the fertilitv, of one of these queens that the ripened eggs continually issue from ber body. It has been estimated that in one such species the queen lays four thousand eggs a day, and that in another species her daily output may be thirty thousand. Ten million eggs a year is pos- [ I49] INSECTS Type of pinnacled nest ruade by spe¢ies of African termites, some- rimes reaching a height of twenty feet or more [ I5o] TERMITES sibly a world record in ovulation. The royal chamber is usually placed near the fungus gardens, and as fast as the eggs are delivered bv the queen the attendant workers carry them off to the garden and distribute them over the fungus beds, where the young on hatching can feed and grow without further attention. From a study of the termites we mav draw a few lessons for ourselves. In the first place, we see that the social form of lire is only one of the ways of living; but that, wherever itis adopted, it involves an interdependence of individuals upon one another. The social or community way of living is best pronloted bv a division of labor anlong groups of individuals, allowing each to specialize and there- by to attain proficiency in his particular kind of work. The means by which the ternaites bave achieved the bene- fits of social lire are hot the saine as those adopted by the ants or social bees, and they bave little in common with the principles of our own social organization. All of which goes to show that in the social world, as in the physical world, the end alone justifies the means, so far as nature s concerned. Justice to the individual is a human concept; we strive to equalize the benefits and hardships of the social form of lire, and in so far as we achieve this aire out civilization differs from that of the insects. [ 51 ] CHAPTER VI PLANT LICE "PL.T lice! Ugh," you say, "who wants to read about those nasty things! Ail I want to know is how to get rid of them." Yes, but the very fact that those sort green bugs that cover your roses, your nasturtiums, your cab- bages, and your fruit trees at certain seasons reappear so persistently, after you think you bave exterminated them, shows that they possess some hidden source of power; and the secrets of a resourceful enemy are at least worth knowing--besides, they may be interesting. Really, however, insects are hOt our enemies; they are only living their appointed lives, and it just happens that we want to eat some of the saine plants that they and their ancestors bave always fed on. Our trouble with the in- sects is just that saine old economic conflict that has bred the majority of wars; and, in the case between us and the insects, it is we who are the aggressors and the enemies of the insects. We are the newcomers on the earth, but we fume around because we find it already occupied by a host of other creatures, and we ask what right bave they to be here to interfere with us! Insects existed millions of years before we attained the human form and aspirations, and they have a perfectly legitimate right to everything they feed on. Of course, it must be admitted, they do hot respect the rights of private property; and therein lies their hard luck, and ours. The plant lice are well known to anyone who has a garden, a greenhouse, an orchard, or a field of grain. Some call them "green bugs"; entomologists usually call [t52] PLANT LICE them aphids. A single plant louse is an aphis, or an aphid; more than one are usually called aphides, or aphids. The distinguishing feature of the plant lice, or aphids, as we shall by preference call them, is their manner of feed- ing. All the insects described in the preceding chapters eat in the usual fashion of biting off pieces of their food, chewing them, and swallowing the masticated bits. The Fit. 88. Group of green apple aphids feeding along a rib on under surface of an apple leaf aphids are sucking insects; they feed on the juices of the plants they inhabit. Instead ofjaws, thev bave a piercing and sucking beak (Fig. '9), consisting of an outer sheath inclosing four slender, sharp-pointed bristles which can be thrust deep into the tissues of a leaf or stem (Fig. 89 B). Between the bristles of the innermost pair (Fig. 9 o, Mx) are two canals. Through one canal, the lower one (b), a liquid secretion from glands o( the head is injected into the plant, perhaps breaking down its tissues; through the other (a) the plant sap and probably some of the proto- plasmic contents of the plant cells are drawn up into the mouth. A sucking apparatus like that of the aphids is possessed by ail insects related to the aphids, comprising the order Hemiptera, and will be more fully described [ 53] INSECTS in the next chapter, which treats of the cicada, a large cousin of the aphids. When we observe, now, that different insects feed in two quite different ways, some by means of the biting type of mouth parts, and others by means of the sucking type, it becomes evident that we must know which kind of insect we are dealing with in the case of pests we may be trying to control. A biting and chewing insect can be killed by the mere expedient of putting poison on the out- side of its food, if it does not become aware of the poison and desist from eating it; but this method would hot work with the piercing and sucking insects, which extract their food from beneath the surface of the plants on which they feed. Sucking insects are, therefore, to be destroyed by means of sprays or dusts that will kill them by contact with their bodies. Aphids are usually attacked with irritant sprays, and in general it is hot a difficult matter to rid infested plants of them, though in most cases the spraying must be repeated through the season. When any species of aphis becomes well established on a plant, F. 8 9 . The way an aphis feeds on the juices of a plant A, an aphis with its beak thrust into a rib of a leaf. B, section through the midrib of a young apple leaf, showing the mouth bristles from the beak of an aphis penetrating between the cells of the leaf tissue to the vascular bundles, while the sheath of the beak is retracted by folding back beneath the head the infested leaves (Fig. 88) may be al- most as crowded as an East Side street on a hot summer after- noon. But there is [54] PLATE 2 E D The green apple aphis (.dphis pomi) A, adult sexual female; B, adult maie; C, young femme; D, female lav- ing an egg; E, eggs, which turn from green to black after thev are laid. (Enlaed about -o times) PLANT LICE no bustle, no commotion, for each insect has its sucking bristles buried in the leaf, and its pump is busy keeping the stomach supplied with liquid food. The aphis crowds are mere herds, hot communities or social groups as in the case of the termites, ants, or bees. Wherever there are aphids there are ants, and in con- trast to the aphids, the ants are always rushing about ail over the place as if they were looking for something and each wanted to be the first to find it. Suddenly one spies a droplet of some clear liquid lying on the leaf and gob- bles it up, swallowing it so quickly that the spherule seems to vanish by magic, and then the ant is off again in the saine excited manner. The explanation of the presence and the actions of the ants among the aphids is this: the sap of the plants furnishes an unbalanced diet, the sugar content being far too great in proportion to the protein. Consequently the aphids eject from their bodies drops of sweet liquid, and it is this liquid, called "honey dew," that the ants search out so eagerly. Some of the ants induce the aphids to give up the honey dew by strok- ing the bodies of the latter. The glistening coat often seen on the leaves of city shade trees and the shiny liquid that bespatters the sidewalks beneath is honey dew dis- charged from innumerable aphids infesting the under sur- faces of the leaves. In studying the termites, we learned that it is possible for a single pair of insects to produce regularly several kinds of offspring differing in other ways than those of sex. In the aphids, a somewhat similar thing occurs in that each species may be represented by a number of forms; but with the aphids these different forms con- stitute successive generations. If events took place in a human family as they do in an aphid family, children born of normal parents would grow up to be quite different from either their father or their mother; the children of these children would again be different from their parents and also from their grandparents, and when mature they [551 INSECTS perhaps would migrate to some other part of the country; here thev would have children of their own, and the new fourth géneration would be unlike any of the three pre- ceding; this generation would then produce another, again different; and the latter would return to the home town of their grandparents Cm Nx and great-grandparents, and \ / here bring forth children that \ .a would grow up in the like- / ness of their great-great- great-grandparents! This seems like a fantastic tale of fiction, too preposterous to- be taken seriously, but it is a commonplace fact among the  aphids, and the actual gen- / ealogy mav be even more Lb complicated than that above outlined. Moreover, the Fro. 9 o. Cross-section through storv is hOt yet complete, the base of the beak of an aphis, for i't musr be added that ail (From Davidson) Theouter sheath of the b«ak is the the generations of the aphids, labium (Lb), covered basally by except one in each series, are the labrum (Lin). The four in- closed bristles are the mandibles composed entirely of females (Md) and the maxillae (Mx), the capable in themselves of re- latter containing between rhem a food canal (a) and a salivary canal production. In warm " cil- (b). Only th« inner walls of th« mates, it appears, the female labrum and labium are shown in thesection succession may be uninter- rupted. How insects do upset out generalizations and our peace of mind ! We bave heard of feminist reformers who would abolish men. With patient scorn we bave listened to their predictions of a millenium where males will be unknown and unneeded--and here the insects show us hot only that the thing is possible but that it is practicable, at least for a certain length of time, and that the time can be in- definitely extended under favorable conditions. [561 PLANT LICE Since special cases are alwavs more convincing than general statements, let us follov the seasonal historv of some particular aphids, taking as examples the species that commonly infest the apple. Let the rime be a day in the early part of Match. Probably a raw, gusty wind is blowing from the north- west, and only the silver maples with their dark purplish clusters of frowzy flowers already open give anv sug- gestion of the approach of spring. Find an old" apple tree somewhere that has hOt been sprayed, the kind of tree an entomologist always likes to have around, since it is sure to be fidl of insects. Look closely at the ends of some of the twigs and you will probably find a number of little shiny black things stuck close to the bark, especially about the bases of the buds, or tucked under the projecting edges of scars and tiny crevlces (Fig. 9). Each little speck is oral and about one thirty- sixth of an inch in length. To the touch the ob- jects are firm, but elastic, and if you puncture one a pulpy liquid issues from lt; or soit appears, at least, to the naked eve-- a microscope would show that in this liquid there is Fro. 9 . Aphis eggs on apple twigs in March; an enlarged egg below organization. In short, the tinv capsule contains a young aphid, because it is an aphid egg. The egg was de- posited on the twig last fall by a femme aphis, and its living contents have remained alive since then, though fully exposed to the inclemencies of winter. [ 157] INSECTS Immediately after being laid in the fall, the germ nucleus of the aphis egg begins development, and soon forms a band of tissue lying lengthwise on the under sur- face of the yolk. Then this scarcely-formed embryo undergoes a curious process of revolution in the egg, turning on a crosswise axis head foremost into the yolk and finally stretching out within the latter with the back down and the head toward the original rear end of the egg. Thus it rernains through the winter. In March it again becomes active, reverses itself toits first posi- tion, and now compIetes its development. The date of hatching of the apple aphis eggs depends much upon the weather and will vary, therefore, ac- cording to the season, the elevation, and the latitude; but in latitudes from that of Washington north, itis some time in April, usually from the first to the third week of the month. The eggs of most insects resemble seeds in Fz. 9-- Eggs of the green apple aphis with outer cover- ings split before hatching; below, an egg removed from its covering their capacity for lying inert un- til proper conditions of warmth and moisture bring forth the creature biding its time within. The eggs of one of the apple aphids, however, are killed by premature warm weather, or if artificially warmed too long be- fore the normal time of hatching. In general, the final development of the aphis embryos keeps pace with the development of the apple buds, since both are con- trolled by the saine weather con- ditions, and this coordination usually insures the young aphids against starvation; but the eggs commonly hatch a little in ad- rance of the opening of the buds, and a subsequent spell of cold 15 8 ] PLANT LICE weather may give the young lice a long wa]t for their first meal. The approaching rime of hatching is s]gnaled in most Fro. 93- Hatching of the green apple aphis, ,'lphis pomi A, the agg. B, an egg with the outer coat split. C, the sarneegg with the inner shell split atone end. D-F, three successive stages in the emergence of the young insect. G-J, shedding the hatching membrane. K, the ernpty eggshell. L, the young aphid [ I59] INSECTS cases by the splitting of an outer sheath of the egg (Fig. 92), exposing the glistening, black, true shell of the egg within. Then, from one to several days later, the shell itself shows a cleft within the rupture of the outer coat, extending along hall the length of the exposed egg sur- face and down around the forward end (Fig. 93 C). From this split emerges the sort head of the young aphis (D), bearing a hard, toothed crest, evidently the instru- ment by which the leathery shell was broken open, and for this reason known as the "egg burster." Once ex- posed, the head continues to swell out farther and far- ther as if the creature had been compressed within the egg. Soon the shoulders appear, and now the young aphis begins squirming, bending, inflating its fore parts and contracting its rear parts, until it works its body mostly out of the egg (E, F) and stands finally upright on the tip of its abdomen which is still held in the cleft of the shell (G). The young aphis at this stage, however, like the young roach, is still inclosed in a thin, tight-fitting, membranous bag having no pouches for the legs or other members, which are ail cramped within it. The closely swathed head swells and contracts, especially the facial part, and sud- denly the top of the bag splits close to the right side of the egg burster (Fig. 93 H). The cleft pulls down over the head, enlarges to a circle, slides along over the shoul- ders, and then slips down the body. As the tightly stretched membrane rapidly contracts, the appendages are freed and swing out from the body (I). The shrunken pellicle is reduced at last to a small goblet supporting the aphid upright on its stalk, still held bv the tip of the abdomen and the hind feet (I). To lilerate itself entirely the insect must make a few more exertions (J), when, finally, it pulls its legs and body from the grip of the drying skin, and is at last a free young aphid (L). The emergence from the egg and from the hatching membrane is a critical period in the lire of an aphid. The [ ,6o] PLATE 3 _A The rosy apple aphis (.qnuraphis roseus) A, apple leaves and young fruit distorted by the aphids; B, under surface of an infested leaf; C, immature wingless aphid (greatly enlarged); 1), immature winged aphis PLANT I.ICE process may be completed in a few minutes, or it may take as long as hall an hour, but if the feeble creature should be unable to free itself at last from the drying and contracting tissue, it remains a captive .strugg!ing in the grip of its embryonic vestment until it expires. The young aphid successfully delivered takes a few uncertain, staggering steps on its weak and colorless legs, and then complacently rests awhile; but after about twenty rein- Fc. 94- Young aphids on apple buds in spring utes or half an hour itis able to walk in proper insect fashion, and it proceeds upward on its twig, a course sure eventually to lead it to a bud. While the aphid eggs are hatching, or shortly there- after, the apple buds are opening and unfolding their delicate, pale-green leaves, and from everywhere now the young aphids corne swarming upon them, till the tips are often blackened by their numbers (Fig. 94)- The hungry horde plunges into the hearts of the buds, and soon the new leaves are punctured with tiny beaks that rob them of their food; and the young foliage, upon which [ I6I ] INSECTS the tree depends for a stunted and yellowed. to spray if he has hot The entomologist, young aphids on the there are three kinds differing slightly, but to a separate species. proper start of its spring growth, is Now is the time for the orchardist already done so. however, takes note that ail the apple trees are hot alike; perhaps of them in the orchard (Fig. enough to show that each belongs When the first buds infested are A t3 F1ç. 95- Three species of young aphids round on apples in the spring A, the apple-grain aphis, Rhopalosiphum prunifoliae. B, the green apple aphis, lphis pomi. C, the rosy apple aphis, lnuraphis roseus exhausted, the insects migrate to others, and later they spread to the larger leaves, the blossoms, and the young fruit. The aphids ail grow rapidly, and in the course of two or three weeks they reach maturity. The full-grown insects of this first generation, those produced from the winter eggs, are entirely wingless, and they are ail females. But this state of affairs in no wise hinders the multiplication of the species, for these re- markable females are able of themselves to produce off- spring (a faculty known as parthenogenesis), and further- more, they do hot lay eggs, but give birth to active young. Since they are destined to give rise to a long line of sure- mer generations, they are known as the stem mothers. One of the three aphid species of the apple buds is known as the green apple aphis (Fig. 95 B). During the [ 6OE] PLANT LICE early part of the season the individuals of this species are round particularly on the under surfaces of the apple leaves. They cause the infested leaves to curl and to become distorted in a haracteristic manner (Fig. 96). The stem mothers (Fig. 97 .A., B) begin giving birth to young (C) about twenty-four hours after reaching ma- turity, and any one of the mothers, during the course of her lire of from ten to thirty days, may produce an aver- age family of fifty or more daughters, for ail her offspring are females, too. When these daughters grow up, however, none of them is exactly like their mother. They ail have one more segment in each antenna; most of them are wing- less (D), but many of them have wings--some, mere padlike stumps, but others well developed or- gans capable of flight (Fig. 97 E). Both the wingless and the winged individuals of this second generation are also parthenogenetic, and they give birth to a third generation like them- selves, including wing- less, half-winged, and fully-winged forms, but with a greater propor- Fie. 9 6. Leaves of apple infested and tion of the last. From distorted by the green apple aphis on under surfaces now on there follows a large number of such generations continuing through the season. The winged forms fly from one tree to another, or to a distant orchard, and round new colonies. In [ I63] INSECTS summer, the green apple aphis is round principally on young shoots of the apple twigs, and on water sprouts growmg in the orchard. During the early part of the summer, the rate of pro- duction rapidly increases in the ap.hid colonies, and in- dividuals of the summer generatons sometimes give birth to young a week after they themselves were born. In the rail, however, the period of growth again is length- ened, and the families drop offin size; until the last females of the season produce each a scant hall dozen young, though they mav live to a much greater age than do the sunamer individuals. The young summer aphids born as active insects are inclosed at birth in a tight-fitting, seamless, sleeveless, and legless tunic, as are those hatched from the winter eggs. Thus swathed, each emerges, rear end first, from the body of the mother, but is finally held fast by the face when it is nearlv free. In this position, the ena- bryonic bag splits over the head and contracts over the body of the young aphid to the tip of the abdomen, where it remains as a cap of shriveled membrane until it finally drops off or is pushed away by the feet. The infant, now vigorously kicking, is still held in the ma- ternal grasp, and eventually liberates itself only after some rather violent struggling; btt soon after if is free it walks away to find a feeding place anaong its com- panions on the leaf. The mother is but little concerned with the birth of her child, and she usually continues to feed dtring its delivery, though she may be somewhat annoved by its kicking. The average summer female gives birth to two or three young aphids every day. The succession of forms in the familles is one of the most interesting phases of aphid lire. Investigations have shown that the winged individuals are produced principally bv wingless forms, and experiments have demonstrated that the occurrence of the winged forms is correlated with changes in the temperature, the food [ 164] PLANT LICE supply, and the duration of light. At a temperature around sixty-five degrees few winged individuals ever appear, but they are produced at temperatures either below or above this point. Likewise it has been found that when the food supply gives out through the drying FIG. 97" The green apple aphis, .4phis lomi. A, B, adult stem mothers. C, a newly-born young of the summer forms. D, a wingless summer form. E, a winged summer form of the leaves or by the crowding of the aphids on them, winged forms appear, thus making possible a migration to ffesh feeding grounds. Then, too, certain chemical substances, particularly salts of magnesium, added to the water or wet sand in which are growing cuttings of plants infested with aphids, will cause an increase of winged forms in the insects subsequently born. This does not happen if the plants are rooted, but it shows that a change in the food ca11 have an effect on wing production. 1 651 INSECTS Finally, it has recently been shown experimentally by Dr. A. Franklin Shull that winged and wingless condi- tions in the potato aphis may be produced artificially by a variation in the relative amount of alternating light and darkness the aphids receive during each twenty-four hours. Shortening the illumination period to twelve hours or less results in a marked increase in the number of winged forms born of wingless parents. Continuous darkness, however, produces few winged offspring. Maxi- mure results perhaps are obtained with eight hours of light. The effect of decreased light appears from Doctor Shull's experiments to be directly operative on the young from thirty-four to sixteen hours before birth, and it lS hot to be attributed to any physiological effect on the plant on which the insects are feeding. It is evident, therefore, that various unfavorable local conditions may give fise to winged individuals in a colony of wingless aphids, thus enabling representatives of the colonv to migrate in the chance of finding a more suit- able place for the continuance of their line. The regular production of swing and rail migrants is brought about possibly bv the shorter periods of daylight in the earlier and later parts of the season. The final chapter of the aphid story opens in the rail and, like all last chapters done according to the rules, it contains the sequel to the plot and brings everything out right in the end. AIl through the spring and summer the aphid colonies have consisted exclusively of virgin females, winged and wingless, that give birth to virgin females in ever-in- creasmg numbers. A prosperous, self-supporting femi- nist dominion appears to be established. When summer's warmth, however, gives wav to the chills of autumn, when the food supply begins to fail, the birth rate slack- ens and falls off steadily, until extermination seems to threaten. Bv the end of September conditions have reached a desperate state. October arrives, and the [ 66] PLANT LICE surviving virgins give birth in forlorn hope to a brood that must be destined for the end. But now, it appears, another of those miraculous events that occur so fre- quently in the lives of insects bas happened here, for the members of this new brood are seen at once to be quite different creatures from their parents. When they grow up, it develops that they constitute a sexual generation, composed of females and males, t (Plate 2 A, B.) Feminism is dethroned. The race is saved. The mar- riage instinct now is dominant, and if mrital relations in this new generation are pretty loose, the time is Octo- ber, and there is much to be accomplished before winter comes. The sexual females dit}er from their virgin mothers and grandmothers in being of darker green color and in having a broadlv pear-shaped body, widest near the end (Plate 2 A). T]e males (B) are much smaller than the females, their color is vellowish brown or brownish green, and they bave long sp"derlike legs on which they actively run about. Neither the males nor the females of the green apple aphis have wings. Soon the females begin to pro- duce, hot active young, but eggs (D). The eggs are de- posited most anvwhere along the apple twigs, in crevices where the bark is rough, and about the bases of the buds. The newly-laid eggs are vellowish or greenish (D), but thev soon turn to green, then to dark green, and finally become deep black (E). There are hot many of them, for each female lays onlv from one to a dozen; but it is these eggs that are to remain on the trees through the winter to produce the stem mothers of next spring, who will start another cycle of aphid lire repeating the his- tory of that just closed. The production of sexual forms in the fall in temperate climates seems to bave some immediate connection with the lowered temperature, for in the tropics, it is said, the aphid succession continues indefinitelv through par- thenogenetic females, and in most tropical" species sexual [ I67] INSECTS Fc. 9 8 . The rosy apple aphis, Inuraphis roseu«, on apple A, a cluster of infested and distorted leares. B, an adu|t stem morher. C, young apples dwarfed and distorted by the feeding of the aphids rnales and fernales are unknown. In the warmer regions of the West Coast of the United States, species that regu- larly produce rnales and females every rail in the East continue without a reversion to the sexual forms. Of the other two species of apple aphids that infest the buds in tbe spring, one is . 5 ) known as the ros apple aphis t..__..g..e.,) ,. :. a-27.OE _ -l. .... (Fig. 95 C). The naine cornes .[..._''. from the fact that the early vv-.)'oe/J-k.,-   summer individuals of this species ha,ce a waxy pink tint more or less spread o.cer the ground color of green (Plate 3), though many of the adult stern rnothers (Fig. 98 B) are '.%.] of a deep purpiish color. The early generations of the rosy aphis infest the lea.ces (Fig. 98 A, Plate 3 A) and the young fruit (Fig. 98 C, Plate 3 A), causing the former to curl up in tightly rolled spirals, and tbe latter to become dwarfed and distorted in forrn. The stem mothers of the rosy aphis give birtb partheno- genetically to a second gen- eration of fernales which are mostly wingless like their moth- ers; but in the next generation rnany individuals have wings. Se.ceral more generations now rapidly follow, all females; in fact, as with the green aphis, no rnales are produced till late in the season. The winged forrns, however, appear in increasing nurnbers, and by the first ofJuly alrnost all the indi.ciduals born ha,ce wings. [ ,68 ] PLANT LICE Heretofore, the species has remained on the apple trees, but now the winged ones are possessed with a desire for a change, a cornplete change both of scenery and of diet. They leave the apples, and when next discovered thev are found to have established thernselves in sumrner colonies on those cornmon weeds known as plantains, and mostly on the narrow-leaved variety, the rib-grass, or English plantain (Fig. 99)- As soon as the rni- grants land upon the plantains they give birth to offspring quite unlike themselves or any of the preceding generations. These individuals are of a yellowish-green color and nearly all of thern are wingless (Fig. 99)- So well do they disguise their species that ento- rnologists were a long tirne in discovering their identity. Generations of wingless vellow fernales now foll»w upon the plantain. But a weed is no fit place for the stor- age of winter eggs, so, with the advent of fall, winged forms again ap- pear In abundance, and F,ç. 99- The rosy apple aphis on nar- row-leaved plantain in summer; above, a these migrate back to the wingless summer form (enlarged) apples. The rail rni- grants, however, are of two varieties: one is sirnply a winged fernale like the earlier rnigrants that carne to the plantain frorn the apple, but the other is a winged rnale (Fig. 1oo A). Both forrns go back to the apple trees, and [ 169] INSECTS there the females give birth to a generation of wingless sexual females (B), which, when mature, mate with the males and produce the winter eggs. The third of the aphid species that infest the spring buds of the apple is known as the apple-grain aphis, so called because, being a migratory species like the rosy A F*. *oo. The winged male(A) and the wingless sexual female (B) of the rosy apple aphis aphis, it spends the summer upon the leaves of grains and grasses. The eggs of the apple-grain aphis are usually the first to hatch in the spring, and the young aphids of this species (Fig. 95 A) are distinguished by their very dark green color, which gives them a blackish appear- ance when massed upon the buds. Later they spread to the older leaves and to the petals of the apple blossoms, but on the whole their damage to the apple trees is less than that of either of the other two species. The summer history of the apple-grain aphids is similar to that of the rosy aphis, excepting that they make their summer home on grains and grasses instead of on plantains. In the fall, the winged female migrants (Plate 4) corne back to the apple and there give birth to wingless sexual females, which are later sought out by the winged males. It would be impossible here even to enumerate the [ J7o] PLANT LICE Flç. Ioi. Some common aphids of the garden A, winged form of the potato aphis, Illinoia aolanifofii, one of the largest of the garden aphids. B, winged form of the peach aphis, Myzus persicae, which infests peach trees and various garden plants. C, wingless form of the peach aphis. D, wingless form of the melon aphis, Iphis gossypii. E, winged form of the melon aphis [ 7 ] INSECTS many species of aphids that infest our common field and garden plants (Fig. Ol) and cultivated shrubs and trees, to say nothing of those that inhabit the weeds, the wild shrubbery, and the forest trees. Almost every natural group of plants has its particular kind of aphid, and many of them are migratory species like the rosy and grain aphis of the apple. There are root-inhabiting species as well as those that live on the leaves and stems. The Ph.vlloxera, that pest of vineyards in California and France, s a root aphid. Those cottony masses that often appear on the apple twigs in late summer mark the presence of the woolly aphis, the individuals of which exude a fleecy covering of white waxy threads from their backs. The woolly aphis is more common on the roots of apple trees, being especially a pest of nursery stock, but it migrates to both the twigs and the roots of the apple from the elm, which is the home of its winter eggs. An underground aphid of particular interest is one that lives on the roots of corn. We bave seen that ail aphids are much sought after by ants because ol c the honey dew they excrete, a substance greatly relished and prized by the ants. It is said that some ants protect groups of aphids on twigs by building earthen sheds over them; but the corn-root aphis owes its very existence to the ants. A species of ant that makes its nests in cornfields runs tunnels from the underground chambers of the nests to the bases ofnearby cornstalks. In the fMI the ants gather the winter eggs of the aphids from the corn roots and take them into their nests where they are protected from freezing during the winter. Then in the spring the ants bring the eggs up from the storage cellars and place them on the roots of various early weeds. Here the stem mothers hatch and give rise to several spring gen- erations; but, as the new corn begins to sprout, the ants transfer manv of the aphids to the corn roots, where thev lire and multiply during the sumnler and, in the fall, give birth to the sexual males and females, which produce 172 ] PLANT LICE the winter eggs. The eggs are again collected by the ants and carried to safety for the winter into the depths of their underground abodes. All this the ants do for the aphids in exchange for the honey dew they receive from them. The ants bave so domesticated these corn-root aphids that the aphids would perish without their care. The fariner, therefore, who would rid his cornfield of the aphid pest, proceeds with extermination measures against the ants. The crowded aphid colonies exposed on stems and leaves naturallv form the happy hunting grounds for a Fro. io. A common ladybird beetle, Coccinella novemnotata, that feeds on aphids. (Enlarged 5 rimes) A, the larva. B, the adult beetle host of predacious insects. Here are thousands of soft- bodied creatures, ail herded together, and each tethered to one spot bv the bristles ofits beak thrust deep into the tissues of t]e plant--a pot-hunter's paradise, trulv. Consequently, the placid lires of the aphids bave many interruptions, and vast numbers of the succulent creatures serve onlv as half-wav stages in the food cycle of some other insect. The alhids have small powers of active [173] INSECTS defense. A pair of slender tubes, the cornicles, projecting from the rear end of the body, eject a sticky liquid which the aphids are said to smear on the faces of attacking insects; but the ruse at best probably does hot give much protection. Parthenogenesis and large families are the principal policies by which the aphids insure their race against extinction. The presence of "evil" in the world has always been a thorn for those who would preserve their faith in the idea of beneficence in nature. The irritation, however, is hot Fç. o 3. The aphis-lion, feeding on an aphis held in its jaws in the flesh but in a distorted growth of the mind, and consequently may be alleviated by a change of mental attitude. The thorn itself, however, is real and can hot be explained away. Beneficence is hot a part of the scheme by which plants and animais have attained through evolution their present conditions and relations. On the other hand, there are hot good species and bad species; for every creature, including ourselves, is a thorn to some other, since each attacks a weaker that may contribute to its existence. There are many insects that destroy the aphids, but these are "enemies" of the aphids only in the sense that we are enemies of chickens and of cabbages, or of any other thing we kill for food or other purposes. [ 7«1 PLANT LICE Recognizing, then, that evil, like everything else, is a marrer of relativity and depends upon whose standpoint it is from which we take our view, it becomes only a par- donable bias in a writer if he views the subject from the standpoint of the heroes of his story. With this under- standing we may note a few of the "enemies" of the aphids. Everybody knows the "ladybirds," those little oral, hard-shelled beetles, usually of a dark red color with black spots on their rounded backs (Fig. Io B). The female ladybirds, or better, lady-beetles, lay their orange- colored eggs in small groups stuck usually to the under surfaces of leaves (Fig. 132 B) and in the neighborhood of aphids. When the eggs hatch, they give forth, hot ornate insects resembling lady-beetles, but blackish little beasts with thick bodies and six short legs. The young creatures at once seek out the aphids, for aphids are their natural food, and begin ruthlessly feeding upon them. As the young lady-beetles mature, they grow even uglier in form, some of them becoming conspicu- ously spiny, but their bodies are variegated with areas of brilliant color- red, blue, and yellow--the pattern differ- ing according to the species. A common one is shown at A of Figure lO2. When one of these miniature monsters becomes full-grown, it ceases its depredations on the aphid flocks, enters a period of quietude, and fixes the rear end of its body to a leaf by exuding a glue from the extremity of its abdomen. Then it sheds its skin, which shrinks down over the body and forms a spiny mat ad- hering to the leaf and supporting the former occupant by only the tip of the body (Fig. 132 E). With the shedding of the skin, the insect has changed from a larva to a pupa, and after a short rime it will transform into a perfect lady-beetle like its father or mother. Another little villian, a remarkably good imitation of a small dragon (Fig. lO3) , with long, curved, sicklelike jaws extending forward from the head, and a vicious rem- [175] INSECTS F...__..¢.., « perament to match, ' -"--- '>'..//x is. also a common. /  y trequenter ot the ///ff/  / aphid colonies and Vffffl levies a toll on the /////ï{ lives of the meek o/// k B .d h¢lplCs i.s¢cs. & ç This marauder is 0   well named the apkis-lion. He is the larva of a gentle, harmless creature with large pale-green lacv wings and brilliant golden eyes (F@ m4A). The parent femmes show a remarkable prescience of the nature of their oflpring, lr they sup- port their eggs on the tips of long threadlike FIa. Io4. Thegolden- eye, Chrysopa, the par- stalks, tlSU- ent of the aphis-lion, allyattached and its eggs tO the under A, the adult insect. B, a group of eggs sup- surfaces of ported on long thread- leaves (B). like stalks on the under surface of a leaf The device seems to be a scheme for preventing the first of the greedy brood that will hatch from devouring its own brothers and sisters still in their eggs. Wherever the aphids are crowded there is almost sure to be seen crawling among them soft grayish or green wormlike creatures, mostly less than a quarter of an inch in length. The body is legless and tapers to the forward end, FIG. o 5. A larva ofa syrphus fly feeding on aphids [ 761 PLANT LICE which has no distinct head but from which is protruded and retracted a pair of strong, dark hooks. Watch one of these things as it creeps upon an unsuspecting aphid; with a quick movement of the outstretched forward end of the body it makes a swing at the fated insect, grabs it with the extended hooks, swings it aloft kicking and struggling, and relentlessly sucks the juices from its body (Fig. o5). Then with a toss it flings the shrunken skin aside, and repeats the attack on another aphid. This heartless blood-sucker is a maggot, the larva of a fly (Fig. o6) belonging to a family called the Syrphidae. The adult files of this family are entirely harmless, though FIG. 106. Two common species of syrphus flies whose larvae feed on aphids. (Enlarged about 3¼ rimes) A, .411ograpta obliqua. B, OEyrphus americana some of them look like bees, but the females of those species whose maggots feed on aphids know the habits of their offspring and place their eggs on the leaves where aphids are feeding. One of them may be seen hovering near a well-infested leaf. Suddenly she darts toward the leaf and then as quickly is off again; but in the moment of passing, an egg has been stuck to the surface right in the midst of the feeding insects. Here it hatches where the young maggot will find its prey close at hand. In addition to these predacious creatures that openly and honestly attack their victims and eat them alive, the aphids have other enemies with more insidious methods of procedure. If you look over the aphid-infested leaves [ 77] INSECTS Fm. fo 7. A dead potato aphis that has contained a parasite, which when adult escaped through the door cut in the back of the aphis home. The guest that so ravishes its protector is the grub of a small wasp- like insect (Fig. mS) with a long, sharp ovipositor by means of which it thrusts an egg into the body of a living aphid Fro. mS. .4phMius, a coin- mon small wasplike parasite of aphids on almost any plant, you will most likely note here and there a much swollen aphid of a brown- ish color. Closer examination reveals that such individuals are dead, and man)' of them have a large round hole in the back, perhaps with a lid standing up from one edge like a trap door (Fig. o7). These aphids have not died natural deaths; each has been ruade the involuntary host of another insect that con- verted its body into a temporary Fro. 9. A female .4phidius inserting an egg into the body of a living aphis, where the egg hatches; the larva grows to ma- turity by feeding in the tissues of the aphis. (From Webster) IFig. 1o9). Here the egg hatches and the young grub feeds on the juices of the aphid until it is itself full-grown, bv which rime the aphid is exhatsted and dead. Then the grub slits open the lower wall of the hol]ow corpse and spins a web between the lips of the opening and against the surface of the leaf below, which attaches the aphid shell to the support. Thus se- cured, the grub proceeds to give [178] PLANT LICE its gruesome chamber a lining of silk web; which done, it lies down to test and soon changes to a pupa. After a short rime it again transforms, this rime into the adult of its species, and the latter cuts with its jaws the hole in the back of the aphid and emerges. In other cases, the dead aphid does hot test fiat on the leaf but is elevated on a small mound (Fig. l IC)A). Such victims have been inhabited by the grub of a re- lated species, which, when full-grown, spins a fiat cocoon beneath the dead body of its host, and in this inclosure undergoes its transformation. The adult insect then cuts a door in the side of the cocoon (B), through which it makes its exit. Insects that usurp the bodies of other insects for their own purposes are called parasites. Parasites are the FIc. I o. Aphids parasitized by a parasite that makes a cocoon beneath the body of the aphis, where it changes to a pupa and, when adult, emerges through a door cut in the side of the cocoon worst enemies that insects have to contend against; but reallv they do hot contend against them in most cases, except in the way characteristic of insects, which is to insure themselves against extermination by the number of their offspring. The aphid colonies are often, how- ever, greatly depleted during a season favorable to the predacious and parasitic insects that attack them; but no species is ever annihilated by its enemies, for this would mean starvation to the next year's brood of the latter. The laws of compensation usually maintain a balance [ I79] INSECTS in nature between the procreative and the destructive forces. The insect parasites and predators of other insects in general comprise a class of insects that are most beneficial to us bv reason of their large-scale destruction of species injurious to our crops. But, unfortunately, parasites as a class do hot respect our classification of other creatures into harmful and useful species. I]ven as some predator is stalking its prey, another insect is likely to be shadowing it, awaiting the chance to inject into its bodv the egg which will mean finallv death to the destroyer. lmmature insects are often fOtllid in a sluggish or half-alive condi- tion, and an internal examination of their bodies usually reveals that thev are occupied bv one or more parasitic larvae. A larva of anv of the lady-beetles, for example, is frequently seen attacled to a leaf for pupation (Fig. 11 ), which, instead of transforming to a pupa, remains inert and soon becomes a lifeless form, though still adhering to the ]eaf and bent in the attitude that the pupa would assume. In a short time there issues through the dried skin a parasite, giving evidence of the fate that has be- (allen the unfortunate larva; even if the usurper is hot seen, the exit hole in the larval skin bears witness to his former occupancy and escape. And the parasites themselves, do they lead unmolested lives? Are thev the final arbiters of lire and death in the insect world? if vou are fortunate sometime while study- ing aphids out-of'-doors, vou may see a tiny black mite, no bigger than the small;est gnat, hovering about an in- fested plant or darting uncertainlv from one leaf to another, with the air of searching for something but hot knowing just where to look. You would probably suspect the intruder of being a parasite seeking a chance to place an egg in the bodv of an aphid; but here she hovers over a group of fat lice without selecting a victim, then per- haps alights and rtlns about on the leaf nervously and intensely eager, still finding nothing to her choice. Her [ 8o] PLANT LICE senses must be dull, indeed, if it is aphids that she wants. Do not lose sight of ber, however, for ber attitude bas changed; now she certainly bas ber eye upon something that holds ber attention, but the object is nothing other than one of those swollen parasitized aphids. Yet she excitedly runs up toit, feels it, grasps it, mounts upon it, examines it ail over. Evidently she is satisfied. She dismounts, turns about, backs her abdomen against the inflated mummy; now out cornes the swordlike .',,t/. ovipositor, and with a thrust it is sunken into the already parasitized aphid. Two mmu tes later her business is ended, the ovipositor is withdrawn, once morè sheathed, and the insect is off and awav. This tiny creature is a hyperparasite, which is to say, a parasite of a para- site. In the act just wit- Fro. III. A parasitized larva of a lady- bird beetle, and one of the parasites The larva of the beetle has attached itself to a leaf preparatory to pupation, but has hot changed to a pupa because of the parasites within it. Above, one of the parasites, which escaped from the beetle larva through a hole if cut in the skin of the latter nessed she, too, has thrust an egg into the aphid, but the grub that will hatch from it will devour the parasitic occupant that is alreadv in pos- session of the aphid's skin. There are also parasites of hyperparasites, but the series does hOt go on "ad infinitum" as in the old rhyme, for the limitation of size must intervene. CHAPTER Vil THE PERIODICAI. CICADA ]T iS to be observed, in most of our human affairs, that we give greatest acclaim to the spectacular, and, further- more, that when once a hero bas delivered the great thrill, all his acts of everyday lire acquire headline values. Thus a biographer may run on at great length about the petty details in the lire of some great person, knowing well that the public, under the spell of hero worship, will read with avidity of things that would make but the dullest plati- tudes if told of anv undistinguished mortal. Therefore, in the following history of out (amous insect, universally known as the "seventeen-year locust," the writer does hot hesitate to insert marrer that would be dry and tedious if given in connection with a commonplace creature. lMost unfortunate it is, now, that we are compe]led to divest our hero of his long-worn epithet of "seventeen-year locust," and to present him in the disguise of his true patronymic, which is cicada (pronounced sî-ka'-da). In a scientific book, however, we must bave full respect for the proprieties of nomenclature; and since, as already explained in Chapter I, the naine "locust" belongs to the grasshopper, we can hot continue to designate a cicada by this terre, for so doing would but propagate confusion. Moreover, even the praenomen of "seventeen-year" is misleading, for some of the members of the species bave thirteen-year lires. Entomologists, therefore, bave re- christened the "seventeen-year locust" the periodical cicada. The cicada family, the Cicadidae, includes many species. [8] THE PERIODICAL CICADA of cicadas in both the New World and the Old, and some of them are more familiar, at least by sound, than our periodical cicada, because hot only are the males noto- riously musical, but they are to be heard every year (Fig. 2). The cicadas of southern Europe were highly es- teemed by the ancient Greeks and Romans for their song, and they were often kept in cages to furnish entertainment FIG. II. One of the common annual cicadas whose loud song is heard every year through the later part of the summer with their music. The Greeks called the cicada tettix, and Aesop, who always found the weak spot in every- body's character, wrote a fable about the tettix and the ant, in which the tettix, or cicada, after having sung ail summer, asked a bite of food from the ant when the chill winds of coming winter found him unprovisioned. But the practical ant heartlessly replied, "Well, now you can dance." This is an unjust piece of satire because the moral is drawn to the disparagement of the cicada. Human musicians have learned their lesson, however, and sign their contracts with the box-office management in advance. [ I83] INSECTS In the United States there are numerous species of "annual" cicadas, so called because they appear every year, but their life histories are hot actually known in most cases. These species are called "locusts," "harvest files," and "dog-day cicadas" (Fig. I I2). They are the insects that sit in the trees during the latter hall of sum- mer and make those long shrill sounds that seem to be the natural accompaniment of hot weather. Some give a rising and falling inflection to their song, which re- sembles zwing, zwing, zwing, zwing, (repeated in a long series); others make a vibratory rattling sound; and still others utter just a continuous whistling buzz. During the interval between the times of the appear- ancê of the adult cicadas, the insects live underground. The periodical cicada comprises two faces, one of which lives in its subterranean abodes for most of seventeen years, the other for most of thirteen years. Both faces inhabit the eastern part of the United States, but the longer-lived race is northern, and the other southern, though their territories overlap. Most of out familiar in- sects complete their life cycle in a single year, and many of them produce two or more generations every season. For this reason we marvel at the long life of the periodical cicada, l'et there are other common insects that normally require two or three years to reach maturity, and certain beetles bave been known to live for twenty years or more in an immature stage, though under conditions adverse for transforming to the adult. Throughout the period of their underground lire the cicadas bave a form quite different from that which they take on when they leave the earth to spend a brief period in the trees. The form of the young periodical cicada at the time it is ready to emerge from the ground is shown in Plate 5- It will be seen that it suggests one of those familiar shells so often found clinging to the trunk of a tree or the side of a post. These shells, in fact, are the empty skins of young cicadas that bave discarded their [ I84] PLATE 5 The mature nymph of the periodical cicada in the form in which it leaves the ground to transform to the wivged adult after a subterranean lire of nearly seventeen vears THE PERIODICAL CICADA earthly form for that of a winged insect of the upper world and sunshine, though the skins_ ordinarily seen are those of the annual species. The cicada undergoes a striking transformation from the young to the adult, but it does so directlv and not by means of an intervening stage, or pupa. "'he young of an insect that transforms directly is termed a n.vmph by most American entomologists. The last nymphal stage is sometimes called a "pupa," but it is hot properly so designated. The life of the periodical cicada stirs our imagination as that of no other insect does. For years we do not see the creatures, and then a springtime cornes when countless thousands of them issue from the earth, undergo their transformation, and swarm into the trees. Now, for several weeks, the very air seems swayed with the mo- notonous rhythm of their song, while the business of ma- ring and egg-laying goes rapidly on; and soon the twigs of trees and shrubs are everywhere scarred with slits and punctures where the eggs have been inserted. In a few weeks the noisy multitude is gone, but for the rest of the season the trees bear witness to the busy throng that so briefly inhabited them by a spotting of their foliage with masses of brown and dying leaves where the punctured stems have broken in the wind. The young cicadas that hatch from the eggs later in the summer silently drop to the earth and hastily bury themselves beneath the sur- face. Here they lire in solitude, seldom observed by creatures of the upper world, through the long period of their adolescent years, only to enjoy at the end a few brief weeks of life in the open air in the fellowship of their kind. T NYMPHS Of the underground lire of the periodical cicada we still know very little. The fullest account of the history of this species is that given by Dr. C. L. Marlatt in his lSsl INSECTS Bulletin, Tte Periodical Cicada, published by the United States Bureau of Entomology in I9O 7 . Doctor Marlatt describes six immature stages of the periodical cicada between the egg and the adult. The young cicada that first enters the ground is a minute, soft-bodied, pale-skinned creature about a twelfth of an inch in length (Fig. 126). The body is cylindrical and is supported on two pairs of legs, the front legs being the digging organs; the somewhat elongate head bears a pair of small dark eyes and two slender, jointed antennae. At no stage has the cicada _jaws like those of the grass- hopper; it is a sucking insect, related to the aphids, and is provided with a beak arising from the under surface of the head, but when hot in use the beak is turned back- ward between the bases of the front legs. Throughout the period of its underground life, the cicada subsists on the sap of roots. During more than a vear the young cicada retains ap- proximately the form it'has at hatching, though the body changes somewhat in shape, principally by an increase in the size of the abdomen (Fig. 13). According to Doctor Marlatt, a nymph of the seventeen-year race first Fro. 113. Nymph of the periodi- cal cicada in the first stage, about  8 months old, enlarged  5 rimes. (From Marlatt) sheds its skin, or molts, some- rime during the first two or three months of the second vear of its lire. In its second stage it be- cornes a little larger and is marked by a change in the structure of the front legs, the terminal foot part of each being reduced to a mere spur and the fourth section being developed into a strong, sharp-pointed pick which forms a more efficient organ for digging. The second stage lasts nearly two years; then the creature molts again and enters its th}rd 1861 THE PERIODICAL CICADA stage, which is about a vear in length. In the fourth stage, which lasts perhaps three or four years, the nymph (Fig. 4) shows distinct wing pads on the two wing- bearing segments of the thorax. In the fifth stage the insect, sometimes now called a "pupa," takes on the form it has when it finally emerges from the earth; its front feet are restored and its wing pads are well developed, but it has entirelv lost its small nymphai eyes. Once more, before its long underground sen- FIG. 114. Nymph of the periodical cicada in the fourth stage, about  years old, enlarged OEvd times. (From Marlatt) tence is up, the nymph molts, and enters the sixth and last stage of its subtelranean lire. When mature (Plate 5) it is about an inch and a quarter in length, thick-bodied, and brown in color; it appears to have a pair of bright-red eyes on the head, but these are the eyes of the adult inside showing through the nymphal skin. According to the investigations of Doctor Marlatt, the nymphs of the periodical cicada do not ordinarily burrow into the earth below two feet, and most of them are to be round at depths varying from eight to eighteen inches. However, there are reports of their having been discovered ten feet beneath the surface, and they have been known to emerge from the floors of cellars at the time of trans- formation to the adult stage. There is no evidence that the insects, even when present in great numbers in the earth, do any appreciable damage to the vegetation on the roots of which they feed. Some time before the mature nymphs emerge from the ground, probably in April of the last year of their lives, the insects corne up from their subterranean burrows and construct a chamber of varying depth just below the [187] INSECTS 'lç. I 1_. Outlines of plaster casts of underground resting chambers of the rnature nymph of the periodical cicada (about one-half natural size) [88] THE PERIODICAL CICADA surface. A good idea of the size and shape of these cham- bers may be obtained bv filling the opened holes with a mixture of plaster of Paris in water, letting the plaster harden, and then digging up the casts. Figure I t5 shows castsofa number ofchambers madein this way. Some, it is seen, are mere cups about an inch in depth, but most of them are long and narrow, descending several inches into the ground, the longest being six inches or more in depth. The width is usually about five-eighths of an inch. Ail the chambers bave a distinct enlargement at the bottom, and most of them are slightly widened at the top. The upper wall of each is separated from the surface by a laver of undisturbed soil about hall an inch in thick- ness, which is hot broken until the insect is ready to enlerge. The shafts are seldom straight, their courses being more or less tortuous and inclined to the surface, as the miner had to avoid roots and stones obstructing the vertical path. The interior contains no débris of any kind, and the walls are smooth and compact. Below each chamber there is always evidence of a narrower burrow going irregularly downward into the earth, but this tunnel is filled to the chamber floor with black granu- lar earth. The burrows examined bv the writer near Washington in 99 were dug through compact red clay, and the lower tunnels here ruade a distinct black path through the red of the surrounding clay, where some could be followed for a considerable distance. The black color of the earth filling the tumels was possibly due to an admixture of fecal matter. The chambers, as we bave noted, are closed at the top until the cicada is readv to emerge. The largest chambers are manv times the btilk of the nymph in volume, and it becomes, then, a question as to what the insect does with the material it removed in making a hole of such size. It seems improbable that it could have been carried down into the lower tunnel, for this would be filled with its own [ 891 INSECTS débris. The insects thernselves will give an answer to the question if several of thern are placed in glass tubes and covered with earth; but, to understand the cicada's technique, we must first study the rnechanisrn of its digging tools, the front legs. The front leg of a rnature cicada nyrnph (Fig. J x6 A) is Fro. 6. The digging organ, or front leg, of the mature cicada nymph A, right le[g, inner surface (4 times natural size). B, the tarsus (Tar) bent inward at right angles to the tibia (Tb), the posi- tion in which it is used as a rake Cx, basal joint or coxa; Tf, trochanter; F, retour; Tb, tibia; Tar, tarsus, with two terminal daws cornposed of the sarne parts as anv other of its legs. The (hird segment frorn the base, which is the.femur (F), is large and swollen, and has a pair of strong spines and a cornb of srnaller ones projecting frorn its lower edge. The next segment is the tibia (Tb). It is curved and terrninates in a strong recurved point (B). Finally, at- tached to the inner sur- face of the tibia, well up frorn its terminal point, is the slender tarsus (Tar). The tarsus can be extended beyond the tibial point when the insect is walking or clirnbing, but can also be turned inward at a right angle to the latter, as shown at B, or bent back against the inner surface of the tibia. Let us now return to the insects in the earth-filled tubes, where they are industriously at work. It will be seen that they are using the curved, sharp-pointed tibiae as picks with which to loosen the earth, the tarsi being turned back and out of the way. The two legs, working alternately, soon accurnulate a srnall rnass of loosened rnaterial in front of the insect's body. Now there is a [ J9 o ] THE PERIODICAL CICADA cessation of digging and the tarsi are turned forward at right angles to the tibiae to serve as rakes (Fig. J J6 B). The mass of earth pellets is scraped in toward the body, and -here cornes the important part, the cicada's special technique--the little pile of rakings is grasped by one front leg between the tibia and the femur (.Fig. 6 A, Tb and F), the former closing up against the spiny margin of the latter, the leg strikes forcibly outward, and the mass of loosened earth is pushed back into the surrounding earth. The process is repeated, first with one leg, then with the other. The miner looks like a pugilist training on a punching bag. Now and then the worker stops and rubs his legs over the protruding front of the head to clean them on the rows of bristles which cover each side of the face. Then he proceeds again, clawing, raking, gathering up the loosened particles, thrusting them back into the wall of the growing chamber. His back is firmly pressed against the opposite side of the cavitv, the middle legs are bent forward uhtil their knees are aimost against the bases of the front legs, their tibiae lying along the wing pads. The hind legs keep a normal position, though held close against the sides of the bodv. From what we know of the cicada's spring habits underground, we can infer that the nymphs construct their chambers on their arrival near the surface during April, and that, when the chambers are completed, the insects wait within for the signal to emerge and trans- form into the adult. Then they break through the thin caps at the surface and corne out. |t would be difficult to explain how thev know when they are so near the top of the ground, and" whv some construct ample chambers several inches deep whle others make mere cells scarcely larger than their bodies. Do they burrow upward till the pressure tells them that the surface is only a quarter of an inch or so away, and then widen the débris-filled tunnel downward? Evidently hot, because the chamber walls are ruade of clean, compacted clay in which there I J9  ] I NSECTS is no admixture of the blackened contents of the burrows. It is unlikely, too, that they base their judgments on a sense of temperature, because their acts are hot regulated by the nature of the season, which, if early or late, would fool them in their calculations. Early in the spring, before the proper emergence season, cicada nymphs are often round beneath logs and stones. This is to be expected, for, to the ascending insect, some- thing impenetrable has blocked the way, and there is nothing to tell it that it has already reached the level of the surface. A more curious thing, often observed in some localities, F1G. i17. Earthcn turrcts somctimes. erected by the nymphs of the periodcal cicada as continuations frorn their under- ground chambers. One cut open showing the tubular cavity within. (From photo- graph by Marlatt) is that the insects some- rimes continue their chambers up above the surface of the ground within closed turrets of mud from two to several inches in height (Fig. 117). At certain places these cicada "huts" have been reported as occur- ring m great numbers; and it bas been supposed that they ma}" be built wherever there is some- thing about the nature of the soli that the insects do hot like, the earth being perhaps too damp, for they are frequently round where the ground is unusually wet. On the other hand, the turrets have been observed in dry situations as well, and towers and holes flush with the surface frequently occur intermingled. The writer has had no opportunity of studying the cicada turrets, but a most interesting description of them is given [Igal I'LXTE 6 The cicada just after emergence flore the nymphal skin. (Enlarged two-thirds) THE PERIODICAL CICAI)A by Dr. J. A. 1.intner in his Tzvel.[th Report on the lnsects o.[ .Vew '0rk, published in ,897. l)r. l.intner savs the turrets are constructed bv the nymphs with soif'pellets of clay or mud brought up from below and firmly pressed into place, and he records an observation on a nymph caught at work with a pe]let of mud in its claws. \Ve mav infer, then, that the cicada's style of work as a mason is only a modification of its work'ing methods as a miner, but it appears that no one bas vet actuallv watched the construction of one of the turrets. At emergence time the towers are opened at the top and the insects corne forth as thev would from an ordinarv chamber beneath the level of the ground. "I'H E "I'RANS FORMATION The period of emergence for most of the cicadas of the northern, or seventeen-year, race is the latter part of lav. The rime of their appearance over large areas is much more nearlv uniform than with most other insects, which show a wide variation according to temperature as determined bv the season, the elevation, and the latitude. Nevertheless," observations in different localities show that the cicada, too, is influenced by these conditions. In the South, members of the thirteen-vear race may emerge even a month earlier, the tirst incividuals of the southernmost broods appearing in the latter part of April. Bv some feeling of impending change the rnature nymph, waiting in its chamber, knows when the time of transformation is at hand. Somehow nature regulates the event so that it will happen in the evening, but, once the hour has corne, no time is to be lost. The nymph must break out of its cell, tind a suitable molting site and one in accord with the traditions of its race, and there fix itself by a tirm grip of the tarsal claws. At the be- ginning of the principal emergence period large numbers of the insects corne out of their chambers as early as [ 93J INSECTS rive o'clock in the afternoon; but after the rush of the first few days hot many appear belote dusk. It is difficult to catch a nymph in the very act ofmaking its exit from the ground, and apparently no observations bave been recorded on the manner of its leaving. Do the insects leisurely open their doors some time in advance of their actual need and wait below till the proper hour, or do they break through the thin caps ofearth and emerge at once? Digging up many open chambers revealed a living nymph in only one. Another issued from one of several dozen holes filled with liquid plaster for obtaining casts. Add to this the fact that great numbers of fresh holes are to be seen every morning during the emergence season, and the evidence would appear to indicate that the insects open their doors in the evening and corne out at once. Only one chamber was round in the daytime partly opened. If the insects are elusive and wary of being spied upon as thev make their début into the upper world, a witness of tleir subsequent behavior does hot embarrass them at ail. However, events are imminent; there is no time to waste. The crawling insects head for anv upright object within their range of vision- a tree is the ideal goal if it can be attained, and since the creatures were born in trees there is likely tobe one near by. Yet it ffequently happens that trees in which many were hatched have been since cut down, in which case the returning pilgrims must make a longer journey perhaps than anticipated. But the transformation can hot be delayed; if a tree is hot accessible, a bush or a weed, a post, a telegraph pole, or a blade of grass will do. On the trees some get only so far as the trunk, others attain the branches, but the mob gets out. upon the leaves. Thotlgh thousands emerge almost simultaneously, thev have not ail been timed alike. Some have but a few minutes to spare, others can travel about for an hour or so before anything happens. [ 941 THE PERIODICAL CICADA The external phase of transformation, more strictly the shedding of the last nymphal skin, has been many times observed. It is nothing more than what ail insects do. But the cicada is notorious because it does the thing in such a spectacular way, almost courting publicity where most insects are shy and retiring. As a conse- quence the cicada is famous; the others are known only to prying entomologists. Let us suppose now that our crawling nymph has reached a place that suits it, say on the trunk of a tree, or better still on a piece of branch provided for it and taken into a lighted room where its doings can be more clearly observed. Though the insects choose the evening for emergence, they are hot bashful at ail about changing their clothes in the glare of artificial light. The progress of this performance is illustrated bv Figure I i8. The first drawing shows the nymph stiil creeping upward; but in the next (2) it has corne to rest and is cleaning its tront feet and claws on the brushes of its face, just as did those confined to the glass tubes to give a demon- stration of their digging methods. The front feet done, the hind ones are next attended to. First one and then the other is slowlv flexed and then straightened back- ward (3) while the foot scrapes over the side of the ab- domen. Several times these acts are repeated calmly and deliberately, for it is an important thing that the claws be well freed from any particles of dry earth that might impair their grip on the support. /t last the toilet is completed, though the naiddle feet are always neglected, and the insect feels about on the twig, grasp- ing now here, now there, till its claws take a firm hold on the bark. At the saine time it sways the body gently frona side to side as if trying to settle comfortably for the next act. Thirtv-five minutes mav be consumed in the above preliminaries and there is "next a ten-minute interval of quietude before the real show begins. Then suddenly I951 INSECTS Çl+. I18. Transformation of the periodical cicada from thc mature nymph to the adult l 9 6 ] THE PERIODICAL CICADA the insect humps its back (4), the skin splits along the midline of the thorax (.5), the rupture extending forward over the top of the head and rearward into the first seg- ment of the abdomen. A creamv white back, stamped with two _large .let-black spots, now bulges out ((5, 7); next cornes a head with two brilliant red eyes (8); this is followed bv the front part of a bodv (9) which bends backward and pulls out legs and basés of wings. Soon one leg is free (`'o), then four legs (`'`'), while four long, glistening white threads pull out of the bodv of the issuing creature but remain attached to the empty shell. These are the linings of the thoracic air tubes being shed with the nymphal skin. Now the bodv hangs back down, when ail the legs corne free (`'2), and now it sags peril- ouslv (C') as the wings begin to expand and visiblv lengthen. Here another rest intervenes; perhaps twentv-five min- utes mav elapse, while the sort new creature, like an in- verted gargoyle supported onlv bv the rear end of its body, hangs motionless far out "fro{ the split in the back of the shell. Now we understand whv the nymph took such pains to get a firm anchorage, for, should the dead claws give wav at this critical stage, the resulting fall most probably «ould prove fatal. The next act begins abruptly. The gargoyle moves again, bends its bodv upward ("4), grasps the head and shoulders of the slo'ugh (*'5), and pulls the rear parts of its bodv free from the gaping skin (,,6). The body straighten" and hangs downward (`'7)- At last we be- hold the free imago, hOt ver mature but rapidly assum- ing the characters of an adult cicada. The new creature hangs for a while from the discarded shell-like skin, clinging bv the front and middle legs, sometimes by the first alone; the hind ones spread out sidewavs or bend against the body, rarelv grasping the skin. The wings continue to unfold and lengthen, finallv hang fiat, fullv formed, but soft and white (`'N). 14ere the creature [97] INSECTS usually becomes restless, leaves the empty skin (I9) , and takes up a new position several inches away At this stage the cicada is strangely beautiful. Its creamy-yellow paleness, intensified by the great black patches just behind the head and relieved by the pearly flesh tint of the mesothoracic shield, its shining red eyes, and the milky, semitransparent wings with deep chrome on their bases make a unique impression on the mind. There is a look of unrealitv about the thing, which out of doors (Plate 6) becomes a ghostlike vision against the night. But, even as we watch, the color changes; the unearthly paleness is suffused with bluish gray, which deepens to blackish gray; the wings flutter, fold against the back, and the spell is broken--an insect sits in the place of the vanished specter. The rest is commonplace. The colors deepen, the grays become blackish and then black, and after a few hours the creature bas all the characters of a fully matured cicada. Early the next morning it is fluttering about, restless to be off with its mates to the woods. The time consumed by the entire performance, from the splitting of the skin (Fig. I  8, 5) to the folding of the wings above the back (2I), varies with different indi- viduals, observed at the saine time and under the saine conditions, from forty-five minutes to one hour and twelve minutes. Most of the insects bave issued from the nymphal skins before eleven o'clock at night, but oc- casionally a straggler may be seen in the last act as late as nine o'clock the following morning--probably a be- lated arrival who overslept the night before. Thus, to the eye, the burrowing and crawling creature of the earth becomes transfigured to a creature of the air; vet the visible change is mostly but the final escape of the mature ingect from the skin of its preceding stage. Aside from a few last adjustments and the expansion of the wings, the real change bas been in progress within the nymphal skin perhaps for years. We do hot truly witness [ 9 8 ] THE PERIODICAL CICADA the transformation; we see only the throwing off of the shell that concealed it, as the circus performer strips off the costume of the clown and appears already dressed in that of the accomplished acrobat. T ADVLTS The adult cicada bears the stamp of individuality. In form he does hOt closely resemble any of out everyday insects, and he has a personality ail his own; he impresses us as a "distinguished foreigner in out midst." The body of the periodical cicada is thick-set (Fig. 119) , the face is bulging, the forehead is wide, with the eyes set out promi- nently on each side; from the under side of the head the short, strong beak projects downward and backward be- tween the bases of the front legs. The colors are dis- tinctive but hOt striking. The back is plain black (Plate 7) ; the eyes are bright red; the wings are shiny transparent amber with strongly marked orange-red veins; the legs and beak are reddish, and there are bands of the same color on the rings of the abdomen. Ech front wing is branded near the tip with a conspicuous dark-brown W. With both the seventeen-year race and the thirteen- year race of the periodical cicada there is associated a small cicada, which, however, differs so little except in size from the others (Fig. 119) that entomologists gener- ally regard it as a mere variety of the larger form, the latter always including by far the greater number of individuals in any brood. The male cicada has a pair of large drumheads beneath the bases of the wings on the front end of the abdomen (Fig. oEo, Tre). These are the instruments by which he produces his music, and we will give them more atten- tion presently. The female cicada has no drums nor other sound-making organs; she is voiceless, and must keep silence no matter how much her noisy mate mav disturb ber peace. The chier distinction of the female is ber ovipositor, a long, swordlike instrument used for inserting [ 99] I N S EC'I'S the eggs into the twigs of trees and bushes. Ordinarilv the ovipositor is kept in a sheath beneath the rear halfof the abdomen, but when in use it can be turned downward and forward bv a hinge at its base (Plate 7). The oviposi- tor consists of two lateral blades, and a  guide-rail ai»ove. The blades excavate a cav-  itv in the wood in- te; which the eggs j are passed through the space between the blades. I t was formcrlv sup- posed that the period- ical cicada takes no fod during the brief Flç. 119. blales of the large and small form of the periodical cicada (natural size) rime of its adult lire, but e know from the observations of .lr. W. T. l)avis, l)r. A. !...Quaintance, and others and from a studv of the stomach contents ruade o bv the writer that the insects do feed abundantlv bv st'cking the sap from the trees on which thev lire. The cicada, being a near relative of the aphids, has  /  also, as we have alreadv noted, a pierci{ and suck- in belîk bv which  it  the punctures plant tissues and r, draws the sap up toitsmouth. ['n- like the other sucking insects v,ç. ,=o.  ,ale of ,e pr,,«a! «iaaa ,i, ,e wings spread, showing the ribbed sound-producing that infest plants, organs, or tympana (Tm),on thebaseofthe abdomen [ 200 ] THE PERIODICAI. CICADA however, the cicadas cause no visible damage to the trees bv their feeding. Perhaps this is because their attack lasts such a short rime and cornes at a season when the trees are at their fillest vigor. The details of the head structure of the cicada and the exposed part of the beak are shown in Figure which gives in side view the head of a fully matured adult, detached from the body by the torn neck mem- brane (.VMb), with the beak (Bk) extending downward and backward below. The large eyes (E) project from the sides of the upper part of the head. The face is covered bv a large protruding, striated plate (C/p). The cheek regions are firmed bv a long plate (Ge) on each side below the eyes; and between each cheek plate and the striated facial plate is parti)" concealed a narrower plate (Md). The cicada bas no jaws. lts true mouth is shut in between the large flap (.tClp), below the striated facial plate, and the base of the beak. If the outer parts of the head about the mouth can be separated, there will be seen within them some other verv important parts ordinarilv hidden from view. In a specimen that has been killéd in the act of emerging from the nymphal skin, when it is still soft, the outer parts are easilv separated, exposing the structures shown at B of the saine figure. It is now to be seen (b'ig. '._ B) that the beak con- sists of a long troughlike appendage (Lb) suspended from beneath the back part of the head, having a deep groove on its front surface in which are normally ensheathed two pairs of slender bristles (MdB, .ll.vB), of which only the two of the left side are shown in the figure. In front of the bases of the bristles there is exposed a large tongue- like organ which is the hypopharynx (Hph)'). Between this tongue and the flap hanging from the front of the face is the wide-open mouth (Mtt), the roof of which (e) bulges downward and almost fills the mouth cavity. The wav in which the cicada obtains its liquid food de- [ 2OI ] INSECTS pends upon the finer structure and the mechanism of the parts before us. Each one of the second pair of bristles bas a furrow along the entire length of its inner surface, and the two F. . The structure f the head and sueklng beak A, the Bead in side view with the beak (B) in natural B, the head f an immature adult: the muth («) f the su«king pump (soe fig. e), and the tnguelike the parts f the beak separated, shwing that it is emposed f the labium (L), inclsing nrmally tw pai f Ing slender bristles (MdB, one of each pair shown) a, bridge between base of mandibular plate (Md) and hypopharynx (Hpy); .lclp, anteclypeus; nt, antenna; Bk, beak; Clp, clypeus e, roof of mouth cavity, or sucking pump; Ge, gena fcheek plate); Hpy, hypopharynx; Lb, labium; Lin, labrum; Md, base of mandible; MdB, mandibular bristle; Mth, mouth; axilla MxB, maxillary bristlei NMb, neck membrane; O, oeelli bristles, small as they are, are fastened together by inter- locking ridges and grooves, so that their apposed fur- rows are converted into a single tubular channel. the natral position, these second bristles lie in the sheath of the beak (Fig. ux A) between the somewhat larger first bristles. Their bases separate at the tip'of I o ] THE PERIODICAI. CICADA the tongue (Hphy) to pass to either side of the latter organ, but the channel between them here becomes con- tinuous with a groove on the middle of the forward sur- face of the tongue. When the mouth-opening is closed, as it always is in the fully matured insect, the tongue groove is converted into a tube which leads upward from the channel between the second bristles into the inner cavity of the mouth. It is through this minute passage that the cicada obtains its liquid food; but obviously there must be a pumping apparatus to furnish the sucking force. The sucking mechanism is the mouth cavity and its muscles. The mouth cavity, as seen in a section of the head (Fig.  22, Pmp), is a long, oval, thick-walled capsule having its roof, or anterior wall (e), ordinarily bent inward so far as almost to fill the cavity. Upon the midline of the roof is inserted a great mass of muscle fibers (Pmp:$lcl«) that have their other attachment on the striated plate of the face (Clp). The contraction of these muscles lifts the roof, and the vacuum thus created in the cavity of the mouth sucks up the liquid food. Then the muscles relax, and the elastic roof again collapses, but the lower end cornes down first and forces the liquid upward through the rear exit of the mouth cavity into the pharynx, a small muscular-walled sac (P]zy) lying in the back of the head. From the pharynx, the food is driven into the. tubular gullet, or oesophagus (OE), and so on into the stomach. The bases of both pairs of bristles are retracted into pouches of the lower head wall behind the tongue, and tapon each bristle base are inserted sets of protractor and retractor muscle fibers. By means of these muscles, the bristles can be thrust out from the tip of the beak or withdrawn, and the bristles of the stronger first pair are probably the chier organs with which the insect punctures the tissues of the plant on which it feeds. As the bristles enter the wood, the sheath of the beak can INSECTS be retracted into the flexible membrane of the neck at i ts base. One other structure of interest in the cicada's head should be observed. This is a force pump connected with the duct (Fig. 2"_, SalD) of the large salivary glands G/, GI) and used probably for injecting into the wound of the plant a secretion which perhaps softens the tissues of the latter as the bristles are inserted. Possiblv the salira has ,'{lso a Cl GI /VidB" /VixB" FIG. 122. Median section of the head and beak of an aduIr cicada The sucking pump (Proie) is rhe mouth cavity, the collapsed roof of which (e) can be lifred like a piston by rhe large 'muscles (PmpIcls) arising on rhe clypeus (Clp). The liquid food ascends rhrough a channel between rhe maxillary brisrles (IxB}, is drawn into rhe mourh opening (Ith), and pumped back inro rhe pharynx (Phy), from which if goes inro rhe oesophagus (OE). A salivary pump (alPmp) opens af rhe rip of rhe hypopharynx (Hp&v), dis- charging the secrerion of rhe large glands (GI, GI) inro rhe beak digestive action on the food liquid. The salivarv pump (SalPmp) lies behind the mouth, and its duct opens on the extreme tip of the tongue, where the salira can be driven into the charme} of the second bristles. .lost sucking sects have two parallel channe]s between these bristles IFig. 9o), one for taking food, the other for ejectingsaliva, and the cicada probably bas two also, though in- vestigators diff-er as to whether there are two or on}v one. [ 204] THE PERIODICAL CICA1)A The head of the cicada is thus seen to be a wonder(ul mechanism for enabling the insect to feed on plant sap. The piercing beak and the sucking apparatus, however, are characters distinguishing the members of a whole order of insects, the Hemiptera, or Rhvnchota. This order includes, besides the cicadas, such "familiar insects as the plant lice, the scale insects, the squash bugs, the giant water bugs, the water striders, and the bed bugs. "Fo the sucking insects properly belongs the naine "bug," which is hot a svnonwaa of "insect." It is believed, of course, that the parts of the sucking beak of a hemipteran insect correspond with the mouth parts of a biting insect, described in Chapter IV (Fig. 66), but it has been a difficult marrer to determine the identities of the parts ira the two cases. Probablv the anterior narrow plate on the side of the cicada's'head (Fig. 2, .lld) is a rudiment of the base of the true jaw, or mandible. The first bristles (aldB) are outgrowths of the mandibular plates, which have become detached from them and ruade independentlv movable by special sets of muscles. The second bri'tles (M.vB) are out- growths of the maxillae, which are otherwise reduced to small lobes (M.v) depending from the cheek plates (Ge). The sheath of the beak (Lb) is the labium. We have here, therefore, a most instructive lesson on the manner ira which organs mav be ruade over ira form, by the processes of evolution, "adapting them to new and often highly special uses. The abdomen of the cicada is thick, and strongly arched above, l ts external appearance of plumpness suggests that it would furnish a juicy meal for a bird, and birds do destroy large numbers of the insects. Yet when the interior of a cicada is examined (Fig.  23) , it is found that almost the entire abdomen is occupied by a great air chamber! The soft viscera are packed into narrow spaces about the air chamber, the stomach (&0m) being crowded forward into the rear part of the thorax. [ 205 ] INSECTS [ =o6 ] THE PERIODICAL CICADA The air chamber is a large, thin-walled sac of the tracheal respiratory system, and receives its air supply directly through the spiracles of the first abdominal segment. From the sac are given off tracheal tubes to the muscles of the thorax and to the walls of the stomach. Many insects have tracheal air sacs of smaller size, and the purpose of the sacs in general appears to be that of holding reserve supplies of air for respiratory pur- poses. The great size of the air sac in the cicada's abdo- men, however, suggests that it has some special function, and it is natural to suppose that it acts as a resonating chamber in connection with the sound-producing drums. Yet the sac is as well developed in the female as in the male. Possibly, therefore, it serves too for giving buoy- ancy to the insects, for it can readily be seen that if the space occupied by the sac were filled with blood or other tissues, as it is in most other insects, the weight of the cicada would be greatly increased; or, on the other hand, if the body were contracted to such a size as to accommodate only its scanty viscera, it would lose buoyancy through lack of suflîcient extent of surface-- a paper bag crumpled up drops immediately when re- leased, but the saine bag inflated almost floats in the air. THE SOUND-PRODUCING ORGANS AND THE SONG The cicadas produce their music by instruments quite different from those of any of the singing Orthoptera --the grasshoppers, katydids, and crickets, described in Chapter ll. On the body of the male cicada, just back of the base of each hind wing, as we have already observed, in the position of the "ear" of the grasshopper (Fig. 63, Tre), there is an oval membrane like the head of a drum set into a solid frame of the body wall (Fig. lzo, Tre). Each drumhead, or tympanum, is a mem- brane closely ribbed with stiff vertical thickenings, the number of ribs varying in different species of cicadas and perhaps accounting in part for the different qualities [ "-o7 1 INSECTS of sound produced. In the periodical cicada, the drum- heads are exposed and are easily seen when the wings are lifted; ira our other common cicadas each drum lS concealed by a flap of the body wall. The sound ruade by ara ordinarv drum is produced by the vibration of the drumhead that is struck by the player, but the tone and volume of the sound are given bv the air space within the drum and by the sympathetic vibration of the opposite head. The air within the drum, then, must be in communication with the air outside the drum, else it would impede the vibration of the drumheads. Ail these conditions imposed tapon a drum are met bv the cicada. The abdomen of the insect, as we have seen, is largely occupied by a great air chamber (Fig. z3) , and the air within the chamber communicates with the outside air through the spiracles of the first abdominal segment (ISp). In addition to the two drumheads whose activity produces the sound, there are two other thin, taut lmmbranous areas set into oral frames in the lower side walls of the front part of the abdomen (hOt seen in the figures). These ventral drumheads have such smooth and glistening surfaces that they are often desig- nated the "mlrrors." The wall of the air sac is applied closely to their inner surfaces, but both membranes are so thin that it is possible to see through them right into the hollow of the cicada's bodv. The ventral drum- heads are hOt exposed externally, however, for they are covered by two large, fiat lobes projecting back beneath them from the under part of the thorax. The cicada does hot beat its drums or play upon thern with anv external part of its body. When a maie is "singing," the exposed drumheads are seen to be in very rapid vibration, as if endowed with the power of auto- matic movement. An inspection of the interior of the bodv of a dead speclmen, however, shows that con- nected with the inner face of each drumhead is a thick I =og ] THE PER1OD1CAI. CICADA muscle which arises below from a special support on the ventral wall of the second abdominal segment (Figs. 23, I24, Tm.rtlcl). It is by the contraction of these muscles that the drum membranes are set in motion. TITI Trnlcl A IT IIT IIIT Tre- . .Trrdcl B IS IIS IIiS FIG. 1:24. The abdomen and sound-making organs of the male periodical cicada A, the abdomen cut open from above, exposing the air chamber (HirSc), and showing the great tympanal muscles (TmMcl) inserted on the tympana (Tre). The arrows indicate the position of the first spiracles opening into the air chamber (see fig. 123, ISp) B, inner view of right hall of first and second abdominal segments, showing the ribbed tympanum (Tre), and the muscles that vibrate it (TmMcl) AirSc, air chamber; DMcl» dorsal muscles; IS, IlS, IIIS, sternal plates of first three abdominal segments; ISp, first abdominal spirade; IT, liT, IIIT, tergal plates of first three abdominal segments; ,, tergal plate of third thoracic seg- ment; Trn, tympanum; TmMcl, tympanal muscle; I/a, base of hind wing; IMcl, ventral muscles But a muscle pulls in onlv one direction; the drum muscles produce directlv the inward stroke of the drumhead membranes; the return stroke results flore the outward convexitv and the elasticitv of the heads themselves and the stiff ribs in their wal]s. When a cicada starts its music, it lifts the abdomen a little, thus opening the space between its ventral drum- [ 2o9 ] INSECTS heads and the protecting flaps beneath, and the sound cornes out in perceptibly increased volume. There can be little doubt that the air chamber of the body andthe ventral membranes are important accessories in the sound-producing apparatus. Living cicadas are often found with hall or more of the abdomen broken off, leav- ing the air sac open to the exterior. Such individuals may vibrate the drumheads, but the sound produced is weak and entirely lacks the quality of that ruade by the perfect insect. Wherever the periodical cicada appears in great num- bers, the daily choruses of the mmes leave an impression long remembered in the neighborhood; and, curiously, the sound appears to become increasingly louder n retrospect, until, after the lapse of years, each hearer is convinced it was a deafening clamor that almost deprived him of his senses. Fortunately the cicadas are day- time performers and are seldom heard at night. The song of the periodical species has no resemblance to the shrill, undulating screech of the annual cicadas so coin- mon every summer in August and September. Ail the notes of the more common large form of the seventeen- year race are characterized by a burr sound, and at least four different utterances may be distinguished; the quality of three of the notes probably depends on the age of the individual insect, the fourth is an expression of fright or anger. The simplest notes to be heard are sort purring sounds, generally ruade by solitary insects sitting low in the bushes, probably individuals that have but recently emerged from the ground. The next is a longer and louder note, characterized by a rougher burr, lasting about rive seconds, and always given a falling inflection at the close. This sound is the one popularly known as the "Pharaoh" song, because of a fancied resemblance to the naine if the first syllable is sufficiently prolonged and the second allowed to drop off abruptly at the end. It [ 2.10 ] THE PERIODICAI. CICADA is repeated at intervals of from two to rive seconds, and is given always as a solo by individuals sitting in the bushes or on lower branches of the trees. Males singing the Pharaoh song, therefore, are easily observed in the act of performing. With the beginning of each note, the singer lifts his abdomen to a rigid, horizontal position, thus opening the cavity beneath the lower drumheads and letting out the full volume of the sound. Toward the end of the note, the abdomen drops again to the usual somewhat sagging position, appearing thus to give the abrupt falling inflection at the close. The grand choruses, bv which the periodical cicada is chieflv known and remembered, are given by the fullv matured mmes of the swarm, always high in the trees where the singers may seldom be closely observed while performing. The individual notes are prolonged bur-r-r-r- like sounds, repeated ail day and day after day, but ail single voices are blended and lost in the continuous hum of the multitude. The fourth note of the larger form of the cicada is uttered bv males when they appear to be surprised or frightened'. On such occasions, as the insect darts away, he makes a loud, rough sound, and the same note is often uttered when a maie is picked up or otherwise handled. "l'he notes of the small form of the seventeen-year race of the cicada have an entirely different character from those of his larger relative. The regular song of the little toiles much more resembles that of the annual summer cicadas, thmgh it is hot so long and is less continuous in tone. It opens with a feu, short chirps; then follows a series of strong, shrill sounds like z'ing, za:'ig, zaaing, and so on, closing again with a number of chirps. The whole song lasts about fifteen seconds. Several of these males kept in cages for observation sang this song re-. peatedly and no other. It is common out of doors, but alwavs heard in solo, never in chorus. When handled [211 ] I NSECTS or otherwise disturbed, the small males utter a succession of sharp chirps very suggestive of the notes of some miniature wren angrily scolding at an intruder. Never does the small form of the cicada utter notes having the bz«rr tone of those of the larger species, and the vocal differences of the two varietms are strikingly evident when several males of both kinds are caged together. When disturbed, each produces his own sound, one the burr, the other the chirp; and there is never an)" sugges- tion of similarity or of gradation between them. F, GG |.AY1NG The cicadas la)" their eggs in the twigs of trees and shrubs and frequently in the stalks of deciduous plants. They show no particular choice of species except that conifers are usually avoided. The eggs are not stuck into the wood at random, but are carefully placed in skillfully constructed nests which the female excavates in the twigs with the blades of ber ovipositor (Plate ,q). These nests are perhaps always on the under surfaces of the twigs, unless the latter are vertical, and usually there are rows of from half a dozen to twentv or more of them together. Egg laying begins in the early part of June, and by the tenth of June it is at its height. The female cicadas can easily be watched at work, taking flight only from actual interference. They usually select twigs of last year's growth, but often use older ones or green ones of the saine season. |n the majority of cases the female works outward on the twig; but if this is a rule, it is a very loosely observed one, for many work in the opposite direction. Each nest is double; that is, it consists of two chambers having a common exit, but separated by a thin vertical partition off wood /Plate 8, i), ;. The eggs are placed on end in the chambers in two rows, with their head ends [9_!2] I'LATE 8 E C F D Egg punctures and the eggs of the periodical cicada A, B, C, twigs of dogwood, oak, and apple containing rows of clcada egg nests. I), cross-section of a twig through an egg nest, showing the two chambers, each containing a double row of eggs. E, vertical lengthwise section through two egg nests, showing the rows of slanting eggs and the fraved lip of the nest opening. F, horizontal section showing each chamber filled with a double row ofeggs. G, several eggs (much enlarged) THE PERIODICAI. CICADA downward and slanted toward the door. Generally there are six or seven eggs in each row (E), making twenty-four to twenty-eight eggs in the whole nest, but frequently there are more than this. The wood fibers at the en- trance are much ffaved by the action of the ovipositor and make a fan-shdped platform in front of the door (A, B, C). Here the young shed their hatching garments on emerging from the nest. The series of cuts in the bark eventuallv run together into a continuous slit, the edges of which shrink back so that the row of nests cornes to have the appearance of being ruade in a long groove. This mutilation kills manv twigs, especially those of oaks and hickories, the former soon showing the attacks of the insects bv the dying leaves. The landscape of oak- covered regions thus becomes spotted ail over with red- brown patches which often ahnost cover individual trees from top to bottom. Other trees are not so much in- jured directly, but the weakened twigs often break in the wind and then hang down and die. An ovipositing female Plate 7) finishes each egg nest in about twentv-five minutes; that is, she digs it out and fills it with eggs in this length of rime, for each chamber is tilled as it is excavated. A female about to oviposit alights on a twig, moves around to the under surface, and selects a place that suits her. Then, elevating the abdomen, she turns her ovipositor forward out of its sheath and directs its tip perpendicularly against the bark. As the point enters it goes backward, and when in at full length the shaft slants at an angle of about fortv-five degrees. In a number of cases females were frightened awav at different stages of their work, and an examination o(the unfinished nests showed that each chamber is filled with eggs as soon as it is excavated; that is, the insect com- pletes one chamber first and fills it with eggs, then digs out the other chamber which in turn receives its quota of eggs, and the whole job is done. The female now moves [213 ] INSECTS forward a few steps and begins work on another nest, which is completed in the saine fashion. Some series consist of only three or four nests, while others contain as many as twenty and a few even more, but perhaps eight to twelve are the usual numbers. When the female bas finished what she deems sufficient on one twig, she flies away and is said to make further layings elsewhere, till she has disposed of ber 4co to 6co eggs,, but the writer ruade no observations covering this point. Probably the cicada feels it saler hot to intrust all her eggs to one tree, on the principle of hot putting all your money in the saine bank. DEATH OF THE ADULTS The din of music in the trees continues with monot- onous regularity into the second week of June, by which time the mating season is over. Soon thereafter the per- formers lose their vitality; large numbers of them drop to the earth where many perish from an internaI fungus disèase that eats off the terminal rings of the body; others are mutilated and destroyed by birds, and the rest perhaps just die a naturaI death. Beneath the trees, where a great swarm has but recently given such abundant evidence of lire, the ground is now strewn with the dead or dying. A large percentage of the living are in various stages of disfigurement--wings are torn off, abdomens are broken open or gone entirely, mere fragments crawl about, stiI1 alive if the head and thorax are intact. In the ma]es often the great muscle coIumns of" the drums are exposed and visibly quivering, and many of" the insects, gaine to the end, even in their diIapidated condition stiII utter purring remnants of their song. From now on tiI1 the latter part of JuIy, the onIy evi- dence of the Iate swarm of noisy visitors wiI1 be the scarred twigs on the trees and bushes that have received the eggs and the red-brown patches of dying Ieaves that every- where disfigure the oaks and hickories. THE PERIODICAL CICADA TI-:E BROODS The two races of the periodical cicada, the seventeen- year and the thirteen-year, together occupy most of the eastern part of the United States, except the northern part of New England, the southeastern corner of Georgia, and the peninsula of Florida. The western limits extend into the eastern part of Nebraska, Kansas, Oklahoma, and Texas. In general, the seventeen-year race is north- ern, and the thirteen-year race is southern, but, though the geographic line between the two races is remarkably distinct, there is considerable overlapping. While the two cicada races are distinguished from each other by the length of their lire cycle, the members of each race do not ail appear in the adult stage in any one year. Both the seventeen-year race and the thirteen-year race are broken up into groups of individuals that emerge in different years, and these groups are known as "broods." Each brood bas its definite year of emergence, and in general a pretty well-defined territorv. The territories of the different broods, however, overlap, or the range of a small brood may be included in that of a larger one. Hence, in any particular locality, there is not always an interval of thirteen or seventeen years between the ap- pearance of the insects; and it may happen that members of a thirteen-year brood and of a seventeen-year brood will emerge in the saine year at the saine place. The emergence years of the principal cicada broods bave now been recorded for a long time, and the oldest record of a swarm is that of the appearance of the "locusts" in New England two hundred and ninety-five years ago. A full account of the broods of both races of the periodical cicada, their distribution, arAd the dates of their emergence, is given in Dr. C. L. Marlatt's Bulletin, already cited, and the following abstract is taken from this source: Wherever a well-defined cicada brood appears in a certain year, it is generally observed that a few individuals INSECTS corne out the year before or the year after. This fact has suggested the idea that the various broods established at the present rime had their origin from individuals of a primary brood that, as we might say, got their dates mixed, and came out a vear too soon or a year too late, the multiplying descendants of these individuals thus founding a new brood dated a year in advance or a year behind the emergence time of the parent stock. In this way, it is conceivable, the seventeen-year race might corne to appear on each of seventeen consecutive years, and the thirteen-year race on each of thirteen consecutive years. Individuals emerging on the eighteenth or fourteenth year, according to the race, would be reckoned as a part of the first brood of its race. The facts known concerning the emergence of the cicadas seem to confirm the above theory, for members of the seventeen-vear race appear somewhere every year within the lim'its of their range, and the emergence of members of the thirteen-year race bas been recorded for at least eleven out of the possible thirteen years. Ail the individuals of a brood are hot, of course, descendants of a single group of ancestors, nor do they necessarily occur together in a restricted area--they are simply individuals that coincide in the year of their emergence. However, at least thirteen of the broods of the seventeen-year race are well defined groups, for the most part with definitelycircum- scribed territories, though overlapping in many cases. The broods of the thirteen-vear race are not so well developed. The broods are conveniently designated by Roman numerals. According to the system of brood numbering proposed by Doctor Marlatt, and now generally adopted, the brood of the seventeen-year race that appeared last in 1927 is Brood I. This is hot a large brood, but it bas representatives in Pennsylvania, Maryland, District of Columbia, Virginia, West Virginia, North Carolina, Kentucky, Indiana, lllinois, and eastern Kansas. Brood II, 198, lives in the Middle Atlantic States, with a few I 261 THE PERIODICAI CICADA scattering colonies farther west. Brood III, 1929, is mostlv confined to lowa, Illinois, and ,iissouri. The largest of the broods is X, covering almost the entire range of the seventeen-year race. This brood ruade its last appearance m 1919, and is due next, therefore, in 1936. The series of broods as numbered thus follows the suc- cessive years to Brood XVI I, the last brood of the seven- teen-year race, which will return next in I943. The small and uncertain broods of the seventeen-year race are Vil, NII, XV, XVI, and XVII. The cicadas that emerge in the vears, corresponding with these num- bers represent incipient broods, being probably the descendants of a few individuals that sometime became separated from the larger broods of the vears preceding or following. One of the smallest of the seventeen-vear broods is XI, but since its colonies occur in Massahu- setts, Connecticut, and Rhode lsland, it is likely that it was more numerous in individuals in former times than at present. The brood with the oldest recorded history is XIV. This is a large brood extending over much of the range of the seventeen-vear race, with colonies in eastern Massachusetts on Cape Cod and near Plymouth, the emergence of which was observed bv the early settlers probably in I634. The broods of the thirteen-vear race are numbered flore XVIII to XXX, Brood VIII being that which appeared last in I9I 9. But there are only two important broods of this southern race, XIX, which emerged in I92O , and XXII, which emerged in 924 . In most of the other years the shorter-lived race is represented by only a few individuals that emerge here and there over its range; and none at all are known to appear during the years corresponding with the numbers XXV and XXVIII. Trie H..TCHIN¢ Or THE EGGS Five weeks bave elapsed since the departure of the cicada swarms. It is nearly six weeks since egg laying [ :17] INSECTS was at its height, and the eggs are now due to hatch almost anv rime. When studying the cicadas of Brood X near Washington in I9X9, the writer found the first evidence of hatching on the twenty-fourth of July. Perhaps the normal rime of hatching had been delayed somewhat by heavy tains that fell almost continuously during the ten days previous, for many eggs examined during this time were found tobe dead and turning brown, though the percentage of these was small. The twenty-fifth was hot and bright ail day. The trees were inspected in the afternoon. Their twigs had been bare the day belote. Now, at the entrance holes of the egg nests were little heaps of shriveled skins, thousands in ail, and each so light that the merest breath of air suflàced to blow it off; so, if according to this evidence thousands of nymphs had hatched and gone, the evidence of as many more must bave been carried away by the winds. An examination of many egg nests themselves showed that over half con- tained nothing but empty shells. Whole series were thus deserted, and usually ail or nearly ail, of the eggs in any one series of nests would be either hatched or unhatched. But often the eggs of one or more nests would be un- hatched or mostly so in a series containing otherwise only empty shells. Delay appeared to go by nests rather than bv individual eggs. As a very general fuie the eggs nearest the door of an egg chamber are the ones that hatch first, the others following in succession, though hot in absolute order. But unhatched eggs, if present, are always found at the bottom of the nest, with the tlsual exception of one or two farther forward. Only occasionally an empty shell occurs in the middle of an unhatched row. lfthe actual hatching of the eggs is observed in an opened nest, several nymphs are usually seen coming out at the saine time, and in nearly ail cases they are in neighboring eggs, though hot always contiguous ones. So this rule of hatching, like most rules, is general but hot binding. la*8] THE PER1ODICAI. CICADA The procedure of the female in placing the eggs leaves no doubt that the first-laid ones are those at the bottom of the cell, showing that the order of laying has no relation to the order of hatching, except that itis mostly the reverse. I t seems hardly reasonable to suppose that the eggs nearest the door are affected by greater heat or by a fresher sup- ply of air, so it is suggested that the order of hatching may be due simply to the successive release of pressure along the tightly packed rows, giving the compressed embryos a chance to squirm and kick enough to split the inclosing shells. \¥hen hatching once commences it pro- ceeds very rapidly through the whole nest, showing that the eggs are ail at the bursting point when the rupture of the first takes place. In each lateral compartment of an egg nest the eggs (Plate 8, E, F) stand in two rows with their lower or head ends slanted toward the door. (It must be re- membered that the punctures are ruade on the lower sides of the twigs, so that the eggs are inverted in their natural position in the nests.) On hatching, each egg splits ver- tically over the head and about one-third of the length along the back, but for only a short distance on the ventral side. As soon as this rupture occurs, the head of the young cicada bulges out; and then, by a bending of the body back and forth, the creature slowly works its way out of the shell, which, when empty, remains behind in its original place. The nymphs nearest the door have an easy exit, but those from the depths of the cell find themselves still in a confined space between the project- ing ends of the empty shells ahead of them and the chamber wall, a passage almost as narrow as the egg itself, through which the delicate creatures must squirm to freedom. A newlv-hatched or a newly-born aphid, as we have seen in Capter VI, is done up in a tight-fitting garment with neither sleeves nor legs, but nature has been more considerate in the case of the young cicada, lt, too, cornes out of the egg clothed in a skin-tight jacket, but [I91 1NSECTS g. Free nymph Fro. I @ The egg, the newly-hatched nymph shedding the embryonic skin, and the free nymph of the periodical cicada 2.20] THE PERIODICAI. CICADA this garment is hOt a mere bag: it is provided with special pouches for the appendages or a part of them (Fig.  25, 2). The incased antennae and the labrum project backward as three small points lying against the breast. The front legs are free to the bases of the feinora, though so tightly held in their narrow sleeves that their joints have no independent motion. The middle and hind legs are also incased in long, slim sheaths, but thev alwavs adhere close to the sides of the bodv. Thus the cicada nymph newlv-hatched much resembl'es a tiny fish provided onlv with two sets of ventral fins, but when it gets into actioh its motions are comparable with the clumsv flopping of a seal stranded on the beach and trying to get back into the water (31. The infant cicada knows it is hot destined to spend its life in the narrow cavern of its birth, or at least it has no desire to do so. With its head pointed toward the exit, it begins at once contortionistic bendings of the body, which slowlv drive it forward. Bv throwing the head and thorax lack, the antennal tips and the front legs are ruade to project so that their points may take hold on any irregularity in the path. Then a contractile wave running forward through the abdomen brings up the rear parts of the bodv as the front parts are again bent back, and the "flippers" grasp a new point of support. As these motions are repeated over and over again, the tiny, awkward thing painfully but surely moves forward, per- haps helped in its progress bv the inclined tips of the flexible eggshells pressing against it, on the saine prin- ciple that a head of barley automatically crawls up the inside of your sleeve. Once out of the door no time is lost in discarding the encumbering garment, but it is never shed in the nest under normal conditions. If, however, the nest is cut open and the hatching nymph finds itself in a free, open space, the embrvonic sheath is cast off immediatelv, often while the posterior end of the insect's bodv is still in the [OE21 ] INSECTS egg, so that the skin may be left sticking in the open end of the shell. If the young cicada did hot have to gain its liberty through that narrow corridor, it might be born in a smooth bag as are its relations, the aphids. Watching at the door of an undisturbed nest during a hatching day, we soon may see a tiny pointed head corne poking out of the narrow hole. The threshold is soon crossed, but no more; this traveling in a bag is nota pleasure trip. A few contortions are always necessary to rupture the skin, and sometimes several minutes are consumed in violent twistings and bendings before it splits. When it does break, a vertical rent is formed over the top of the head, which latter bulges out until the cleft becomes a circle that enlarges as the entire head pushes through, followed rapidly by the bodv (Fig. 125, 47. The appendages corne out of their sheaths iike tingers out of a glove, turning the pouches outside in. The antennae are free first; they pop out and hang stiy downward. Then the front legs are released and hang stiff and rigid but quivering with a violent trembling. In a second or so this has passed, the joints double up and assume the characteristic attitude, while thev violently claw the air. Then the other legs and the abdmen corne out and the embryo is a free young cicada (7). Ail this usuallv happens in less than a minute, and the new creature i's alreadv off without so much as a backward glance at the clthes it has just removed or at the home of its in- cubation period. Sentiment has no place in the insect mind. As the nymphs emerge from the nest, one after an- other, and shed their skins, the glistening white mem- branes accumulate in a loose pile belote the entrance, where they remain until wafted off on the breeze. Each discarded sheath has a goblet form (Vig. '25, 5, 6), the upper stiff part remaining open like a bowl, the Iower part shriveling to a twisted stalk. The antennal and labral pouches project from the skin as distinct append- [ 2221 THE PERIODICAL CICADA ages, but those of the legs are usually inverted during the shedding and disappear from the outside of the slough, though the holes where they were pulled in can be round belote the membrane becomes too dry. The nymph (Figs. 125, 7; I26) usually runs about at first in the groove of the twig containing its egg nest and then goes out on the smooth bark. Here any current of air is likely to carry it off immediately, but many wander about for some time, usually going toward the tips of the twigs, some even getting clear out on the leaves. But only a few nymphs are ever to be round on twigs where piles of embryonic skins show that hundreds have recently hatched; so it is evident that the great majority either rail off or are blown away very shortly after emerg- ing. Many undoubtedly fall before the shedding of the egg membrane, for the inclosed creature has no possible way of holding on, and even the free nymph has but feeble clinging powers. Those observed on twigs kept indoors often fell helplessly from the smooth bark while appar- ently making rem efforts to retain their grasp. Their weak claws could get no grip on the hard surface. In- stead, then, of deliberately launching themselves into space in response to some mysterious call from below, the young cicadas simply fall from their birthplace by mere inability to hold on. But the saine end is gained-- they reach the ground, which is all that matters. Nature is ever careless of the means, so long as the object is at- tained. Some acts of unreasoning creatures are assured by bestowing an instinct, others are forced by with- holding the means of acting otherwise. The cicada nymphs are at first attracted by the light. Those allowed to hatch on a table in a room will leave the twigs and head straight for the windows ten feet away. This instinct under natural conditions serres to entice the young insects toward the outer parts of the tree, where they have the best chance of a clear drop to earth; but even so, adverse breezes, irregularity of the [2231 INSECTS trees, underbrush, and weeds can hOt but make their downward journey one of manv a bump and slide from leaf to leaf before the earth receives them. The creatures are too small tobe followed with the eye as they drop, and so their actual course and their be- havior when the ground is reached are hOt recorded. But several hatched indoors were placed on loose earth packed Fro. t .6. The young cicada nymph ready to enter the ground (greatly enlarged) fiat in a small dish. These at once proceeded to get be- low the surface. "l'h«v did hot dig in, but simply entered the first crevice that they met in running about. If the first happened to terminate abruptly, the nymph came out again and tried another. In a few minutes all had round satisfactorv retreats and remained below. The eagerness with wlich the insects dived into anv opening that presents itself indicates that the call to enter the earth is instinctive and imperative ouce their feet have touched the ground. Note, then, how within a few minutes their instincts shift to opposites: on hatching, their first eff,rt is to extricate themselves front the narrow confines of the egg nest, and it seems unlikely that enough light can penetrate the depths of this chamber to guide them to the exit; but once out and divested of their en- cumbering embrvonic clothes, the insects are irresistiblv drawu in the diréction of the strongest light, even though this takes them upward--.ust the opposite of their [ 2-241 THE PERIODICAI. CICADA destined course. When this instinct has served its purpose and has taken the creatures to the port of freest passage to the earth, all their love of light is lost or swallowed up in the call to enter some dark creiice narrower eien than the one so recently left by such physical exertion. When the young cicadas have entered the earth we practically have to say good-bye to them until their return. Yet this recurring event is ever full of interest to us, for, much as the cicadas bave been studied, it seems that there is still plenty tobe learned from them each time they make their visit to our part of the world. [ 2OE5 ] CHAPTER VIII INSECT METAMORPHOSIS "I'E fascination of mythology and the charm of fairy raies lie in the power of the characters to change their form or tobe changed bv others. Zeus would court the lovely Semele, but knowi]g well she could hot endure the radiance of a god, he takes the form of a mortal. Omit the metamorphosis, and what becomes of the myth? And who would remember the story of Cinderella if the fairy godmother were left out? The flirtation between the heroine and the prince, the triumph of beauty, the chagrin of the haughty sisters--these are bu{ ingredients in the pot of common fiction. But the transformation of rats into prancing horses, of lizards into coachman and lackeys, of rags into fine raiment--this imparts the thrill that endures a lifetime! It is hot surprising, then, that the insects, by reason of the never-ending marvel of their transformations, hold first place in every course of nature study in our modern schools, or that nature writers of all times have round a principal source of inspiration in the "wonders of insect lire." Nor, finally, should it be ruade a marrer of scorn if the insects have attached themselves to our emotions, knowing how ardently the natural human mind craves a sign of the supernatural. The butterfly, spirit of the lowly caterpillar, has thus been exalted as a symbol of human resurrection, and its image, carved on graveyard gates, still offers hope to those unfortunates interred behind the walls. Metamorphosis is a magic word, in spite of its formidable [26] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS appearance; but rendered into English it means simply "change of form." Not every change of form, however, is a metamorphosis. The change of a kitten into a cat, of a child into a grown-up, of a small fish into a large fish are not examples of metamorphosis, at least not of what is called metamorphosis. There must be something spec- tacular or unexpected about the change, as in the trans- formation of the tadpole into a frog, the change of the wormlike caterpillar into a moth, or of a maggot into a FG. IOE 7. Moths of the fall webworm fly. This arbitrarv limiting of the use of a word that might, from its derivation, have a much more general meaning, is a common practice in science, and for this reason every scientific terre must be defined. Meta- morphosis, then, as it is used in biology, signifies hot merely a change of form, but a particular kind or degree of change; the kind of change, we might say, that would appear to lie outside the direct line of development from the egg to the adult. At once it becomes evident that, by reason of the very definition we have adopted, our suect is going to be- corne complicated; for how are we to decide if an observed change during the growth of an animal is in line or out of line with direct development? There, indeed, lies a seri- ous difficulty, and we can only leave it to the biologist to decide in any particularly doubtful case. But there are plenty of cases concerning which there is no doubt. A [ OEOE7 1 INSECTS caterpillar, for example, certainly is nota form headed toward a butterflv in its growth, and yet we know itis a young butterflv, because it hatches out of the butterfly's egg. And, as the caterpillar grows from a small cater- pillar to a lar caterpillar, it becomes no more like a butterfly than it was at first. Itis only after it has reached maturity as a caterpillar that it undergoes a process of transformation by which it attains at last the form of the insect that produced it. The question now arises as to whether the butterfly is a form superadded to the caterpillar, or the caterpillar a form that has deviated from the developmental line of its ancestors. This question is easily answered: the but- terfly represents the true adult form of its species, for it has the essential structure of ail other insects, and it alone matures the sexual organs and acquires the power of re- production. The caterpillar is an aberrant form that somehow has been interpolated between the egg and the adult of its kind. The real metamorphosis in the lire of the butterfly, therefore, is not the change of the cater- pillar into the adult, but the change of the butterfly embrvo in the egg into a caterpillar. Yet the terre is usualiy applied to the reverse process by which the caterpillar is turned back into the normal form of its specles. The caterpillar and the butterfly (Fig. 28) furnish the classical example of insect metamorphosis. Many other insects, however, undergo the saine kind of transforma- tion. All the moths as we/l as the butterflies are cater- pillars when they are young: the famous giant moths (Plate IO), including the Cecropia, the Promethea, and the beautiful Luna (Fig. IZ9) , as every nature student knows, corne from huge fat caterpillars; the humble cutworms (Fig. I3O) , when their work of destruction is comp/eted, change into those familiar brown or gray furry moths of moderate size (A) often round hidden away in the dav- time and attracted to lights at night. In the spring, tle PLATE 9 Two species of large moths, natural size, showing the beautifi, l markings and colors with which even n;ght-flying insects may be adorned. Upper figure, Heliconisa arpi Schaus, from Brazil; lower, Dirphia carminata Schaus, from Mexico. (From J. M. Aldrich) INSECT METAMORPHOSIS FIG. IOES. The cellery caterpillar, and the butterfly into which it transforms [ 9 ] INSECTS May beetles, or "June bugs" appear (Fig. 3  A) ; they are the parents of the common white grubs (B) which every gardener will recognize. The common ladybird beetles (Fig. 3 a A) are the adults of the ugly larvae (D) that feed so voraciously on aphids. In the comb of the beehive or Fro. OE9- The Luna moth of the wasps' nest, there are many cells that contain small, legless, wormlike creatures; these are the young bees or wasps, but you would never know it from their structure, for they bave scarcely anything in common with their parents (Fig. 33 A, B). The young mosquito (Fig. I74 I)) we ail know, from seeing it often pictured and de- scribed and from observing that mosquitoes abound hercvev thcme wigglers are allowed to lire. The young [ 3 o I PLATE 10 Two species of giant moths Upper figure, the Cecropia moth, female; lower, the Pclyphemus moth, maie. (From A. H. Clark) INSECT METAMORPHOSIS fly is a maggot (Fig. 182 D). The maggots of the house fly inhabit manure piles; those of the blow flv lire in dead animals where they feed on the decaying flesh. We might go on and fill a whole chapter, or a whole book for that matter, with descriptions of the forms that insects go through in their metamorphoses, but since other writers bave demonstrated that this can be done and without ex- FIIG. 1130. The life of a cutworm A, the parent moth. B, eggs laid by the moth on a blade of grass. C, a cut- worm at its characteristic night work, eating off a young garden plant at the root. D, other cutworms climbing the stalk of plants to feed on the leaves. E, the cutworm hidden within the earth during the day hausting the subject, we shall rather turn our attention here to what may be regarded as the deeper and more ab- struse phases of insect metamorphosis. Where the facts themselves are highly interesting, the explanation of them must be still more so. Eplanations, however, are always more difficult to present than the facts that are to be ex- [23] INSECTS plained, and if a writer offen does not succeed so well with the reader in this undertaking, the reader should remember that his own difficulties of reading are perhaps no greater than the difficulties of the writer in writing. With a little extra effort on both sides, then, we may be able to arrive at a mutual understanding. In the first place, let us see in what particular manner the young and the adults of insects differ flore each other. The adult, of course, is the fully matured tbrm, and it alone has the organs of reproduction functionally devel- oped; but this is true of ail animais. The caterpillar and the moth, the grub and the beetle, the maggot and the fly, however, differ widely in many other respects, and are so diverse in appearance and in general structure that their identities can be known only by observing their transfor- mations. On the other hand, the young grasshopper (Fig. 8), the young roach (Fig. 51), or the young aphis (Fig. 97) is so much like its parents that its family rela- tionships are apparent on sight. Still, in the case of all winged insects, there is one persistent difference between the young and the adult, and this is with respect to the development of the wings. The wings are always imper- fect or lacking in the young. The inability to fly puts a limitation on the activities of the immature insect and compels.it to seek its living by more ordinary modes of progression. It may inhabit the land or the water; it may lire on the surface; it may burrow into the earth or into the stems or wood of plants--in short, it may lire in a thousand different places, wherever legs or squirming movements will take it, but it can hOt invade the air, except as it may be carried by the wind. As a first principle in the study of metamorphosis, then, we must recognize the fact that only the adult insect is capable oj; flight. Let us now turn back to the grasshopper (Chapter I); it furnishes a good example of an insect in which the adults differ but little from the young, except in the matter of [ OE3OE] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS the wings and the organs of reproduction. As might be expected, therefore, the young grasshoppers and the adults live in the saine places and eat the saine kinds of food in the saine way. This likewise is true of the roaches, the katydids, the crickets, the aphids, and other related ]3 Fç. 131.  May beetle and its grub A, the adult beetle which feeds on the leaves of shrubs and trees. B, the larva, a white grub, which lires in the ground and feeds on roots insects. The adults here take no advantage over the yo.ung in matters of everyday lire by reason of their WI ngs. In many other insects, however, the adults bave adopted new ways of living and particularly of feeding, ruade possible and advantageous to them because of their power of flight. Then, in adaptation to their new habits, they have acquired a special form of the body, of the mouth parts, or of the alimentary canal. But ail such modifications, if thrust upon the young, would only be an impediment to them, because the young are hot capable of flight. Take the dragonflies as an example. The adult dragonfly (Fig. 58) feeds on small insects which it catches in the air, and it can do so because it has a powerful flying mechanism. The young dragonfly (Figs. 59, 34), how- ever, could hot follow the feeding habits of its parents; if it had to inherit the parental form of body and mouth parts [ OE33 ] INSECTS it would be greatly handicapped for living its own lire, and this would be quite as detrimental to the adult, which must be developed from the young. Therefore, nature bas devised a scheme for separating the young from the adult, by which the latter is allowed to take full advan- tage of its wings without imposing a hardship or a dis- ability on its flightless offspring. The device sets aside the ordinary workings of heredity and makes it possible for a structural modification to be developed in the adult and to be suppressed in the young until the time of change from the last immature stage to that of the adult. Thus we may state as a second principle of metamor- phosis that an addt insect ma develop str«tural characters adaptive to habits that depend'on the power of flight, which are suppressed in the young, where thev would be detrimental br. reason of the lack of wings. When parents, now, assert their independence, what can we expect of the offspring? Certainly only a similar declaration of rights. A young insect, once freed from any obligation to follow in the anatomical footsteps of its progenitors, so long as it finally reverts to the form of the latter, soon adopts habits of its own; and then acquires a form, physical characters, and instincts adapted to such habits. Thus, the young dragonfly (Fig. 34) bas de- parted from the path of its ancestors; it bas adopted a lire in the water, where it feeds upon living creatures which it pursues by its perfection in the art of swimming and cap- tures bv a special grasping organ developed from the under li (B). Lire in the water, too, entails an adaptation for aquatic respiration. AIl the special acquisitions in the structure of the young insect, however, must be dis- carded at the rime of its change to the adult. A third principle, then, which follows somewhat as a corollarv from the second, shows us that the young of insects mav adopt habits advantageous to themselves, and take on adoptive structt«res that bave no regard to the form of the adult «md that are discarded at tke fiml transformation. [ 234] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS The degree of departure of the young from the parental form varies much in different insects. In the cicada, for example, the nymph is hot essentially different in structure from the adult except in the matter of the wings, the organs of reproduction and egg laying, and the musical Fx6. I3OE. The lire history of a ladybeetle, Adalia biunctata A, the adult beetle. B, group of eggs on under surface of a leaf. C, a young larval beetle covered with white wax. D, the full-grown larva. E, the pupa attached to a leaf by the discarded larval skin instrument. But the habitats of the two forms are widely separated, and it is unquestionable that, in the case of the cicada, it is the nymph that has ruade the innovation in adopting an underground lire, for with most of the rela- tives of the cicada the young live practically the saine lire as the adults. Animals live for business, hot for pleasure; and all their instincts and their useful structures are developed for practical purposes. Therefore, where the young and the adult of any species differ in form or structure, we may be sure that each is modified for some particular purpose of its own. The two principal functions of any animal are the obtaining of food for its own sustenance, and the INSECTS production of offspring. The adult insect is necessarily the reproductive stage, but in most cases it must support itself as well; the immature insect bas no other direct object in lire than that of feeding and of preparing itself for its transformation into the adult. The feeding func- tion, however, as we have seen in Chapter IV, involves FIG. I33. Wasps, or yellow jackets A, an adult maie of Vespula maculata. B, C, D, larva, pupa, and adult worker of l/espula maculiJrons. The worker is a non- reproductive female and uses ber oviposi- tor as a sting most of the activities and structures of the animal, in- cluding its adaptation to its environment, its modes of locomotion, its devices for avoiding enemies, its means of obtaining food. Hence, in studying any young insect, we must understand that we are dealing almost exclusively with characters that are adaptive to the feeding function. When we observe the life of any caterpillar we soon realize that its principal business is that of eating. The caterpillar is one creature, at least, that may openly pro- claire it lires to eat. Whatever else it does, except acts [ 236 ] INSECT MEAMORPHOSIS connected with its transformation, is subservient to the function of procuring food. Most species feed on plants and live in the open (Fig. I35 A); but some tunnel into the leaves (B), into the fruit (D), or into the stem or wood (Ç). Other species feed on seeds, stored grain, and cereal preparations. The caterpillars of the clothes moths, however, feed on animal wool, and a few other caterpillars are carnivorous. The whole structure of the caterpillar (Fig. 36) be- tokens its gluttonous habits, lts short legs (L, tbL) keep it in close contact with the food material; its long, thick, wormlike body accommodates an ample food storage and gives space for a large stomach for digestive purposes; its hard-walled head supports a pair of strong jaws (Md), and since the caterpillar has small use for eves or antennae, these organs are but little developed. Te muscle system of the caterpillar presents a wonderful exhibition of com- plexity in anatomical structure, and gives the soft body of the insect the power of turning and twisting in every con- ceivable manner. In contrast to the caterpillar, the moth or the butterflv feeds but little, and its food consists of liquids, mostly the nectar of flowers, which is rich in sugars and high in energy-giving properties but contains little or-none of the tissue-building proteins. When we examine the young of other insects that differ markedly from the parent form, we discover the saine thing about them, namely, the general adaptation of their body form and of their habits to the function of eat- ing. Not ail, however, differ as widely from the parent as does the caterpillar from the moth. The young of some beetles, for example (Fig. 37), more closely re- semble the adults except for the lack of wings. Most of the adult beetles, too, are voracious feeders, and are per- haps hot outdone in food consumption by the young. But here another advantage of the double life is demon- strated, for usually the grub and the adult beetle have different modes of lire and live in quite different kinds of [ "-37 ] INSECTS places. Each individual of the species, therefore, occupies at different rimes two distinct environments during its life and derives advantages from each. It is true that with some beetles, the young and the adults lire together. FIG. 134. The nymph of a dragonfly A, the entire insect, showing the long underlip, or labium (Lb), closed against the under surface of the head. B, the head and first segment of the thorax of the nymph, with the labium ready for action, showing the strong grasping hooks with which the msect captures living prey Such cases, however, are only examples of the general rule that ail things in nature show gradations; but this condi- tion, instead of upsetting out generalizations, furnishes the key to evolution, bv which so many riddles may be solved. The grub of the bee or the wasp (Fig. 33 B) gives an excellent example of the extreme specialization in form that the young of an i*asect may take on. The creature spends its whole lire in a cell of the comb or the nest where [ 2381 INSECT METAMORPHOSIS it is provided with food by the parents. Sorne of the wasps store paralyzed insects in the cells of the nest for the young to feed on; the bees give their young a diet of honey and pollen, with an adrnixture of a secretion from a pair of glands in their own bodies. The grubs bave noth- ing to do but to eat; they bave no legs, eyes, or antennae; each is a rnere body with a rnouth and a stornach. The adult bees consume rnuch honey, which, like its con- stituent, nectar, is an energy-forrning food; but they also eat a considerable quantity of protein-containing pollen. Yet it is a great advantage to the bees in their social lire to have their young in the forrn of helpless grubs that rnust stay in their cells until full-grown, when, by a quick transformation, they can take on the adult forrn and be- corne at once responsible rnernbers of the comrnunity. Any parents distracted bv the incorrigibilities of their offspring In the adolescent stage can appreciate this. The young mosquito (Fig. 74 D, E) lires in the water, where it obtains its food, which consists of minute par- ticles of organic rnatter. Some species feed at the surface, others under the surface or at the bottom of the water. The young rnosquito is legless and its only means of pro- gression through the water is by a wiggling rnovement of the sort cvlindrical body. It spends much of its tirne, however, jut beneath the surface, from which it hangs suspended bv a tube that projects frorn near the rear end of the body. The tip of the tube just barely ernerges above the water surface, where a circlet of small flaps spread out fiat from its margin serres to keep the creature afloat. But the tube is prirnarily a respiratory device, for the two principal trunks of the tracheal systern open at its end and thus allow the insect to breathe while its body is submerged. The adult mosquito (Fig. 174 A), as everybody knows, is a winged insect, the females of which feed on the blood of animais and must go after their victims by use o.f their wings. It is clear, therefore, that it would be quite irn- [ "-39 ] INSECTS possible for a young mosquito, deprived of the power of flight, no live the lire of its parents and no feed after the manner of its mother. Hence, the young mosquito bas adopted its own way of living and of feeding, and this bas allowed the adult mosquitoes no perfect their specialties without inflicting a hereditary handicap on their offspring. Thus agam we see the great advantage which the species as a whole derives from the double lire of its individuals. The flv will only give another example of the saine thing. "J'he specialized form of the young fly, the maggot (Fig. 7), which is adapted to the requirements of quite a different kind of lire from that of the adult fly, relieves the latter from ail responsibility to its offspring. As a consequence, the adult fly bas been able to adapt its structure, during the course of evolution, to a way of living best suited to its own purposes, unhampered as it would be if its characters were to be inherited by the young, to whom thev would become a great impediment, and probably a fatal" handicap. A fourth principle of metamorphosis, then, we may say, is that the species as a whole bas acquired an advmltage by a double mode of existence, which allows it to take actvantage of two environmcnts dtering its lifetime, ole suited to the ftenctions of the young, the other to the fuictions of the adult. We noted, in passing, that the young insect is free to lire its own lire and to develop structures suited to its own purposes under one proviso, which is that it must even- tually revert to the form of the adult of its species. At the period of transformation, the particular characters of the young must be discarded, and those of the adult must be developed. Insects such as the grasshoppers, the katydids, the roaches, the dragonflies, the aphids, and the cicadas ap- pear in the adult form when the young sheds its skin for the last rime. The change that bas produced the adult, [ 24.0 ] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS however, began at an earlier period, and the apparently new creature was partially or almost entirely formed within the old skin before the latter was finally shed. FIG. 135. Various habitats of plant-feeding caterpillars A, a caterpillar feeding in the open on a leaf. B, leaf miners in an apple leaf, rhe trumpet miner at a, the serpentine miner at b. C, the corn borer feeding within a corn stalk. D, the apple worm, or larva of the codling moth, feeding at the cote of an apple After the molt, onlv a few last alterations in structure and some final adiustments are ruade while the wings and legs of the creature that had been confined in the closelv fitting skin expand to their full length. The structural "changes accomplished after the molt, however, varv with different [24I] INSETS species of insects, and with some they involve a consider- able degree of actual growth and change in the form of certain parts. The true transformation process, then, is really a period of rapid reconstructive growth preceding and following the molt, in which the shedding of the skin is a mere incident like the raising of the curtain for a new act in a play. During the intermission the actors bave changed their costumes, the old scenery has been re- moved, and the new has been set in place. Thus it is Th 1 LZ La _Ab AbL Sp A.bL F,G. 136. External structure of a caterpillar abdomen; .4bL, abdominal legs; H, head; L,, L, La, the thoracic legs; Md, .jaws; Sp, breathing apertures; Th, thoracic segments with the insect at the time of its transformation--the special accouterments of the young have been removed, and those of the adult have been put on. The lire of the insect, however, would hot make a good theatrical production; itis too much of the nature of two plays given by the saine set of actors. The young insect is dressed for a performance of its own in a stage setting appropriate toits act; the adult gives another play and is costumed accordingly. The actor is the same in each case only in the continuitv of his individuality. His rehabi[itation between the two acts wi[l differ in degree according to the disparity between the parts he plays, that is, according to how far each impersonation is re- moved from his natural self. It is evident, therefore, that the trans.formation changes of an insect a'ill dif[er in degree, or quantity, according to [ 4 ] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS the sure oJ the departure oJ the young and the departure of the adult Jrom what would bave been the normal line of devel- opment if neither had become structurallv adapted to a special kind oJ lire. We may express this idea graphically by a diagram (Fig. 138) , in which the line nm represents what might have been the straight course of evolution if neither the adult (I) nor the young (L) had departed along special lines of their own. But, when the adult and the young have diverged from some point (a) in their past history, the line LI, which is the sure of nm to L and of nm to I, represents the change which the young is bound to make in reverting to the adult form. The young must, there- fore, prepare itself for this event in proportion as the distance LI is short or long. Where the structural disparity between the young and the adult is hot great, or is mostly in the external form of the body, the young insect changes directly into the adult, as we have seen in the case of the grasshopper (Fig. 9) and the cicada (Fig. 18). But with manv in- sects, either because of the degree of difference that has arisen between the young and the adult, or for some other reason, the processes of transformation are hot ac- complished so quickly and require a longer period for their completion. In such cases, the creature that issues at the last shedding of the skin bv the young insect is in a verv unfinished state, and must yet undergo a great amount of reconstruction before it will attain the form and structure of the fully adult insect. This happens in ail the groups of the more highly evolved insects, including the beetles; the moths and butterflies; the mosquitoes and files; the wasps, bees, ants; and others. The newly transformed insect must remain in a helpless condition without the use of its legs and wings for a period of rime varying in length with different species, until the adult organs, particularly the muscles, are completely formed. In the meantime, however, the sort cuticular layer of [ Œ43 ] INSECTS the skin of the newly emerged insect has hardened, thus preventing a further growth or change in the cellular layer of the body wall beneath it. Reorganization can proceed within the body, but the outer form is fixed and C FIG. 137. Adult and larval form of beetles (Order Coleoptera) A, a ground beetle, Pterosticus. B, the saine beetlë with the right wings spread. C the larva of Pterosticus. D, an adult beetle, Silpha surinamensis, with the left wings elevated. E, the larva of the saine species, showing the similarity in structure to the adult ID) except for the lack of wings and the shormess of the legs [ '244 INSECT METAMORPHOSIS must remain at the stage it had reached when the cuticula hardened. Only bi a subsequent separation of this cuticula, allowing another period of growth in the cells of the body wall, can the form and the external organs of the adult be perfected. With another molt, therefore, the fullv formed insect is at last set free, and it now re- quires only a short time for the expansion of the legs and wings to their normal size and shape and for the hardening of the final cuticular layer which will preserve the contours of the adult. It thus cornes about that the members qf a large group of insects haie acquired an extra stage in their lire cycle, namely, a final reconstructive stage beginning some time be_[ore the last molt qf the young and completed v«ith a final added molt a'hich liberates tte fully .formed adult. The insect in this stage is called a pupa. The entire pupal stage is divided bi the last molting of the young into a propupal period, still occupying the loosened cuticula of the insect in its last adolescent stage, and a true pupal period, which is that between the shedding of this last skin of the young and the final molt which discloses the matured insect. Ail insects that undergo a metamorphosis may be divided, therefore, into two classes according as the trans- formation from the young into the adult is direct or is COlnpleted in an intervening pupal stage, lnsects of the first class are said to have ineomplete metamorphosis; those of the second class, eomplete metamorphosis. The ex- pressions are convenient, but misleading if taken literally, for, as we shall see, there are many degrees of "complete" metamorphosis. The young of any insect that has a pupal stage in its lire cycle is called a larva, and the young of an insect that does not haie a pupal stage is termed a n.vmph, ac- cording to the modern custom of American entomologists. But the terre "larva" was formerly applied to the im- mature stage of ail insects, a usage which should haie l 45 1 INSECTS been preserved; and many European entomologists use the word "nymph" for the stage we call a pupa. A larva is distinguished from a nymph by the lack of wing rudiments visible externally, and by the absence of the compound eyes. Many larvae are blind, but some of them have a group of simple eyes on each side of the head substituting for the compound eyes. Nymphs in general have the compound eyes of the adult insect, and, as seen an the young grasshopper L Fro. x38. Diagram of metamorphosis If during tbe course of tbeir evolution, tbe adult (I) and the larva (L)bave independently diverged from a straigbt line of development (nm), the larva must finally attain the adult stage by a transforma- tion (metamorphosis), tbe degree of wbich is represented by tbe length of the line L to I (Fig. 9), the young dragonfly (Fig. 59), and the young cicada (Fig.  I4) , the nymphal wings are small pads that grow from the thoracic segments after the first or second molt. The larva, however, is not actually wingless any more than is the nymph; its wings are simply developed internally instead of externally. When the groups of cells that are destined to form the wings begin to multiply, the wing rudiments push inward instead of outward, and become small sacs in- vaginated into the cavity of the body, in which position they remain through ail the active lire of the larva. Then, at the time of the transformation, the wing sacs are everted, and appear on the outside of the pupa when the last larval skin is cast off. It is difficult to discover any neces- sary correlation between the exter- nally wingless condition of the larva and the existence of a pupal stage in the lire of the insect; but the two for some reason go together. Perhaps it is only a coincidence. To have use- less organs removed from the surface INSECT METAMORPHOSIS is undoubtedly an advantage to a larva, especially to such species as lire in narrow spaces, or that burrow into the ground or into the stems and twigs of plants; but it probably just happened that the pupal stage was first developed in an insect that had ingrowing wings. The typical larvae are the caterpillars, the grubs, and the maggots, young insects with little or no resemblance to their parents. The larvae of some ofthe beetles (Fig. 137) and of some members of the order Neuroptera, however, are much like the adults of their species, except for the lack of external wings and the compound eyes; and even among the typical larvae some species have more of the adult characters than others. The caterpillar (Fig. I36) or the grub of the May-beetle (Fig. B), for example, both being pro- vided with legs, have a much greater resemblance to an adult insect than has the wormlike leg- less grub of the wasp (Fig. 133 B) or the maggot of the fly (Fig. F,c. 139. Springtails, ruera- I 8 2 D). Hence, we see, the de- bers of the Order Con,bo, gree of transformation may vary scendedinsects perhapSfrom thedirectlYunknownde- much even among insects that wingless ancestors of winged have a so-called "complete" inse«ts metamorphosis. There are a few insects that bave no metamorphosis at ail. These are wingless insects belonging to the groups known as Collembola and Thvsanura (Figs. 57, 39, 140) and are probably direct descendants from the primitive wingless ancestors of the winged insects. These insects during their growth shed the skin at intervals, but they do hot undergo a change of form; they illustrate the [ 247 ] INSECTS normal procedure of growth by direct development from the embryo to the adult. It must appear that the nymph, or young of an insect with incomplete metamorphosis, is merely an aberrant development of the normal form of the young as it occurs in an insect without metamorphosis. This is evident from the fact that the nymph has external wings, fully developed compound eyes, and in general the saine details of structure in the legs and other parts of the body as has the adult. Most larvae, on the other hand, have FJ¢. 4. A bristle- tail, Thermobia, a mem- ber of the order Thy- sanura, another primi- tive group of wingless insects. (Twice natu- rai size) few or none of the structural details of the adult that might be expected to occur in a normal postembryonic ado- lescent form; but they do bave manv characters that appear to belong to a primitive stage of evolution and that we might expect to find in an em- bryonic stage of development. The caterpillar, for example, has legs on the abdomen (Fig. 36, .tbL), an embryonic feature possessed by none of the higher insects in the adult stage; it has only one claw on its thoracic legs, a character of crusta- ceans and myriapods, but hOt of adult winged insects or of nymphs. Like- wise, there are certain features of the internal structure of the caterpi[lar that are more primitive than in any adult insect or nymph; and the saine evidence of primitive or embryonic characters might be cited of other larvae. On the other hand, the structura[ details of some larvae are very much like those of the adults, and such larvae differ from the adults of their species principally in the lack of the compound eyes and of external wings. Now, if ail the insects with complete metamorphosis [ 48 ] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS have been derived from a common ancestor, as seems almost certain, then the original larvae must have been ail alike, and thev. must bave had approximately the structure of those larvae of the present thne that depart least from the structure of the adult. Therefore itis evident that many larvae of the present rime bave some- how acquired certain embrvonic characters. We may suppose, therefore, either that such larvae have had a retrogressive evolution into the embryonic stage by hatching at successively earlier ages, or that certain embryonic characters representing ancestral characters but ordinarily quickly passed over in the embryonic development, have been retained and carried on into the larval stage. The latter view seems the more probable when we consider that no larva has a purely embryonic structure, and that those larvae which have embryonic features in their anatomy present an incongruous mixture of embryonic and adult characters. We may, therefore, finally conclude that the larva of insects with complete metamorphosis represents the OEvmphal stage q[ insects with incomplete metamorphosis; and that the structure of the lar.a bas resulted from a suppression of the peculiarly adult characters, from an invagination of the wings, a loss of the compound e.ves, the retention of certain embrvonic characters, and a special development of the bodv form"and the organs suited to the particular mode oj r life of the larva. By allowing for variations in ail these elements that contribute to the larval make-up, except the two constants--the invagination of the wings and the loss of the compound eyes--we may account for ail the variety in form and structure that the larva presents. While, in general, the larva remains the saine in struc- ture from the time it is hatched until it transforms to the pupa, there are nearly always minor changes observable that are characteristic of its individual stages. In Chapter I we encountered the case of the little blister beetle that goes through severa] verv different forms dur- [ OE49 ] INSECTS ing its development (Figs. I2, 13) , and other examples of a metamorphosis during the larval lire might be given from the other groups ofinsects. A larval metamorphosis of this kind is kr.own as hyperrnetarnorphosis, and it shows that the larva may be structurally diversified during its growth to adapt it to several different environments or ways of obtaining its food. The reader was given fait warning that the subject of insect metamorphosis would become difficult to follow, and even now, with its rea]ization, the writer can hot assure him that the above analysis is by any means com- plete or final. Much more might be said for which there is no space here, and it is hot likely that ail entomologists will accept ail that bas been said without a discussion, and possibly some dissension. However, we bave hot yet reached the end, for we bave so far been dealing only with the phase of met'amorphosis that has produced the nymph or the larva, and have only briefly touched upon the reverse process which reconverts the creature into the adult. The pupa unquestionably bas the aspect of an imma- ture adult. It bas lost all the characteristic features of the larva, and its organs are those of the adult in the making. It bas external wing pads, legs, antennae, com- pound eyes. Its mouth parts are usually in a stage of development intermediate between those of the larva and those of the adult. Most of the pupal organs are useless, since they are neither those of the larva nor entirely those of the adult, and are hot adapted to any special use the pupa might make of them, except in a very few cases. The pupa is, therefore, a helpless creature, unable to eat, or to make any movement except by motions of the body. It is usually said to be a "resting" stage, but its rest is an enforced immobility, and some species attest their impatience by an almost continuous squirming, twisting, or wriggling of the movable parts of the body. It is evident that it must be an advantage to the pupa [ OE5 o ] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS to have some kind of protection, either from the weather, or from predacious creatures that might destroy it. While most pupae are protected in one way or another, there are mme that remain in exposed situations with no kind of shelter or concealment. The mosquito pupa is one of these, for it lires in the water along with the larva and floats just beneath the surface (Fig. 174 F), breathing by a pair of trumpetlike tubes that project above the surface from the anterior part of the body. The mos- quito pupa is a very active creature, and can propel itself through the water, usually downward, with almost as much agility as can the larva, and by this means probably avoids its enemies. The pupa of the common lady-beetle gives another example of an unprotected pupa (Fig. I32E). The larvae of these insects transform on the leaves where they have been feeding, and the pupae re- main here attached to the leaf, unable to move except by bending the body up and down. The pupae of mme of the butterflies also hang naked from the stems or leaves of plants. The pupae of many different kinds of insects are to be found in the ground, beneath stones, under the bark of trees, or ira tunnels of the leaves, twigs, or wood of plants where the larvae have spent their lives. Some of these, especially beetle pupae, are naked, soft-bodied creatures, depending on their concealment for protection. The pupae of moths and butterflies, however, are character- istically smooth, hard-shelled objects with the outlines of the legs and wings apparently sculptured on the sur- face (Plate 4 F). Pupae of this kind are called chrysa- lides (singular, ch,7salis ). Their dense covering is formed of a gluelike substance, exuded from the skin, that dries and forms a hard coating over the entire outer surface, binding the antennae, legs, and wings close to the body. In addition, the pupae of many moths are inclosed in a silk cocoon spun by the caterpillar. The caterpillars, as we shall learn in the next chapter, are provided with [25l INSECTS a pair of silk-producing glands which open through a hol- Iow spine on the Iower lip beneath the mouth (Fig. The silk is used bv the caterpillars during the feeding part of their lives in various ways, but it serves particu- larlv for the construction of the cocoon. The most higlly perfected instinct of the caterpillar is that which impels it t, build the cocoon, often an intricately woven strt,ctt,re, .just before the rime of its transformation to the pt,pa. "Fhe caterpillar spins the cocoon around itself, then sheds its skin, which is thrust into the ear end of the cocoon as a crt, mpled wad. Plate l  shows the cater- pillar of a small moth that infests apple trees constructing its cocoon, finallv inclosing itself within the latter, and there transformig to the pt,pa. The larvae of the wasps a,d becs likewise inclose them- selves within cocoons formed inside the cells of the comb in which thev have been reared. The cocoon is ruade of threads, but" the material is sort, and the freshly spun strands rt, n together into a sheet that dries as a parch- mentlike lining of the cell. The larvae of many of the wasplike parasitic insects that feed within the bodies of other living insects leave their hosts v«hen ready for trans- formation, and spin cocoons either near the deserted host or on i ts bodv. The magg«ts, or larvae, of the flies have adopted an- other method of acqt,iring protection during the pupal stage, lnstead of shedding the loosened cuticula previ- ous to the transformation, the maggot transforms within the skin, and the latter then shrinks and hardens until becomes a tough oral capsule inclosing the larva (Fig. 82 E). The capsule is called a p«pari«». It appears, however, that the larva within the puparitm undergoes an- other molt before it actt,ally becomes a pupa, for, when the pupa is formed, it is found to be st,rrounded bv a delicate mem[)ranous sheath inside the hard wall of the puparium, and when the adult fly issues it leaves this sheath and a thin pupal skin behind in the puparial shell. PLATE 11 The ribbed-cocoon maker (Bucculatrix pom[oliella), a small caterpillar that inhabits apple leaves At A the caterpillar is spinning a mat of silk on the surface of a twig. B shows the silk thread issuing from the spinneret (a) on the under lip of the caterpillar. At C the caterpillar is erecting a line of silk palisades around the site of the cocoon. D and E show the cocoon in the course of construction, built on the silk mat. F is a diagram of the cocoon on under surface of the support, containing the pupa (g) and the shed skin of the caterpillar (h). G shows the interior of the cocoon, its double walls (c, d), and partitions ([) at the front end. H is the finished cocoon surrounded by the palisades INSECT M ETA,XlOR PH()$1$ The pllpa has so manv of the characters of the mature insect that we lnight sa / it is self-evident that itis a part of the adult stage, except that to sav anything is "se]f- evident" is almost an unpardonab]e remark in scientific writing. However, it is clear to the eve that the pupa, in casting off the skin of the ]arva, has'entirelv discardcd the larva] for/n, except in certain insects t]at bave a larva] form in the adult stage. The pupa llliiV rctain a few Ulfimportant ]arval characters, but ail its principal organs are th-se of an adult insect in a ha]fwav stage of development. In studying the cicada, it.was«fi»servcd that the adult issues from the skin of the nymph in a verv immature condition. A carefid dissecti«m «f a specime at this rime would show that the creature is still imperfect in manv wavs besides those which appear externallv. Bv verv rapid rowth during the course (,f an hot/r, hoveve, the adult form and organs are perfected. We have also noted that with insects of incomplete metam-rphosis the adult is mostlv formed within the nymphal skin some rime before thë latter is cast off. The saine thing is true of a pupa. For several davs bel.re the caterpillar is readv to molt the last rime, i't remains ahnost motionless and "its Imdv contracts to perhaps less than hall of the original lenth. The caterpillar is now said to be in a "prepupal" stage, but examination of a specimen will reveal that it bas alread transfcrmed, f-r inside its skin is a sort pupa in a préliminary stage of development (l;ig. 4 B). This first stage of the pupa of a moth or butterflv (Fig. 41 B) is entirely comparable with the immature adult of the cicada fi»rmed inside the skin of the last stage of the nymph (Fig. 4  Al. The entire pupal period, therefore, corresponds with the formative stage of the cicada, which begins within the nymphal skin and is com- pleted about an hour after the emergence. The onlv external différence between the two cases is that the pupa sheds its skin, making a final added molt belote it becomes [ 253 ] INSECTS a perfect insect, while the immature adult cicada goes over into the fully mature form quickly and without a molt. We may conclude, therefore, that the pupa of insects with complete metamorphosis corresponds with the immature stage o the adu]t in insects with incomplete metamorphosis. This idea concerning the nature of the insect pupa has FIG. 141. Showing the resemblance of the pupa of an insect with complete metamorphosis to the immature adult form of an insect with incomplete meta- morphosis A, immature adult cicada, taken flore the last nymphal skin. B, immature pupa of a moth, taken from the last larval skin. C, the mature pupa of a wasp [ 254 ] been well expressed and more fully substantiated by E. Poyarkoff, and it appears to have lnore in its fayot than the older view that the pupa cor- responds with the ]ast nymphal stage in insects with incomplete meta- morphosis. According to Poyarkoff's theory, the pupa has no phylo- genetic significance, that lS, it does hOt represent anv ffee-living stage in the evolution or ances- tral historv of insects; it is simply a prolonged resting period fol]owing the shedding of the last larval skin, which termi- nates with an added molt when the adult is fullv formed. It frequently happens that a pupa bas some of the adult characters better developed than bas the adult itselL The pupae of insects that PLATE 12 The peach-borer moth (Ateeria exitiosa) Upper figure, the adult male moth (about twice natural slze); lower figure, the cocoon ruade by the caterpillar from bits of wood, with the empty shell of the pupa precting from the opened end INSECT METAMORPHOSIS have rudimentary or shortened wings in the adult stage often have wings larger than those of the adult, indicat- ing that the wings have been reduced in the adult since the time when the pupa was first established. Here, therefore, we see a case of metamorphosis between the pupa and the adult. Adult moths and butterflies have no mandibles or have mere rudiments of them (Fig. 63) , but the jaws are often quite visible in the pupae (Fig.  59 H, Md), and the pupa of one moth has long, toothed mandibles which it uses to liberate itself from the cocoon before transforming to the adult. The structural changes that accompany the transfor- mation of the larva into an adult insect are by no means confined to the outside of the body. Much internal re- organization goes on which involves changes in the tissues themselves. The larva may have built up a highly effi- cient alimentary canal well adapted for handling its own particular kind of food, but perhaps the adult has adopted an entirely different diet. The alimentary canal, there- fore, must be completely remodeled during the pupal stage. The nervous system and the tracheal system are often different in the larval and the adult stages, but the change in these organs is usually in the nature of a greater elaboration for the purposes of the adult, though the larva mav have developed special features that are dis- carded. It is in the muscles usually that the most radical re- constructive processes of the transformation from larva to adult take place. The muscles of adult insects are at- tached to the outer cuticular layer of the body wall, which in hard-bodied insects constitutes the "skeleton," and the mechanical differences between the larva and the adult lie in the relation between the muscles and the cuticula. With the change in the external parts between the two active stages of the insect, therefore, the larval muscles are likelv to become entirely unsuited to the purposes of the adu]t. The special larval muscles, then, must be [ 55 ] INSECTS cleared away, and a new muscle system must be built up suitable to the adult mechanism. Most of the other organs are transformed bv a gradual replacement of cells in their tis,;ues, with the res'uit that each organ itself remains intact dt,ring the whole period of its alteration--the insect is never v«ithout a complete alimentary canal, its b«»dv wall alwavs maintains a contint,ous st,rface. This conttition, however, is hot entirely true of the muscles, fi»r with some insects t,ndergoing a high degree of meta- morphosis i,a exter,aal structure, the muscular system may st,ffer a complete disorganization, the fibers of the larval svstem being ira a state of dissolution while those of the adult are ira the process of development. The muscles ¢,f adt, lt i,sects, as we have just said, are attached to the outer T fS1 FIG. 14o-. Diagram of the attachment of a muscle to the body walI of an adult insect by means of the terminal fibrillae (Tf M) B/, basement membrane; Enrt, endocuticula; Epct, epicuticula; Epd, epidermis; Exct, exocuticula; Mol, muscle; Tf M, terminal fibrillae of the muscle anchored in the cuticula and the new muscles of thc adt, I laver of the body wall I F:ig. r42 ). This layer is composed partl.v of a substance called dz#in formed bv the cellular laver of the bodv wall eneath it, "and constitutes the cuticuhtr skin that is shed when the insect molts. "Fhe newly- formed ct, ticula is soft and takes the con- tour of the celh, lar laver producing it. The rot, scies of the larwt that go over into the adult stage t must become fastened to the new cuticula, and this is possible onlv when the cutict,la is in the soft formative stage. It has been pointed out bv Powtrkoff that, for this re«tson, whenever [ :56 ] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS new muscles are formed in an insect a new cuticula must also be produced in order that the muscle fibers may become attached to the skeleton. New muscles com- pleted at the rime of a molt may be anchored into the new cuticula formed at this time; but if the completion of the muscle tissue is delayed, the new fibers can become func- tional only by attaching themselves at the following molt. Conversely, if the new muscles are not perfected at the rime of the last normal molt, the insect must have an extra molt later in order to give the muscles a functional connection with the body wall. Thus Poyarkoff would explain the origin of the pupal stage in the lire cycle of the insect. His theory has much to commend it, for, as Poyarkoff shows in an analysis of the various processes accompanying metamorphosis, none of the cha.nges in any of the organs other than the muscles would seem to necessitate the production of a new cutic- ula and thus involve an added molt. If insects with incomplete metamorphosis add new muscles for the adult stage, such muscles must be ready-formed at the time of the last nymphal molt; but it is probable that there are few such cases in this class of insects. Adopting Poyarkoff's theory, then, as the most plausi- ble explanation of why a pupal stage bas become separated by a molt from the fully-matured adult stage, we may sav that the reason for the pupa is probably to be found in the delaved growth of the adult muscles and in the conse- quent néed of a new cuticula for their attachment. With a pupal stage once established, however, the pupa bas undergone an evolution of its own, as bas the larva and the adult, though to a smaller degree than either of these two active stages. The pupa is characteristically different in each of the orders of insects, and many of its features are clearly adaptations to its own mode of lire. It is one thing to know the facts and to see the mean- ing of metamorphosis; it is quite another to understand how it has come about that an animal undergoes a ruera- [ OE57 ] INSECTS morphic transformation, and yet another to discover how the change is accomplished in the individual. Meta- morphosis can be only a special modification of general developmental growth, and growth toward maturity by the individual goes over the saine field that the species traversed in its evolution. Yet, the individual in its development may depart widely from the path of its ancestors. It may make many a detour to the right or the left; it may speed up atone place and loiter along at another; and, since the individual is rather an army of cells than a single thing, certain groups of its cells may forge ahead or go off on a bypath, while others lag behind or stop for a rest. Only one condition is mandatory, and this is that the whole armv shall finallv arrive at the saine point at the saine rime. In each species, the deviations flore the ancestral path, traveled for manv generations, bave become themselves fixed and definite trails followed by ail individuals of the species. The development of the individual, therefore, mav thus corne to be very different from the evolutionary historv of its species; and the lift historv of an insect with complete metamorphosis is but an extreme example of the complex course that may result when a species leaves the path of direct de- velopment to wander in the fields along the way. The larva and the adult insect bave become in many cases so divergent in structure, as a result of their separate departures from the ancestral path, that the embryo bas become almost a double creature, comprising one set of cells that develop directlv into the organs of the embryo and another set held in reserve to build up the adult organs at the end of the larval lit'e. The characters of the adult are, of course, impressed upon the germ cells and lnUSt be carried over to the next generation through the embryo, but they can not be developed at the saine rime that the larval organs are functional. Cnse- quently, the cells, that are to form the special tissues of the adult remain through the larval period as small [ -5 8 ] INSECT METAMORPHOSIS groups or islands of cells in the larval tissues. These dormant cell groups are known as imaginal discs, or his- toblasts. (Imaginal is from imago, an image, referring to the adult; histoblast means a tissue bud.) When analvzed closely, the apparent "double" struc- ture of the embryo will be round to be only the result of an exaggeration of the usual processes of growth, ac- companied by an acceleration in certain tissues and a retardation in others. In general, wherever an adult organ is represented bv an organ in the larva, even though the latter is greatly retuced, the cells that are to give this organ its adult form do hot begin to develop until the larval growth is completed. But if an organ is lacking in the larval stage, the regenerative cells mav start to develop at an earlier period--even in the embryo in a few cases. Hence, t/te remodeling q[ a larval orgat in the pupal stage is onlv a comp/etion of that organ's normal de- velopment, and te production q[ a "ne"' organ is onl tke deferred development of one tkat kas been suppressed during tke larval period. The special organs or forms of organs that the larva bas built up for its own purposes necessarily become useless when the larval life has been completed. Such organs, therefore, must be destroyed if thev can hot be directlv ruade over into corresponding adult organs. Their tissues consequently undergo a process of dissolu- tion, called histolvsis. It can hot be explained at the pres- ent time what causes histolysis, or why it begins at a certain time and in particular tissues, but histolysis is only one of the physiological processes that depend probably on the action of enzymes. In some insects a part of the degenerating tissues of the larva is devoured during the pupal stage by ameboid cells of the blood, known as p]2agocytes. It was once supposed that the phagocytes are the active agents of the destruction of the larval tissues, but this now seems improbable, since histol- ysis takes place whether phagocytes are present or absent. [ 59 ] INSECTS While the larval tissues are undergoing dissolution, the adult tissues are being built up from those groups of dormant cells, the histoblasts, that bave retained their vitality. Whatever itis that produces histolysis in the defunct larval tissues, it bas no effect on the regenerative tissues, which now begin a period of active development, or histogenesis (i.e., tissue building), which results in the completion of the adult organs. In most of the organs the two processes, histolysis and histogenesis, are com- plemental to each other, the new tissues spreading as the old are dissolved, so that there is never a lack of con- tinuitv in the parts undergoing reconstruction. It is only in the muscles, as we bave already observed, that the old tissues are destroyed before the new ones are formed. Because of the high physiological activity (rnembolism) going on within the pupa, the blood of the insect at this stage becomes filled with a great quantity of matter sulting from the dissolution of the larval tissues. During the pupal period, the insect takes no food nor does it discharge any waste materials--the substance of the growing tissues is derived from the débris of those degen- erating. But the transformation is hOt all direct. The insect is provided with an organ for converting some of the products of histolysis into proteid compounds that can be utilized by the tissues in histogenesis. This organ is thefa-body (see Chapter IV and Figure 158). During the larval lire the ceIls of the fat body store up large quantities of fat, and in some insects glycogen, both of which energy-forming substances are discharged into the blood at the beginning of the pupal period. And now the fat cells become also active agents in the conversion of histolytic products into proteid bodies, probably by enzymes gven off from their nuclei. These proteid bodies are finally also discharged into the blood, where they are absorbed as nutriment by the tissues of the newly-formed organs. At the close of the pupal period, the fat-body itself is often almost entirely consumed or [ 6o ] PLATE 13 A B C Il The red-humped caterpillar (Schizt«ra concinna) A, the moth in position of repose (natural size). B, moth with wings spread. C, under surface of apple leaf, showing eggs at ,7, and young caterpillars feeding at b. D, a caterpillar in next to last stage ofgrowth. E, full-grown caterpillars (one-half larger than natural size). F, two cocoons on ground among grass and dead leaves, one cut open showing caterpillar within before transforming to pupa INSECT METAMORPHOSIS is reduced to a few scattered cells, which build up the fat- body of the adult. The internal adult organs undergo a continuous develop- ment throughout the pupal period and are practically complete when the latter terminates with the molt to the adult. But the external parts, after quickly attaining a halfway stage of development at the beginning of the pupal metamorphosis are checked in their growth by the hardening of the cuticular covering of the body wall, and m their half-formed shape they must remain to the end of the pupal period. It is only by a subsequent growth of the cellular layer of the body wall beneath the loosened cuticula of the pupa that the external adult parts are finally perfected in structure; and it is only when the pupal cuticula is then cast off and the organs cramped within it are gien freedom to expand that the adult insect at last appears in its fully mature form. [a6 ] CHAPTER IX THE CATERPILLAR AND THE aI()TH "I'HE 1.1FE OF A CATERP1LLAR la- is one of those bleak davs of early spring that so offen follow a period of warmth and sunshine, when living things seem led to believe the fine weather bas corne to stay. Out in the woods a hand of little caterpillars is clinging to the surtce of something that appears to be an oral swelling near the end of a twig on a wild cherrv tree (Fig. 143). The tinv. creatures, scarce a tenth of an inch in length, sit motionless, benumbed by the cold, many with bodies bent into hall circles as if too nearlv ffozen to straighten out. Probably, however, thev are all un- conscious and suffering nothing, l'et, if thev were ca- l»able of it, thev would be wondering what rate brought them into such a forbidding «orld. But rate in this case was disguised most likelv in the warmth of yesterdav, which induced the caterpillars to leave the eggs in whi'ch thev had safely passed the winter. The empty eggshells are inside the spindle-shaped thing that looks so like a swelling of the twig, for in fact this is merelv a protective covering over a mass of eggs glued fast to the bark. The surface of the covering is perfor- ated bv manv little holes from which the caterpillars emerged, and "is swathed in a network of fine silk threads which the caterpillars spun over it to give themselves a surer footing and one thev might cling to unconsciouslv in the event of adverse weather, such as that which makes them helpless now. A'hen nature designs anv creature [ 262] PL.\TE 14 C F The tent caterl3illar ([alacosonm americana) A, an egg mass on an apple twig (about natural size). B, young caterpillar feeding on an opening leaf bud. C, branches of an apple tree with a tent in a (ork, (rom which trails of silk lead outward to the twigs where the caterpillars are feeding on the leaves. D, a full- grown caterpillar (three-fourths natural size). E, cocoon. F, 13u13a, taken l'roIll a cocoon. G, maie moth. H, female moth laying eggs THE CATERPILI.AR AND THE MOTH to live under trying circumstances she grants it some safeguard against destruction. The web-spinning habit is one which, as we shall see, these caterpillars will develop to a much greater extent later in their lives, for our little acquaintances are young tent caterpillars. They are round most often among woodland trees, on the chokecherry and the wild black cherry. But they commonlv infest apple trees in the orchards, and for this reason {heir species has been named the apple-tree tent caterpillar, to distinguish it from related forms.that do hOt com- monly inhabit cultivated fruit trees. The scientific naine is ,lla/acosoma americana. The egg masses of the tent caterpillar moths are not hard to find at this season. Thev are generally placed near the t"lps of the twigs, which they appear to surround, and being of the saine brownish color as the bark, they look like swollen parts of the twigs themselves /Plate 4 A, Fig. 244A). Most of them are five-eighths to seven-eighths of an inch in length and ahnost hall of this in width, but they vary in thickness with the diameter of FIG. I43. Young tent cater- pillars on the egg mass from which they have just hatched. (I_- rimes natural size) the twig. A closer inspection shows that the mass really clasps the twig, or incloses it like a thick jacket lapped clear around. In fcrm the masses are usuallv sym- metrical, tapering at each end, but some are of irregular shapes, and those that have been placed at a forking or against a bud have one end enlarged. The greater part of an egg mass consists of the cover- ing material, which is a brittle, fihny substance like drv mucilage. Some of it is often broken away, and some- [ 263 ] INSECTS times the tops of the eggs are entirely bare. The eggs are placed in a single layer next the bark (Fig. 144 B), and there are usually 300 or 400 of them. They look like little, pale-gray porcelain jars packed closely together and glued to the twig by their rounded and somewhat compressed lower ends. The tops are fiat or a little convex. Each egg is the twenty-fourth of an inch in height, about two-thirds of this in width, and bas a capacity of one caterpillar. The covering is usually hall again as deep as the height of the eggs, but varies in thick- ness in different specimens. The outer surface is smooth and polished, but the interior is full of irregular, many- sided ar spaces, separated from one another by rhin partitions (B). V'herever the covering of an egg mass bas been broken away, the bases of the partition walls leave brown lines that look like cords strapped and tied into an irregular net over the eggs (B), as if for double security against insurrection on the part of the inmates. But neither shells nor fastenings will offer effective resistance to the little caterpillars when they are taken with the urge for ffeedom. Each is provided with efficient cutting in- struments in the form of sharp-toothed jaws that will enable it to open a round hole through the roof of its cell (Fig. I44 C). The superstructure is then easily pene- trated, and the emerging caterpillar finds itself on the surface of its former prison, along with several hundred brothers and sisters when all are out. Ail this time the members of that unfortunate brood we noted first have been clinging benumbed and motion- less to the silk network on the covering of their deserted eggs. The cold continues, the clouds are threatening, and during the afternoon the hapless creatures are drenched by hard and chilling tains. Through the night foliowing they are tossed in a northwest gale, while the temperature drops below freezing. The next day the wind continues, and frost cornes again at night. For three 1264 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH days the caterpillars endure the hostility of the elements, without food, without shelter. But already the buds on the cherry tree are sending out long green points, and when the temperature moderates on the fourth day and from which the young caterpillars have emerged.  D, newly-hatched caterpillars (enlarged about __------ nine times) 1 the sun shines again for a brief period, the revived outcasts are able to find a few fresh tips on which to nibble. In another day the young leaves are unfolding, of- fering an abundance of tender for- age, and the season of adversity for these infant caterpillars is over. This family of tent caterpillars was hatched near Washington on the 25th of March. The newly-hatched caterpiilars (Fig. 144 D) are about one-tenth of an inch in length. The body is widest through the first segment [ 265 ] INSECTS and tapers somewhat toward the other end. The general color is blackish, but there is a pale gray collar on the first segment back of the head and a grayish line along the sides of the bodv. Most of the segments have pale rear margins above which are often bright yellow or orange on the fourth to the seventh segments. There is usuallv a darker line along the middle of the back. The bodv s covered with long gray hairs, those on the sides spre'ading outward, those on the back curving forward. After a few days of feeding the caterpillars increase to nearlv twice their length at hatching. Wlen the weather continues fair after the time of hatching, the caterpillars begin their lives with happier days, and their early history is different from that of those unfortunates described above. Three other broods, which were round hatching on March _2, before the period of bad weather had begun, were brought indoors and reared under more favorable circumstances. These caterpillars spent but little time on the egg masses and wasted only a few strands of silk upon them. They were soon off on exploring expeditions, small processions going outward on the twigs leading from the eggs or their vicinity, while some individuals dropped at the ends of threads to see what might be below. Most, however, at first went upward, as if they knew the opening leaf buds should lie in that direction. If this course, though, hap- pened to lead them up a barren spur, a squirming, furry mob would collect on the summit, apparently bewildered bv the trick their instinct had played upon them. On tle other hand, many followed those that first dropped down on threads, these in turn adding other strands till soon a silken stairway was constructed on which indi- viduals or masses of little woolly bodies dangled and twisted, as if either enjoying the sport or too fearful to go farther. For several davs the young caterpillars led this happy, irresponsible lire, expl¢ring twigs, feeding wherever an [ 266 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH open leaf bud was encountered, dangling in loose webs, but spinning threads everywhere. Yet, in each brood, the individuals kept within reach of one another, and the trails of silk leading back to the main branch alwavs insured the possibility of a family reunion whenever tl{is should be desired. One morning, the 27th , one family had gathered in its scattered members and these had already spun a little tentli.ke web in the crotch between the --- main stem of the sup- \- porting twig and two small branches (Fig. I45). Some members were crawling on the surface of the tent, others were resting within, still others were traveling back and forth on the silk trails  leading outward on the branches, and the rest were massed about the buds devouring the young leaves. The es- tablishment of the tent marks the beginning of a change in the cater- pillars' lives; it entails responsibilities that de- F,« 45- First t«nt ruade by young t«nt mand a fixed course of caterpillars. (About halfnatural size) dailv living. In the lires of the tent caterpillars this poirt is what the beginning of school days is to us--the end of irresponsible ffeedom, and the beginning of sub- jection to conventional routine. Everv tent caterpillar family that survives infancy eventually reaches the point where it begins the con- [ -"6 7 ] INSECTS struction of a tent, but the early days are not always spent alike, even under similar circumstances, nor is the tent always begun in the saine manner. In the State of Çonnecticut, where the season for both plants and insects is much later than in the latitude of Washington, three broods of tent caterpillars were ob- served hatching on April 8 of the saine year. These caterpillars also met with dull and chilly weather that kept them huddled on their egg coverings for several days. After four days the temperature moderated suffi- ciently to allow the caterpillars to move about a lit(le on the twigs, but none was seen Fro. 146. Young tent caterpillars matted on a fiat sheet of web spun in the crotch between two branches. (About natural size) feeding (iii the I4th--six days af ter the hatching. Yet they had increased in slze to about one- eighth of an inch in length. Wherever these cater- pillars camped in their wanderings over the small apple trees they inhabit- ed, they spun a carpet of silk to rest upon, and there the whole family collected in such a crowded mass that it looked like a round, furry mat (Fig. I46). The car- pers afforded the cater- pillars a much saler bed than the bare, wet bark of the tree, for if the sleepers shouid become stupefied bv cold the claws of their feet would mechanically hold them fast to the silk during the period of their help- lessness. The test came on the 16th and the night fol- lowing, when the campers were soaked by hard, cold rains [ 268 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH till they became so inert they seemed reduced to lifeless masses of soggy wool. On the afternoon of the 7th the temperature moderated, the sun came out a few rimes, the wetness evaporated from the trees, and most of the caterpillars revived sufficiently to more about a little and dry their fur. Though a few had been washed off the carpets by the violence of the storm and had perished on the ground, and in one camp about twenty dead were left behind on the web, the majority had survived. For several days after this, during better weather, the caterpillars of these families continued their free exist- ence, feeding at large on the opening buds, but returning during resting periods to the webs, or constructing new ones at more convenient places. Often each family split into several bands, each with its own retreat, yet all re- mained in communication by means of the silk trails the members left wherever thev went. The camping sites were Cther against the surface of a branch or in the hollow of a crotch. Though the carpet- like webs stretched over these places were spun appar- ently only to give secure footing, those at the crotches often roofed over a space well protected beneath, and fre- quently many of the caterpillars crawled into these spaces to avail themselves of their shelter. Yet for twelve days none of the broods constructed webs designed for cover- ings. Then, on the morning of the oth, one family was round to bave spun several sheets of silk above the carpet on which its members had rested for a week, and all were now inside their first tent. These caterpillars were near- ing the end of their first stage, and two days later the first molted skins were round in the tent, fourteen davs after the date of hatching. In Stage II the caterpillars have a new color pattern and one which begins to suggest that characteristic of the species in its more mature stages (Fig. 48). On the upper part of the sides the dark color is broken into a series of quadrate spots each spot partially split lengthwise by a [ 69 ] INSECTS light streak, and the whole series on each side is bordered above and below by distinct pale lines, the upper line often yellowish. Below the lower line there is a dark hand, and below this another pale line just above the bases of the legs. The back of the first body segment bas a brown transverse shield, and the last three segments are continuously brown, without spots or lines. From now on the tents increase rapid!y in size by suc- cessive additions of web spun over the tops and sides, each new sheet covering a fiat space between itself and the last. The old roofs thus become successively the floors of the new stories. The latter, of course, lap over on the sides, and many continue clear around and beneath the original structure; but since the tent was started in a crotch, the principal growth is upward with a continual expansion at the top. During the building period a symmetrical tent is really a beautiful object (Plate 4 C). Hall hidden among the leaves, its silvery whiteness pleas- ingly contrasts with the green of the foliage; its smooth silk walls glisten where the sun falls upon them and reflect warm grays and purples from their shadows. The caterpillars bave adopted now a community form of living; ail feed together, ail rest and digest at the saine time, all work at the saine time, and their days are divided into definite periods for each of their several duties. There is, however, no visible system of government or regulation, but with caterpillars acts are probably func- tions; that is, the urge probably cornes from some physio- logical process going on within them, which may be in- fluenced somewhat by the weather. The activities of the day begin with breakfast. Early in the morning the family assembles on the tent roof, and about six-thirty, proceeds outward in one or several orderly columns on the branches. The leaves on the terminal twigs furnish the material for the meal. After two hours or more of feeding, appetites are appeased, and [ -7o ] THE CATERPIII.AR AND THE MOTH the caterpillars go back to the surface of the tent, usually by eight-thirty or nine o'clock. Here they do a little spin- ning on its walls, but no strenuous work is attempted at FIG. 147. Mature tent caterpillars feeding at night this rime, and generally within hall an hour the entire fam]lv is reassembled inside the tent. Most frequently the crowd collects firs't in the shady side of the outermost story, but as the morning advances the caterpillars seek [71 ] INSECTS the cooler inner chambers, where they remain hidden from view. In the early part of the afternoon a light lunch is taken. The usual hour is one o'clock, but there is no set time. Occasionally the participants appear shortly after eleven, sometimes at noon, and again hot until two or three o'clock, and rarely as late as four. As they assemble on the roof of the tent they spin and weave again until ail are readv to proceed to the feeding grounds. This meal lasts ai3out an bout. When the caterpillars return to the tent they do a little more spinning belote they retire for the afternoon siesta. Luncheon is hot always fully attended and is more popular with caterpillars in the .vounger stages, being dispensed with entirely, as we shall see, in the last stage. Dinner, in the evening, is the principal meal of the day, and again there is much variation in the time of service. Daily observations ruade on rive Connecticut colonies from the 8th to the 26th of May gave six-thirty p.m. as the earliest record for the start of the evening feeding, and nine o'clock as the latest; but the dinner hour is preceded by a great activity of the prospective diners assembled on the outsides of the tents. Though the energy of the tent caterpillars is never excessive, it appears to reach its highest expression at this time. The tent roofs are covered with restless throngs, most of the individuals busilv occupied with the weaving of new web, working apparently in desperate haste as if a certain task had been set for them to finish before they should be allowed to eat. Possibly, though, the stimulus cornes merely from a congestion of the silk reservoirs in their bodies, and the spinning of the thread affords relief. The tent caterpillar does hOt weave its web in regular loops of thread laid on by a methodical swinging of the head from side to side, which is the method of most caterpillars. It bends the entire body to one side, at- [ OE7 OE ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH taches the thread as far back as it tan reach, then runs forward a few paces and repeats the movement, sonletimes on the saine side, sometimes on the other. The direction in which the thread is carried, however, is a haphazard one, depending on the obstruction the spinner meets from others working in the saine manner. Among the crowd of weavers there are always a few individuals that are hot working, though they are just as active as the others. These are running back and forth over the surface of the tent, like boarders impatiently awaiting the sound of the dinner bell. Perhaps they are in- dividuals that have finished their work by exhausting their supply of silk. At last the signal for dinner is sounded. It is heard by the caterpillars, though it lS hot audible to an outsider. A few respond at first and start off on one of the branches leading from the tent. Others follow, and presently a column is marching outward, usually keeping to the well-marked paths of silk till the dis- tant branches are reached. Here the line breaks up into 4;; y I FIe. 148. Mature tent cater- pillars. (Naturel size) [ 273 ] INSECTS several sections which spread out over the foliage. The tent is soon deserted. For one, two, or three hours the repast continues, the diners often returning home late at night. Observations indicate that this is the regular habit of the tent caterpillar in its earlier stages, and perhaps up to the sixth or last stage of its lire. In at least nine instances the writer noted entire colonies back in the tent for the night at hours ranging from nine to eleven p.m.; but sometimes a part of the crowd was still feeding when last observed. In describing the lire of a community of insects it is seldom possible to make general statements that will apply to ail the individuals. The best that a writer can dois to say what he sees most of the insects do, for, as in other communities, there are always those eccentric mem- bers who will hot conform with the customs of the major- ity. Occasionally a solitary tent caterpillar may be seen feeding between regular mealtimes. Often one works alone on the tent, spinning and weaving long after its companions bave quit and gone below for the midday rest. Such aone appears to be afflicted with an over- developed sense of responsibility. Then, too, there is nearly always one among the group in the tent who can hot get to sleep. He flops this way and that, striking his companions on either side and keeping them awake also. These are annoyed, but they. do hot retaliate; they eem to realize that their restless comrade bas but a common caterpillar affliction and must be endured. Many of these little traits make the caterpillars seem almost human. But, of course, this is just a popular form of expression; in fact, i t expresses an idea too popular --we take an over amount of satisfaction in referring to our faults as particularly human characteristics. What we really should say is hot how much tent caterpillars are like us in their shortcomings, but how much we are still like tent caterpillars. We both revert more or less in our instincts to times before we lived in communities, [ 274 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH to times when our ancestors lived as individuals irre- sponsible one to another. The tent caterpillars ordinarily shed their skins six times during their lives. At each molt the skin splits along the middle of the back on the first three body seg- ments and around the back of the head. It is then pushed off over the rear end of the body, usually in one piece, though most other caterpillars cast off the head covering separate from the skin of the body in all molts but the last. The moltings take place in the tent, except the molt of the caterpillar to the pupa, and each molt renders the caterpillars inactive for the greater part of two davs. When most of them shed their skins at the same time there results an abrupt cessation of activity in the colony. By the rime the caterpillars reach maturity the discarded skins in a tent outnumber the caterpillars rive to one. The first stage of the caterpillars, as already described (Fig. 144 D), suggests nothing of the color pattern of the later stages, but in Stage II the spots and stripes of the mature caterpillars begin to be formed. In succeeding stages the characters become more and more like those of the sixth or last stage (Plate 14 D, Fig. I48), when the colors are most intensified and their pattern best defined. Particularly striking now are the velvety black head with the gray collar behind; the black shield of the first seg- ment split with a medium zone of brown; the white stripe down the middle of the back; the large black lateral blotches, each inclosing a spot of silvery bluish white; the distinctly bluish color between and below the blotches; and the hump on the eleventh segment, where the median white line is almost obliterated by the crowding of the black ffom the sides. Yet the creatures wearing ail this lavishness of decoration make no ostentatious show, for the colors are ail nicely subdued beneath the long reddish- brown hairs that clothe the body. In the last stage, the average full-grown caterpillar is about two inches long, [ OE75 ] INSECTS but sorne reach a length of two and a half inches when fully stretched out. In Connecticut, the tent caterpillars begin to go into their sixth and last stage about the middle of May. They now change their habits in many ways, disregarding the conventionalities and refusing the responsibilities that bound thern in their earlier stages. They do little if any spinning on the tent, hOt even keeping it in decent repair. They stay out ail night to feed (Fig. 147) , unless adverse weather interferes, thus merging dinner into breakfast in one long nocturnal repast. This is attested by observa- tions rnade through rnost of several nights, when the caterpillars of four colonies which went out at the usual time in the evenings were round feeding till at least four o'clock the following mornings, but were always back in the tents at seven-thirty a.m. When the caterpillars begin these all-night banquets, they dispense with the mid- day lunch, their crops being so crammed with food by morning that the entire day is required for its digestion. Sonne writers bave described the tent caterpillars as nocturnal feeders, and sonne have said they feed three tirnes a day. Both statements, it appears, are correct, but the observers have hOt noted that the two habits pertain to different periods of the caterpillars' history. At any time during the caterpillars' lires adverse weather conditions may upset their daily routine. For two weeks during May, days and nights had been fair and generally warm, but on the ITth the temperature did not get above 65 ° F., and in the afternoon threatening clouds covered the sky. In the evening light rains fell, but the caterpillars of the rive colonies under observation carne out as usual for dinner and were still feeding when last ob- served at nine p.m. Rains continued through the night, however, and the temperature stood almost stationary between 50 ° and 55 °. The next morning three of the small trees containing the colonies were festooned with water-soaked caterpillars, ail [ OE76 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH hanging nnotionless fronn leaves, petioles, and twigs, be- nunnbed with exposure and incapable of action--nnore nniserable-looking insects could hOt be innagined. No in- stinct of protection, apparently, had prevailed over their appetites; till at last, overconne by wet and cold, they were saved only by sonne innpulse that led them to grasp the support so firnnly with the abdonninal feet that they hung there nnechanicallv when senses and power of nnove- nnent were gone. Sonne clung by the hindnnost pair of feet only, others grasped the support with all the abdonninal feet. One colony and nnost of another were safely housed in their tents. These had evidently retreated before helplessness overtook thenn. By eight o-'clock in the nnorning nnany of the suspended caterpillars were sufficiently revived to resunne activity. Sonne fed a little, others crawled feebly toward the tents. By 9:45 nnost were on their way home, and at IO:4_ç all were under shelter. Gentle rains fell during nnost of the day, but the tenn- perature gradually rose to a nnaxinnunn of 65 °. Only a few caterpillars fronn the youngest co]onv carne out to feed at noon. In the evening there was a aard, drenching rain, after which several caterpillars fronn two of the tents ap- peared for dinner. The next nnorning, the 9th, the tenn- perature dropped to 49 °, light rains continued, and nota caterpillar from anv colony ventured out for breakfast. It looked as if thev tiad learned their lesson; but it is more probable they were sinnply too cold and stiff to leave the tents. In the afternoon the skv cleared, the tennperature rose, and the colonies resumed their normal life. The tent caterpillars' mode of feeding is to devour the leaves clear down to the nnidribs (Figs. 48, I49) , and in this fashion they denude whole branches of the trees they inhabit. Since the caterpillars have big appetites, it some- times happens that a large colony in a small tree or several colonies in the saine tree may strip the tree bare before they reach maturity. The writer never saw a colony [ OE77 ] INSECTS reduced to this extremity by its own feeding, but produced similar conditions for one in a small apple tree by removing ail the leaves. This was on May 9, and the caterpillars were mostly in their fifth stage. At seven o'clock in the evening the cater- pillars in this col- ony came out as usual, and, after « doing the cus- tomary spinning on the tent, started off to get their dinner, sus- pecting nothing till they came to the cut-off ends of the branches. Then they were clearly bewildered .--they returned and tried the course over again ; they tried another branch, ail the other branches; but ail ended alike in bare stumps. Yet there were the accus- tomed trails, and their instincts Fla. 149. Twigs of choke cherry and of apple de- c]ear]y said that nuded by tent caterpillars silk paths led to food. So ail night the caterpillars hunted for the missing leaves; they went over and over the saine courses, but none ventured be]ow the upper part of the trunk. By 3:45 in the morning [ THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH many had given up and had gone back to the tent, but the rest continued the hopeless search. At seven-thirtv a few bold explorers had discovered some remnants ol  water sprouts at the base of the tree and fed there till ten o'clock. At eleven ail were back in the tent. At two o'clock in the afternoon the crowd was out again and a mass meeting was being held at the base of the tree. But nobody seemed to have .any idea ofwhat to do, and no leader rose to the occasion. A few cautious scouts were making investigations over the ground to the extent of a foot or a little more from the base of the trunk, but, though there were small apple trees on three sides rive feet away, only one small caterpillar ventured off toward one of these. He, however, missed the mark by twelve inches and continued onward; but probably chance eventually rewarded him. At three p.m. the meeting broke up, and the members went home. They were not seen again that evening or the next morning. During this day, the "_ISt, and the next, an occasional caterpillar came out of the tent but soon returned, and it was not till the evening of the 22nd that a large number appeared. These once more explored the naked branches and traveled up and down the new paths on the trunk, but none was observed to leave the tree. On the -3rd and 24th no caterpillars were seen. On the 2çth the tent was opened and onlv two small individuals were round wlthin it. Each of th'ese was weak and flabby, its alimentary canal completely empty. But what had become of the rest? Probablv they had wandered off unobserved one bv one. Certé, inlv there had been no organized migra- tion. Solitary caterpillars were subsequently found on a dozen or more small apple trees in the immediate vicinity. It is likelv that most of these had molted and had gone into the lst stage, since their time was ripe, but this was not determined. After the caterpillars go over into their last stage, the tents are neglected and rapidly fall into a state of dilapida- [ 279 ] 1 NS ECTS tion. Birds often poke holes in them with their bills and rip off sheets of silk which they carry away for nest-build- ,ng purposes. The caterpillars do not even repair these damages. The rooms of the tent become filled with ac- cumulations of frass, molted skins, and the shriveled bodies of dead caterpillars. The walls are discolored by tains which beat into the openings and soak through the refise. Thus, what were shapely objects ofglistening silk are transmuted into formless masses of dirty rags. But the caterpillars, now in their finest dress, are ob- livious of their sordid surroundings and sleep ail dav. anaidst these disgusting and apparently insanitary condi- tions. However, the life in the tents will soon be over; so it appears the caterpillars simply think, "What's the use?" But of course caterpillars do hot think; thev arrive at results bv instinct, in this case bv the lack of an i'nstinct, for thev hve no impulse to keep the tents elean or in Fro. o. A tent caterpillar in the last stage of its growth, leaving the tree con- taining its nest by jumping from the end of a twig to the ground repair when doing so would be energy wasted. Nature demands a prac- tical reason for most things. The tent lire continues about a week after the last molt, and then the familv begins to break up, t[ae members leaving singly or in bands, but al- wavs as individuals with- Otl[ further COllcerll for one another. Judging from their previous me- thodical habits, one ould suppose that the caterpillars starting off on their journeys would simply go down the trunks of the trees and walk away. But no; once in their life they must have a dramatic moment. A caterpillar cornes rushing out of a tent as if suddenly awakened from [ 8o ] THE CATERPILI.AR AND THE MOTH some terrible dream or as if pursued by a demon, hurries outward along a branch, goes to the end of a spur or the tip of a leaf, and without slackening continues into space till the end of the support tickles his stomach, when sud- denly he gives a flip into the air, turns a somersault, and lands on the ground (Fig. 15o). The first performance of this sort was observed on May 15 in the Connecticut colonies. On the afternoon of the 19th, twentv or more caterpillars from two neigh- boring colonies were seen leaving the trees in the saine fashion within half an hour. Most of the members of one of these colonies had their last molt on Mav I2 and 13 . During the next few davs other caterpillrs were ob- served jumping from four trees containing colonies under observation. Ail of these went off individuallv at various times, but most of them early in the afternc;on. Many caterpillars simply drop off" when they reach the end of the branch, without the acrobatic touch, but only three were seen to go down the trunk of a tree in commonplace style. The population of the tents gradually decreases during several davs following the time when the first caterpillar departs. ne of the two tents from which the general exodus was noted on Mav 19 was opened on the 2lSt and was fimnd to contain onl'.v one remaining caterpillar. On the evening of the 22nd a solitary individual was out feed- ing from the other tent. The two younger colonies main- tained their numbers until the 22nd, after which they diminished till, within a few days, their tents also were deserted. The members of ail these colonies hatched from the eggs on April 8, 9, and Io, so seven weeks is the greatest length of time that anv of them spent on the trees of their birth. The caterpillar that left the tent on the çth came flore a colonv that began to hatch on April 1% gving an observed minimum of thirty-six days. After the mature caterpillars leave the tents, they wander at large and feed wherever they find suitable INSECTS provender, enjoying for a while a new lire free from the domestic routine that bas bound them since the days of their infancy. But even their liberty has an ulterior pur- pose: the time is now approaching when their lives as caterpillars must end and the creatures must go through the mysteries of transformation, which, if successfullv accomplished, will convert them into winged moths. I't would clearly be most unwise for the caterpillars of a colony to undergo the period of their metamorphosis huddled in the remains of the tent, where some untoward event might bring destruction to them ail. Nature has, therefore, implanted in the tent caterpillar a migratory t,rge, which now becomes active and leads the members of 'I;. |çI. The cocoon of atent cater- pillar. (Natural size) a familv to scatter far and wide. About a week is allowed for the dispersal, and then, as each wan- derer feels within the first warnings of ap- proaching dissolution, it selects a suitable place for inclosing itself in a COCO011. I t is diflàcult to find many cocoons in the neighborhood where large numbers of caterpillars have dispersed, but such as may be recovered will be round among blades of grass, under ledges of (ences, or in sheds and barns where thev are hot disturbed. The cocoon is a slender oval or a]most spindle-shaped object, the larger ones being about an inch long and hall an inch in width at the middle I Plate 4 E Fig. l çl). The structureis spun ofwhit¢ silk thread, but its waÏls are stiffened and colored by a yellow- ish substance infiltrated like starch through the meshes of the fabric. In building the cocoon the caterpillar first spins a loose network of threads at the place selected, and then, using this for a support, weaves about itself the walls of the final [ _8] THE CATERPILI.AR AND THE MOTH structure. On account of its large size, as compared with the size of the cocoon, the caterpillar is forced to double on itself to fit its self-imposed cell. Most ofits hairs, how- ever, are brushed off and become interlaced with the threads to forma part of the cocoon fabric. When the spinning is finished, the caterpillar ejects a yellowish, pasty liquid from its intestine, which it smears ail over the mner surface of the case; but the substance spreads through the meshes of the silk, where it quickly dries and gives the starchv stiffness to the walls of the finished cocoon. It readi'ly crumbles into a yellow powder, which becomes dusted over the caterpillar within and ftoats off in a small yellow cloud whenever a cocoon is pulled loose from its attachments. The cocoon is the last resting place of the caterpillar. If the insect lires, it will corne out of its prison as a moth, leaving the garments of the worm behind. It may, how- ever, be attacked by parasites that will shortly bring about its destruction. But even if it goes through the period of change successfullv it nmst remain in the cocoon about three weeks. In the meantime it will be ofinterest to learn something of the structure of a caterpillar, the better to understand some of the details of the process of its trans- formation. THE STRUCTURE AND PHYSIOLOG" OF THE CATERPILLAR A caterpillar is a young moth that bas carried the idea of the independence of youth to an extreme degree, but which, instead of rising superior toits parents, bas de- generated into the form of a worm. An excellent theme this would furnish to those who at present are bewailing what they believe to be a shocking tendency toward an excess of independence on the part of the young of the human species; but the moral aspect of the lesson some- what loses its force when we learn that this freedom of the caterpillar from parental restraint gives advantages to both young and adults and therefore results in good to [ -83 ] INSECTS the species as a whole. Independence entails responsibil- ities. A creature that leaves the beaten paths of its an- cestors must learn to take care ofitse]fin a new way. And Flc. 15OE. The head of a tent caterpillar A, facial view. B, under surface. C, side view. .dnt, antenna; Clp, clypeus; For, opening of back of head into body; ttphy, hypopharynx; Lk, labium; Lin, labrum; 3Id, mandible; Mx, maxilla; O, eyes; Spt, spinneret this the caterpillar has learned to do preeminently well, as it bas corne up the long road of evolution, till now it possesses both instincts and physical organs that make it F¢. x$3. The mandibles, or biting jaws, of the tent cater- pillar detached from the head A, front view of right mandi- ble. B, under side of the left mandible, a and p, the an- terior socket and posterior knob by which the jaw is hinged to the head; EAcl, RMd, abductor and adductor muscles that more the jaw in a transverse plane one of the dominant forms of in- sect lire. The external organs of princi- pal interest in the caterpillar are those of the head (Fig. 152). These include the eyes, the an- tennae, the mouth, the jaws, and the silk-spinning instrument. A facial view of a caterpillar's head shows two large, hemispherical lateral areas separated by a medi- an suture above and a triangular plate (C/p) below. The walls of the lateral hemispheres give at- tachment to the muscles that move the jaws, and their size is no index of the brain-power of [ -84 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH the caterpillar, since the insect's brain occupies but a small part of the interior of the head (Fig. 154 , Br). From the lower edge of the triangular facial plate (Fig. ISZ, Clp) is suspended the broad, notched front lip, or labrum (Lin) that hangs as a protective flap over the bases of the jaws. At the sides of the labrum are the very small antennae (.4rit) of the caterpillar. On the lower part of each lateral hemisphere of the head are six small simple eyes, or ocelli (O), rive in an upper group, and one near the base of the antenna. With all its eyes, however, the caterpillar Cr Vent Ht /val int Br..Rect Phy -'"'- -  _ Mth / ,    oeGn kG1 Fro. 54- Diagrammatic lengthwise section of a caterpillar, showing the principal internal organs, except the tracheal system d, anus; r, brain; C, crop; I, heart; II, ;ntestine; 11, Malpighian tubule (two others are cut off near their bases); I, mouth; Oe, oesophagus; pharynx; R«et, rectum; çl, silk gland; o«çn, suboesophageal ganglion; stomach, or ventriculus;  ventral nerve cord appears to be very nearsighted and gives little evidence of being able to distinguish more than the presence or ab- sence of an object before it, or the difference between light and darkness. Those tent caterpillars that were starving on the denuded tree failed to perceive other food trees in full leaf only a few feet away. The general external form and structure of the tent caterpillar is shown at A of Figure 159. The body is soft and cylindrical. The head is a small, hard-walled capsule attached to the body by a short flexible neck. Back of the head and neck cornes first a body region consisting of three segments that bear each a pair of small, jointed legs (L); and then cornes a long region composed of ten segments supported on rive pairs of short, unjointed legs [ 85 ] INSECTS (.4L), the first four pairs being on the third, fourth, fifth and sixth segments, and the last on the tenth segment. The region of the three segrnents in the caterpillar bear- ing the jointed legs corresponds with the thorax of an adult insect (Fig. 63, Th), and that following corresponds with the abdomen (db). The thorax of the adult insect constitutes the locornotor center of the body, but the worrnlike caterpillar has no special locornotor region, and hence its body is hot separated into thorax and abdomen. The thoracic legs of the caterpillar terrninate each in a single claw, but the foot of each of the abdorninal legs has a broad sole provided with a series or circlet of claws and with a central vacuum cup. The abdorninal legs of the caterpillar, therefore, are important organs of pro- gression, and are the chier organs of grasping or of cling- ing to hard or fiat surfaces. The jaws of the caterpillar consist of a pair of large, strong rnandibles (Fig. 152 , 3fd) concealed, when closed, behind the labrurn. Each jaw is hinged to the lower edge of the cranium at the side of the rnouth by two ball- and-socket hinges in such a rnanner that, when in action, it swings outward and inward on a lengthwise axis. The cutting edges are provided with a number of strong teeth (Fig. 53), the points of which corne together or slide past each other when the jaws are closed. The large complex organ that projects behind or below the rnouth like a thick under lip (Fig. 5 OE C) is a com- bination of three parts that are separate in other insects. These are the second pair of soif jaw appendages, called maxillae (B, C, Mx), and the true under lip, or labium (Lb). The rnost important part of this cornposite struc- ture in the caterpillar, however, is a hollow spine (A, B, C, Spt) pointed downward and backward frorn the end of the labiurn. This is the spinneret. Frorn it issues the silk thread with which the caterpillar weaves its tent and its cocoon. [ OE86 ] THE CATERPILI.AR AND THE MOTH The fresh silk is a liquid formed in two long, tubular glands extending far back from the head into the bodv of the caterpillar (Fig. 154 , 8kGl). The middle part of each tube is enlarged to serve as a reservoir where the silk liquid may accumulate (Fig. 55 A, Res); the anterior narrowed part constitutes the duct (Da), and the ducts FIG. I. The silk glands and spinning organs of the tent caterpillar A, the silk-forming organs, consisting of a pair of tubular glands (GI, GI), each enlarging into a reservoir (Res), and opening through a long duct (Dct) into the silk press (Pr), with a pair of accessory glands (glands of Filippi, GIF) opening into the ducts B, side view of the hypopharynx (Hphy) with terminal parts of right maxilla (Mx) and labium (Lb) attached, showing the silk press (Pr), its muscles, and the ducts (Dot) opening into it, and the spinneret (,çpt) through which the silk is discharged from the press C, upper view of the silk press (Pr), showing the four sets of muscles (Mcls) inserted on its walls and on the rod-like raphe (Rph) in its roof D, side view of the silk press, spinneret, raphe, and muscles E, cross-section of the silk press, showing its cavity, or lumen (Lum), which is expanded by the contraction of the muscles [ 87 ] INSECTS from the two glands unite in a median thick-walled sac known as the silk press (Pr), which opens to the exterior through the spinneret. Two small accessory glands, which look like bunches of grapes and which are sometimes called the glands of Filippi (Fig. 55 A, B, C, G/F), open into the silk ducts near their front ends. The relation of the silk ducts and the silk press to the spinneret is seen in the side view of the terminal parts of the labium and the left maxilla, given at B of Figure 55- The silk press (Pr) is apparently an organ for regulating the flow of the liquid silk material into the spinneret. It Flç. 156. The alimentary canal of the tent cater- pillar A, belote feeding. B, after feeding. Cr, crop; Int, in- testine; Mal, Malpighian tubules; OE, oesophagus; Rect, rectum; lent, ventri- culus has been supposed, too, that it gives form and thickness to the thread, but the liquid material has still to pass through the rigid tube of the spinneret. The cut end of the press, given at E of Figure 55, shows the crescent form of the cavitv (Lum) in cross- section, and the thickening in its roof (Rph), called the raphe. Mus- cles (Mcls) inserted on the raphe and on the sides of the press serve to enlarge the cavity of the press by lifting the infolded roof. The four sets of these muscles in the tent caterpillar are shown at Ç. The dilation of the press sucks the liquid silk into the cavitv through the ducts from the reservoirs, and when the muscles relax, the elastic roof springs back and exerts a pressure on the silk material, which forces the latter through the tube of the spinneret. The continuous passageway from the ducts through [ 88 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH the press and into the spinneret is seen from the side at D. The silk liquid is gummy and adheres tightl.v to what- ever it touches, while at the saine time it hardens rapidl.v and becomes a tough, inelastic thread as it is drawn out of the spinneret when the caterpillar swings its head away from the point of attachment. The mouth of the caterpillar lies between the jaws and the lips. It opens into a short gullet, or oesophaXus, which, with the pharynx, constitutes the first part of the alimen- tarv canal (Fig. 154 ' Pli.v, Oe). The rest of the canal is a wic{e tube occup.ving most of the space within the cater- pillar's bodv and is divided into the trop (Cr), the stomach, or ventricul'us (l'ent), and the ilttestMe (lt). The crop is a sac for receiving the food and varies in size according to the amount of food it contains (Fig. 56 A, B, Cri. The stomach (Peu) is the largest part of the canal. I ts walls are loose and wrinkled when it is empty, or smooth and tense when it is full. The in- testine (Int) consists of three divi- sions, a short part just back of the stomach, a larger middle part, and a saclike end part called the rectum (Rect). Six long tubes (Mal) are wrapped in manv colis about the in- testine and run iorward and back in long loops over the rear hall of the stomach. The three on each side unite into a short basal tube, which opens into the first part of the intes- tine. The terminal partsofthe tubes are coiled inside the muscular coat Fro.  57- Crystals from the Malpighian tubules of the tent caterpillar, which are ejected into the walls of the cocoon of the rectum. These tubes are the Malpighian tubules. When a tent caterpillar goes out to feed, the fore part of its body is sort and flabbv; when it returns to the tent the saine part is tight and firm. This is because the tent caterpillar carries its dinner home in its crop, digests it [ =89 ] INSECTS slowlv while in the tent, and then goes out for more when the crop is empty. It is quite easy to tell by feeling one of these caterpillars whether itis hungry or hot. The empty, contracted crop is a small bag contained in the first three segments of the body (Fig. 56 A, Cr); but the full crop stretches out to a long cylinder like a sausage, filling the first six segments of the body fB, Cr), its rear end sunken into the stomach, and its front end pressed against the back of the head. The fresh food in the crop consists of a sort, pulpy mass of leaf ffagments. As this is passed into the stomach, the crop contracts and the stomach expands, and the caterpillar's center of gravity is shifted backward with the food burden. As the stomach becomes empty there ac- cunulates in it a dark-brown liquid, and it becomes in- flated with bubbles of gas. When the caterpillar goes to its meals both crop and stomach are sometimes empty, but usua]]v the stomach still contains some food besides an abundance of the brown liquid and numerous gas bubbles. The refuse that accumulates in the middle sec- tion of the intestine is subjected to pressure bv the mus- cles of the intestinal wall, and is here molded into a pellet which retains the imprint of the constrictions and pouches of this part of the intestine and looks like a small mulberrv when passed on into the rectum and fina!lv extruded from the body. The alimentarv canal is a tube ruade of a single layer of cells extending through the bodv; but its outer surface, that toward the body cavity, is covered by a muscle layer of lengthwise and crosswise fibers, which cause the more- ment of the food through the canal. The gullet and crop and the intestine are lined internally with a thin cuticula continuous with that covering the surface of the body, and these linings are shed with the bodv cuticula every rime the caterpillar molts. The Malpighian tubules (Figs. 54, 56 A, Mal), being the kidneys of insects, are excretory organs that remove [ 9 o ] THE CATERPII.IAR AND THE MOTH from the blood the waste products containing nitrogen, and discharge them into the intestine along with the waste parts of the food from the stomach. Ordinarilv the iXlal- pighian tubules are of a whitish color, but just'before the tent caterpillar is readv to spin its cocoon thev become congested with a brig[at vellow substance, l.;nder th'e mcroscope this is seen to consist of masses of square, oblong, and rod-shaped crvstals (Fig. 57)- At this rime the caterpillar has ceased to feed and the alimentary canal contains no food or food refuse. The intestine, however, FIG. ! ç8. A piece of the fat-body of the rail weborm a, a, globules of fatty oil in the cells; J)«, N«, nuclei of the cells becomes filled with the vellow mass from the Malpighian tubules; and this is the material with which the tent caterpillar plasters the walls of its cocoon, giving them their yellowish color and stiffened texture. The vellow powder of the cocoon, therefore, consists of the cvstals from the Malpighian tubules. We now corne to the question of why the caterpillar eats so much. It is ahnost equivalent to asking, "\Vhy is a caterpillar?" The caterpillar is the principal feeding stage in the insect's lire; eating is its business, its reason for being a caterpillar. It eats hot onlv to build up its own organs, manv of which are to be broken down to furnish building aterial for those of the moth, but it eats also to store up within its body certain materials in excess of its own needs, which likewise will contribute to the growth of the moth. [9  ] INSECTS The most abundant of the food reserves stored by the caterpillar is fat. With insects, however, fat does hot accumulate among the muscles and beneath the skin. sects do hot become "fat" in external appearance. Their fatty products are held in a special organ called thefat- bodv. The fat tissue of a caterpillar consists of many small, fiat, irregular masses of fat-containing cells scattered ail through the body cavity, some of the masses adhering in chains and sheets forming a loose open network about the alimentary canal, others being distributed against the muscle layers and between the muscles and the body wall. The cells composing the tissue vary much in size and shape, but they are always closely adherent, and in fresh material itis often difficult to distinguish the cell bound- aries. Specimens prepared and stained for microscopic examination, however, show distinctly the cellular struc- ture (Fig. I58). Each cell contains a darkly-stained nucleus (Nu), but the nuclei are seen only where they lie in the plane of the section. The protoplasmic area about the nucleus in each cell appears to be occupied mostly with hollow cavities of various sizes (a), but in life each cavity contains a small globule of fatty oil. The proto- plasmic material between the oil globules contains also glycogen, or animal starch, as can be shown by staining with iodine. Both fat and glycogen are energy-forming compounds, and their presence in the fat cells of the caterpillar shows that the fat-body serves as a storage organ for these materials during the larval life. The stored fat and glycogen will be consumed during the period of metamorphosis, when the insect is deprived of the power of feeding and receives no further nourishment from the alimentary canal. The transformation processes will then depend upon the food materials that the caterpillar has stored in its own body; and the success of the pupal meta- morphosis will depend in large measure on the quantity of these food reserves. A starved caterpillar, therefore, [ 9  ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH is likely to be unable to accomplish its transformation, or it will produce a dwarfed or an imperfect adult. How THE CATERPILLAR BECOMES A IOTH A short rime before the caterpillar is ready to spin its cocoon, it ceases feeding. Its body, as we have just learned, contains now an abundance of energy-giving sub- stances stored in the cells of its fat tissue. When the work of constructing the cocoon is started, the alimentary canal is devoid of food material, the crop is contracted to a narrow cylinder, and the stomach is shrunken and flabby. The stomach, however, contains a mass of sort, orange- brown substance which, when examined under the micro- scope, is round to consist, hot of plant tissue, but of animal cdls; it is, in fact, the cellular lining of the caterpillar's stomach which bas already been cast off into the cavity of the stomach. The latter is now provided with a new cell wall. The shedding of the old stomach wall marks the first stage in the dismantling of the caterpillar; it is the beginning of the pupal metamorphosis which will convert the caterpillar into the moth. The new stomach wall will first digest and absorb the débris of the old, in order to conserve its proteid materials for the constructive work of the pupa, and it will then itself become transformed into the stomach of the moth. After the caterpillar bas shut itself into the cocoon, its life as a caterpillar is almost ended. Its external appear- ance is alreadv much altered by the contraction of the bodv and the "loss of the hairv covering, and during the next three or four days a furter characteristic change of form takes place. As the bodv continues to shorten, the first three segments become crowded together; but the abdomen swells out, while the abdominal legs are re- tracted until thev all but disappear. The creature is now (Fig. I59 B) onl." half the length of the active caterpillar (A), and it would scarcely be recognized as the saine in- dividual that so recently spun itself into the cocoon. l "-93 ] INSECTS During the progress of change in the external form, the caterpillar gradually loses the power of movement. The resultant inactive period in an insect's lire, immediately preceding the visible change to the pupa, is called the A."  .g= Fie,. x9. Transformation of the tent caterpH|ar into the moth [ :94 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH prepupal stage of the larva. The insect in the prepupal stage bas suffered no change in external structure, it still wears the larval skin, and its visible difference f?om the active larva is a mere alteration in form. Internally, how- ever, important reconstructive processes are now taking place. The internal activities of reconstruction, which bring about the pupal metamorphosis of the larva to the adult, begin at the head end of the insect and progress poste- riorly. They are preceded bv a loosening and subsequent detachment of the larval cuticula from rhe cellular layer of the skin, or epidermis, beneath it. The latter, known also as the h)'podermis, freed now from restraint, enters a period of rapid growth. On the head, the head walls are remodeled and take on a new form, and new antennae and new mouth parts are produced. The new structures bave no regard for the forms of the old, though each is pro- duced from a part of the corresponding larval organ. The new antennae, for example, are formed from the larval antennae, but the antennae of the moth are to be much larger than those of the caterpillar. Only the tip, there- fore, of each new organ can be formed within the cuticular sheath of the old; the base pushes inward, and rhe don- gating shaft folds against the face of the newly forming head. The saine thing is true of the maxillae and labium, but in the case of the mandibles the procedure is simpler, for the jaws are to be reduced in the moth. The epi- dermal core of each mandible, therefore, simply shrinks within the cuticular sheath of the larval organ, leaving the cavity of the latter almost empty. As the separation of the cuticula from the epidermis progresses over the region of the thorax and a free space is created between the two layers, the wing buds, which heretofore bave been turned inside the caterpillar's body, now evert and corne to be external appendages of the pupal body though still covered by the curicula of the larva (Fig. 59 C, I/es, I¢"a). The legs of the moth pupa are [ 295 ] INSECTS formed in the saine way as are the antennae and the mouth parts, that is, they are developed from the epidermis of the corresponding larval legs; but, by reason of their creased size, they are forced to bend upward against the sides of the bodv of the pupa, and, when fully formed, each is round to bave onlv its terminal part within the cuticular sheath of the leg of the caterpillar. From the thorax, the loosening of the cuticula spreads backward over the abdomen, until at last the entire insect lies ffee within the cuticular skin of the caterpillar. The so-called prepupal period of the caterpillar, therefore, is scarcelv to be regarded as a trulv larval stage of the in- sect. it is still clothed in the larval cuticula, and retains externallv ail the structural characters of the larva; but the creature itself is ira a first growth period of the pupal stage, and may appropriately be designated a propupa. When the cuticula is separated flore the epidermis ail over the body, it may be cut open and taken off without injury to the wearer. The latter, now a propupa (Fig. 59 C), is then discovered to be a thing entirely different in appearance flore the caterpillar. It bas a small head bent downward, a thoracic region of three segments, and a large abdomen. The head bears the mouth parts and a pair of large antennae (4nt) ; the thorax carries the wings (IFs, II.') and the legs (L), which latter are much longer than those of the caterpillar, but, being folded beneath the wings, only their ends are visible in side view. The abdomen consists of ten segments and bas lost ail ves- tiges of the abdominal legs of the caterpillar (A, .4L). Many important changes bave taken place ira the form and structure of the head and in the appendages about the mouth during the change from the caterpillar to the propupa, as may be seen by comparing Figure 59 H, with Figure I5'. Most of the lateral areas of the caterpillar's head (Fig. 5), including the region of the six small eyes on each side, have been converted into the two huge eye areas of the pupa (Fig. I59 H, E), which cover the develop- [ 9 6 ] THE CATERPII.LAR AND THE MOTH ing compound eves of the adult. The antennae (.4nt), as alreadv noted, Jaave increased greatly in size, and thev show evidence of their future multiple segmentation. The upper lip, or labrum (Lin), on the other hand, is much smaller in the propupa than in the caterpillar, and the great biting jaws of the caterpillar are reduced to mere rudiments in the propupa (Md), while the spinneret (Fig. 152 , 5'pt) is gone entirely. The labium and the two maxillae are longer and more distinct from each other in the propupa (Fig. 159 H, Lb, Mx) than in the caterpillar, and their parts are somewhat more simplified. The labium bears two prominent palpi (LbPlp). The remodeling in the external form .of the insect pro- ceeds from particular groups of cells in the epidermis, cells that bave remained inactive since the time of the embryo, and which, as a consequence, retain an unused vitalitv. These groups of regenerative epidermal cells, which'are the histoblasts, or imaginal discs, of the body wall, bave hot been particularly studied in the caterpillar; but in certain other insects thev have been round to occur in each segment, typically a pair of them on each side of the back: and a pair on each side of the ventral surface. At the beginning of metamorphosis, as the larval cuticula separates from the epidermis, the cells of the discs multiply and spread from their several centers, and the areas newlv formed bv them takeon the contour and structure of the pupa ins{ead of that of the larva. The old cells of the larval epidermis, which have reached the limits of their growing powers and are now in a state of senescence, give wav before the advancing ranks of invading cells; their tisues go into dissolution and are absorbed into the body. The new epidermal areas finallv meet and unite, and to- gether cons-titute the body wallof the pupa. While the new epidermis is giving external form to the pupa beneath the larval cuticula, its cells are generating a new pupal cuticula. As long as the latter is sort and plastic the cell growth may proceed, but when the cutic- [ =97 ] INSECTS ular substance begins to harden; growth ceases, and the external form of the insect will henceforth show no further change in its structural features. The propupa of the nnoth rennains for several days a soft-skinned creat'ure I Fig. 59 C) inside the cuticula of the larva, during which tinne its body contracts in size and its wings, legs, antennae, and nnaxilloe lengthen. The wings are flattened against the sides of the body, and the other appendages are applied close to the under surface. Then a gluelike substance is exuded fronn the body wall, which fixes the nnennbers in their positions and soon dries into a hard coating or glaze over the body and appendages, giving to the whole a shell-like covering. In this way the sort propupa (C beconnes a chrvsalis (D). Finally, the old caterpillar skin splits along the back of the first two body segnnents, over the top of the head, and down the right side of the facial triangle. The p.upa now quickly wriggles out of the enclosing skin and pushes the latter over the rear extrennity of its body into the end of the cocoon, where it rennains as a shriveled mass, the last evidence of the caterpillar. The pupa, or chrysalis, of the tent caterpillar I Fig. 59 D) is nnuch snnaller than the propupa (C), and its length is only about one-third that of the original cater- pillar (A). The color of the chrysalis is at first bright green on the fore parts, yellowish on the abdonnen, and usually nnore or less brown on the back. Soon, however, the color darkens until the front parts and the wings are purplish black, and the abdonnen purplish brown. Though the covering of the chrysalis is hard and rigid, the creature is still capable of a very active wriggling of the abdonnen, for three of its intersegnnental rings rennain flexible. By this provision the pupa is able to divest itself of the larval skin. The pupoe of sonne species of nnoths push thenn- selves partly out of the cocoon just before the tinne of transfornnation to the nnoth, and when the latter ennerges [ 9 8 ] THE CATERPII.LAR AND THE MOTH it leaves the pupal skin projecting from the mouth of the cocoon (Plate I2). Concurrent with the remodeling in the external form of the insect, other changes bave been taking place within the body. The first of the complicated metamorphic processes that affect the inner organs occurs in the stomach, where, as we have already observed, the inner wall is cast off at about the time that the caterpillar begins the spinning of its cocoon. This shedding of the stomach lining is quite a different thing from the molting of an external cuticula, for the StOlnach wall is a cellular tissue. Furthermore, wherever other cell lavers are discarded, as in the case of the epidermis, the cells are absorbed Mto the body cat, ity. A new stomach wall is generated usually from groups of small cells that originally lay outside the old wall and were retained when the latter was cast off. These cells, as do the imaginal discs of the epidermis, form a new lining.to the stomach and give a new shape to this organ, which in the adult insect mav be quite different from that of the larva. The sheddin of the stomach wall is hot necessarily a part of the metamorphosis, for in some insects and in certain other related animals, it is said, the stomach epithelium as well as the cuticular lining is shed and renewed with each molt of the bodv wall. The parts of the alimentarv canal that lie before and behind the stomach, that is, the oesophagus and crop (Fig. 154, Oe, Cr) and the intestine (It), formed in the embrvo as ingrowths of the bodv. wall, are regenerated from groups of cells in their walls in the saine manner as is the epidermis itself, the old cells being absorbed into the bodv. The cuticular linings of these parts are shed with the Cuticula of the bodv wall at the time of the molt. The complete alimentarv canal of the moth is verv different from that of the caterpillar, as will be shown in the next section of this chapter/Fig. 164). The walls of the Malpighian tubules are said to be regenerated in some insects, but the tubules do hot change [ =99 ] INSECTS much in form in the moth, and they continue their ex- cretorv function during the pupal stage. The silk glands of the caterpillar are greatly reduced in size, and their ducts, as a consequence of the suppression of the spinneret, open at the base of the labium within the entrance to the mouth. lnternal organs that bave hot been specially modified in their development for the purposes of the larva, in- c]uding usually the nervous system, the heart, the respira- tory tubes, and the reproductive organs, surfer little if any disntegration in their tissues; they simply grow to the mature form, which may be much more elaborate than that of the larva, bv a resumption of the ordinary processes of development. The nervous system, and particularly the tracheal system, however, in some insects undergo much reconstruction between the larval and the adult stages. A most important part of the reconstruction between the larva and the adult has to do with the muscle system. Since, in its two active stages, the insect leads usually two verv different lires, the mechanism of locomotion is likely to be radicaliv different in the larva and in the adult; and in such cases the transformation of the insect will involve particularly a thorough reorganization of the musculature. Most larvae have acquired an elaborate system of speciai muscles for their own use because they have adopted a wormlike mode of progression. On the other hand, the adults have need of certain muscles, par- ticularlv those of the wings, which would be only an en- cumbrance to a larva. Consequently, muscles needed only by the adult are suppressed in the larval stage, and the special muscles of the larva must be cleared away during the pupal stage. The metamorphosis in the muscle sys- rem, therefore, varies much in different insects according to the mechanical difference between the larva and the aduit. The purely larval muscles that are to be discarded when [3ool THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH their purpose has been accomplished go into a state of dis- solution during the pupal period. The débris of their tissues is thrown into the blood, from which it is later ab- sorbed as nutriment by the newly forming organs. The caterpillar has a very elaborate system of muscles forming a complicated network of fibers against the inner surface of the body wall, some running longitudinally, others transversely, and still others obliquely. Most of the transverse and oblique fibers are hOt retained in the moth, and if specimens of those muscles are examined during the early part of the pupal period they are seen to have a weak and abnormal appearance; the structure typical of healthy muscle tissue is obscure or indistinctly evident in them, and in places they are covered with groups of free oral cells. These cells are probably p/mgocytes. A phagocyte is a blood corpuscle that destroys foreign proteid bodies in the blood, or any unhealthy tissue of the body. It is hot probable that the insect phagocytes are the active cause of the destruction of the larval tissues, but they do engulf and digest particles of the degenerating tissues. They are present in large numbers in some insects during metamorphosis, and are scarce or lacking in others. The decadent state of the larval tissues that have passed their period of activity lays them open to the attack of the phagocytes, but these tissues will go into dissolution by the solvent powers of the blood alone. Active, healthy tissues are always immune from phagocytes. Some of the larval muscles may go over intact to the adult stage, and others may require only a remodeling or an addition of fibers to make them serviceable for the purposes of the adult. The adult muscles that are com- pletely suppressed during the larval stage appear to be generated anew during the pupal stage. There is a dif- ference of opinion among investigators as to how the new muscles are developed, but it is probable that they take their origin from the saine tissues that built up the larval muscles. [ 3Ol ] INSECTS The development of the internal organs proceeds with- out interruption from the beginning of the propupal period until the adult organs are c.ompleted at the end ofthe pupal stage. The external parts, however, do hot make a con- tinuous growth. After reaching a certain stage of de- velopment, the form of the body wall and of the append- ages is fixed by the hardening of the new cuticula on their outer surfaces. In this stage, therefore, thev must remain, and the half-mature form attained is that char- acteristic of the pupa. The final development of the body wall and the appendages of the adult is accomplished by a second separation of the epidermis from the cuticula, which allows the cellular layers, now protected by the pupal cuticula, to go through a second period of growth during the pupal stage. This pupal period of growth at last results in the perfection of the external characters of the adult, which are in turn fixed by the formation of the adult cuticula. In the meantime, the new muscles that are to be retained have become anchored at their ends into the new cuticula, and the mechanism of the adult insect is ready for action. The perfect insect, cramped within the pupal shell, has now only to await the proper time for its emergence. Through the whole period of metamorphosis, the insect must depend on its internal resources for food materials. Oxygen it can obtain bv the usual method, for its respira- tory system remains functional; but in the matter of food it is in a state of complete blockade. The pupa bas two sources of nourishment: first., the food reserves stored in the cells of the fat-body; second, the materials resulting from the breaking down of the larval tissues, which are scattered in the blood and eventually absorbed. The fat cells, at the beginning of metamorphosis in some insects, give up most of their stored fat and glycogen; and they now become filled with small granules of proteid matter. The proteid granules are probably elaborated in the fat cells from the absorbed detritus of the larval [ 3o: l THE CATERPII.LAR AND THE MOTH organs by means of enzymes produced in the nuclei of the cells. The fat cells thus take on the function of a stomach, converting the materials dissolved in the blood into forms that the growing tissues can assimilate. During this time the masses of fat tissue that compose the fat-body of the "r<>:,.ç::o " :-:oE--: :¢.,' / e I. ,/"   é "... " "/""   O- " .- --.--..:»" :e«::.a«  <çi::.-:: O Fro. 6o. Bodies in the blood of a young pupa of the tent cterpillar a, a free fat cell, containing large oily fat globules, and small proteid granules; b, r, fat cells in dissolution; d, froe proteid granules in the blœed, and e, fat globules liberat from the disintegrating fat cells;f, blœed corpuscles larva have broken up into free cells, and these cells, vacuolated with oii globules and later charged with pro- teid granules, now fill the blood. The interior of the moth pupa, or chrysalis, shortly after the larval skin is shed, contains a thick, yellow, creamv liquid. In it there mav be discovered, however, the ali'mentarv tract, the nervous system, and the tracheal tubes, the latter filled with air; but all these parts are so soft and delicate that thev can scarcelv be studied by ordinarv methods of dissecion. The creamy pulp of the pupa's body, when examined under the microscope, is seen to consist of a clear, pale, amber-vellowish liquid full of small bodies of various sizes (.1Oig. 6o), which give it the opaque appearance and thick consistencv. The liquid medium is the blood, or bodv lymph. Tle largest bodies in it are free fat cells (a); sma'ller ones are probably blood corpuscles (f); and the [303] INSECTS finest matter consists of great quantities of minute grains (d) floating about separately or adhering in irregular masses. Besides these etements there are many droplets of oil (e), recognizable by their smooth spherical outlines and golden-brown color. The fat cells are mostlv irregu- larly ovoid or elliptical in shape; their protoplasm is filled with large and small oil globules, and contains also masses of fine granules like those floating free in the blood. These granules are the protoplasmic substances formed within the fat cells. Many of the cells have irregular or broken out- lines (b, c), as if their outer walls had been partly dis- solved, and the contents of such cells appear to be escap- ing from them. In fact, manv are clearly in a state of dis- solution, discharging both thëir oil globules and their pro- teid inclusions into the blood; and it is clear that the similar matter scattered so profusely through the blood liquid has corne from fat cells that have alreadv disin- tegrated. Ail these materials will gradually be consumed in the building of the tissues of the adult, the organs of which are now in process of formation. In Chapter IV we learned that every animal consists of a body, or soma, formed of cells that are differentiated from the germ cells usually at an early stage of develop- ment. The function of the soma is to give the germ cells the best chance of accomplishing their purpose. An insect that goes through two active forms during its life, a larval and an adult form, differs from other animais in having a do«ble soma. The entire organism, of course, is hot double, for, as we bave just seen in the study of the caterpillar, many of the more vital organs are continuous from the larva to the adult; but there is a group of organs which, after reaching a definite form of development in the larval stage, at the end of this stage virtually die and go into dissolution, while a new set of tissues develops into new organs or into new tissues replacing those that have been lost. The groups of somatic cells that-form the tissues and organs that undergo a metamorphosis, there- [304] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH fore, are differentiated in the embryo into two sets of cells, one set of which will form the special organs of the larva, while those of the other will remain dormant during the larval life to form the adult organs when the larval cells have completed their functions. The cells of the second set carry the hereditary influences that will cause them to develop into the original, or ancestral, form of the species; the cells of the first set produce the temporary larval form, which mav retain certain primitive characters from the embryonic stage, but which does not represent an ancestral form in the evolution of the species. An extreme case of anything is always more easily understood when we can trace it back to something simple, or link it up with something familiar. The metamorphosis of insects appears to be one of the great mvsteries of nature, but reduced to its simplest terres it becomes only an exaggerated case of a temporary growth in certain groups of cells to form something of use to the young, which disappears by resorption when the occasion for its use is past. Innumerable simple cases of this kind might be cited from insects; but there is a familiar case of well- developed metamorphosis even in our own growth, namely, the temporary development of the milk teeth and their later substitution by the adult teeth. If a similar process of double growth from the somatic cells had been carried to other organs, we ourselves should have a meta- morphosis entirely comparable with that of insects. TIaE Mo'rla For three weeks or a little longer the processes of re- construction go on within the pupa of the tent caterpillar, and then the creature that was a caterpillar breaks through its coverings and appears in the form and costume of a moth (Fig. I59 J). The pupal shell splits open on the forward part of the back (E) to allow the moth to emerge, but the latter then only finds itself face to face with the wall of the cocoon. It has left behind its cutting instru- [ 305 ] INSECTS ments, the mandibles, with its discarded overalls; but it bas turned chemist and needs no tools. The glands that furnished the silk for the larva bave shrunken in size and bave taken on a new function; they now secrete a clear liquid that oozes out of the mouth of the moth and acts as a solvent on the adhesive surfaces of the cocoon threads. The strands thus moistened are soon loosened from one another suflqcientlv to allow the moth to poke its head through the cocoon wall and force a hole large enough to permit of its escape. The liquid from the mouth of the moth turns the silk of the cocoon brown, and the lips of the emergence hole are alwavs stained the saine color - evidence that it is this liquit that softens the silk--and the fraved edges of the hole left in the cocoon of the tent caterpillar show manv loose ends of threads broken by the moth in its exit. The most conspictu)us features of the moth (Fig. 6) are its furrv covering of hairlike scales and its wings. The wings are short when the insect first emerges from its cocoon (Fig. 159 J), but they quickly expand to normal length and are then folded over the back IFig. 16 A). The colors of the moths of the tent caterpillar are various shades of reddish-brown with two pale bands obliquely crossing the wings (Plate 14 G, H). The female moth (Plate 4 H, Fig. 16 B) is somewhat larger than the maie, ber body being a little over three-fourths of an inch in length, and the expanded wings one and three-fourths inches across. The tent caterpillars perform so thoroughly their dutv of eating that the moths have little need of more food. Consequently the moths are hot encumbered with imple- ments of feeding. The mandibles, which were such large and important organs in the caterpillar (Fig. 52, Md) but which shrank to a rudimentary condition in the pro- pupa (Fig. I59 H, J/d), are gone entirely in the moth (Fig. I6). The maxillae, which were fairly long lobes in the propupa (Fig. 59 H, Mx), have likewise been [ 306 ] THE CATERPILI.AR AND THE MOTH reduced to mere rudiments in the adult, where they appear as two insignificant though movable knobs (Fig. 162, Mx). The median part of the labium has been reduced to almost nothing in the moth; but the labial palpi (LbPlp) are long and three-segmented, and when normally covered with hairlike scales thev form two conspicuous feathery brushes that project in front of the face. The mouth parts of the tent caterpillar moth are hOt typical of these organs of moths and butterflies in gen- Fro. 6. Moths ofthe tent caterpillar, Malacosoma americana. (A little greater than natural size) eral, for most of these insects are provided with a long proboscis bv means of which they are able to feed on liquids. Evervone is familiar with the large humming- bird moths, or'hawk moths, that are to be seen on sumnaer evenings as thev dart from flower to flower, thrusting into each corolla a long tube uncoiled from beneath the head; and we have ail seen the sunlight-loving butterflies carelesslv flitting over the flower beds, alighting here and there on attractive blooms to sip the sweet liquid from the nectar cups. Moths and butterflies carry the proboscis tightly coiled, like a tinv watch spring (Fig. I63 A, Prb), be- neath the head and just behind the mouth. It can be unwound and extended (B, Prb) whenever the insect wants to extract a drop of nectar from the depths of a [ 307 ] INSECTS  -- flower corolla, or when it  would merely take a drink of water or other liquid. The proboscis consists of the greatly lengthened maxillae firmlv attached to each other by dovetailed grooves and • ", ridges. The inner face of tlf / each maxilla is hollowed in the form of a groove run-  kQ -Z//IP ning its entire length' and the two apposed grooves FIG. 162. Facial view of the head of between the united maxillae the tent caterpillar moth, with cover- are converted into a central ing scales removed, and antennae cut channel of the proboscis. off near their bases tl,,t, base of antenna; E, compound The two blades of the pro- eye; Lb, labium; LbPIp, labial palpus; boscis spring from the sides Lm, labrum;Mth, mouth;Mx, maxilla of the mouth. The first part of the alimentary canal just back of the mouth is transformed into a bulblike sucking apparatus. The Fro. 163. Head and mouth parts of the peach borer moth A, side view. B, three-quarter facial view. /lnt, basal part of antenna; E, compound eye; LbPlp, labial palpus; O, ocellus; Prb, proboscis l 308 ] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH upper wall of the structure is ordinarily collapsed into the cavity of the bulb, but itis capable of being lifted by strong muscles inserted upon it from the walls of the head. The alternate opening and closing of the bulb sucks the liquid food up through the tube of the pro- boscis and forces it back into the gullet. The moths and butterflies are thus sucking insects, as are the aphids and cicadas, but they are hot provided with piercing organs, though some species have a rasp at the end of the pro- boscis which is said to enable them to obtain juices from soft-skinned fruits. ,Vith the tent caterpillar, it is interesting to note, the maxillae are much longer in the pupa (Fig. I59 I, Mx) than thev are in either the caterpillar or the adult moth (Fig. I62, Mx), as if nature had intended the tent cater- pillar moth to have a proboscis like that of other moths, but had then changed her mind. The real meaning of this is that the moths of the present-day tent cater- pillars are descended from ancestors that had a functional proboscis in the adult stage like that of other moths, and that the reduction of the proboscis of the modern moths has taken place in rimes so recent that the organ has hot vet been suppressed to the saine degree in the pupa. The alimentary tract of the tent caterpillar moth is verv different from that of the caterpillar. In the cater- piller, the organ consists of three principal parts (Fig. J64 A), the first comprising the oesophagus (Oe) and the crop (.Cr), the second being the stomach, or ventriculus (lZent), and the third the intestine (Int). In an adult moth that is almost mature, but which is still inside the pupal shell (B), the oesophagus bas become a long narrow tube IOe) at the rear end of which the crop forms a small sac (Cr) projecting upward, which mav contain a bubble of gas. The stomach has contracted to a pear-shaped bag with verv thin transparent walls, and is usually filled with a t{ark-brown liquid. The intestine has changed radically in form, for it now consists of a long, slender, [ 309 ] INSECTS tubular part, the small intestine (SDt), and of a great terminal receptacle, the rectum (Rert), filled with a mass of soft orange-colored marrer. In the fully-matured insect (C), after it has escaped from the cocoon, still fu,'ther C  8Int FiG. I64. Transformation in the form of the alimentary canal of the tent caterpillar from the larva to the adult moth A, alimentary canal of the caterpillar. B, the saine of the pupa. C, the saine of the moth Cr, crop; Int, intestine; Mal, Malpighian tubules (hOt shown full length); Oe, oesophagus; Rect, rectum; Slnt, small intestine; lent, centriculus alterations bave taken place. The crop sac (Cr) is now greatly distended into a spherical vesicle tensely filled wlth gas--air, probably, that the moth has swallowed, perhaps to aid it in breaking the pupal shell, for there are sometlmes small bubbles also in the tubular oesophagus. [31o] THE CATERPII.I.AR AND THE MOTH The stomach is contracted to a mere remnant of its former size (A, l'ent), and its walls are thrown into thick corrugations. The intestine (SI,t) is about the saine as in the earlier stage of the moth (B). Since the moth of the tent caterpillar probably eats nothing, it has little use for a stomach. The intestine, however, must serve as an outlet for the lalpighian tubules (Mal), since the latter remain functional through the pupal stage. The secretion of the tubules contains great numbers of minute spherical crystals, which accunqu- late in the rectal sac (Rect) where thev form the orange- colored mass contained in this organ and discharged as soon as the moth leaves the cocoon. Most of the maie moths of the tent caterpillar emerge from the cocoons several davs in advance of the females. At this time their bodies contain an abundance of fat which fills the cells of the fat tissue as droplets of oil. This fat is probably an energy-forming reserve which the maie moth inherits from the caterpillar, for the internal reproductive organs are hOt vet fullv developed and do hOt become functional until "about the time the females are out of their cocoons. The bodies of the female tent caterpillar moths, on the other hand, contain little or no fat tissue; but each female is fully matured when she emerges from the cocoon, and ber ovaries are full of ripe eggs readv to be laid as mon as the fertilizing element is received from the male (Fig. I65, Or). The spermatozoa will be stored in a special recep- tacle, the spermatheca (Spm), which is connected with the exit duct of the ovaries (I'Ç¢) by a short tube. Each egg is then fertilized as it issues from the oviduct. The ma- terial that will form the covering of the eggs when laid is a clear, brown liquid contained in two great sacs (Fig. 65, Res) that open into the end of the median oviduct (lg). Each sac is the reservoir of a long tubular gland (C/G/). The liquid must be somehow mixed with air when it is discharged over the eggs to give the egg covering [311] IN  ECTS its ffothy texture. It soon sets into a jellylike substance, then becomes firm and elastic like soif rubber, and finally turns drv and brittle. The d'are of the egg laying depends on the latitude of the region the moths inhabit, varying flore the middle Spm Bcpx Dov VF b An Fro. 16 5. The female reproductive organs of the moth of the tent caterpillar, as seen from the left side a, external opening of the bursa copulatrix; .4n, anus; b, opening of the vagina; Bcpx, bursa copulatrix; CIGI, colleterial glands, which form the substance of the egg covering; Dot', duct of the left ovary; upper ends of the ovarian tu bules; Rect, rectum; Res, reservoirs of the colleterial glands (CIGI); 8pro, spermatheca, a sac for the storage of the spermatozoa; ri. terminal strand of the ovary; I/g, vagina of Mav in the southern States to the end of June or later in the north. While the eggs will hot hatch until the fol- lowing spring, they nevertheless begin to develop at once, and within six weeks young caterpillars may be round fldly formed within them (Fig. 166 B). Ech little caterpillar has its head against the top of the shell and its body bent U-shaped, with the tail end turned a little to one side. The long hairs of the body are ail turned for- ward and form a rhin cushion about the poor creature, which for crimes yet uncommitted is sentenced to eight [3] THE CATERPILLAR AND THE MOTH months' solitary confinement in this most inhuman posi- tion. Yet, if artificially liberated, the prisoner takes no advantage of the freedom offered. TlSough it can move a little, it remains coiled (A) and will fold up again if forcibly straightened, thus asserting that it is more com- fortable than it looks. It is surprising that these infant caterpillars can remain inactive in their eggshells ail through the summer, when the warmth spurs the vitality of other species and speeds them up to their most rapid growth and development. External conditions in general appear to have much to do with regulating the lives of insects, and if the tent caterpillars in their eggs seem to give proof that the crea- tures are hOt entirely the slaves of environ- ment, the truth is probably that ail in- sects are hOt gov- erned bv the saine Fro. 166. The young tent caterpillar fully formed within the egg by the middle of summer A, the young caterpillar removed from the egg. B, the caterpillar in natural position within the egg conditions. We have seen that some of the grasshoppers and some of the aphids will hot complete their develop- ment except after being subjected to freezing tempera- tures, and so it probably is with the tent caterpillars-- it is hot warmth, but a period of cold that furnishes the condition necessary to the final completion of their de-- velopment. Whatever mav.be the secret source of their patience, however, the young tent caterpillars will bide their time through ail the heat of summer, the cold of winter, and hot till the buds of the cherry or apple leaves are ready to open the following spring will they awake and gnaw through the inclosing shells against which their faces have been pressing ail this while. [313] CHAPTER X MOSQUITOES AND FLIES TlqOIJGI-ITFUL persons are much given to pondering on what is to be the outcome of our present age of intensive mechanical development. Thinking, the writer holds, is ail right as a means of diverting the mind from other things, but those who make a practice or a profession of it should follow the example of that famous thinker of Rodin's, who has consistently preserved a most com- mendable silence as to the nature of his thoughts. We can all admire thinking in the abstract; it is the expression ofthoughts that disturbs us. So it is that we are troubled when the philosophers.warn us that the develo.pment of mechanical proficiency is hot synonymous with advance- ment of true civilization. However, it is hot for an entomologist to enter into a discussion of such matters, because an observer untrained in the study of human affairs is as likely as hot to get the impression that only a very small percentage of the present human population of the world is devoted to efficiency in things mechanical or otherwise. There is no better piece of advice for general observance than that which admonishes the cobbler to stick to his last, and the maxim certainly implies that the entomolo- gist should confine himself to his insects. However, we can hot help but remark how often parallelisms are to be discovered between things in the insect world and affairs in the human world. So, now, when we look to the insects for evidence of the effect of mechanical perfection, we observe with somewhat of a shock that those very insect 1341 MOSU1TOES AND FI.IES species which unquestionably have gone farthest along the road of mechanical eflïciencv bave produced little else commendable. In this class we would place the mos- quitoes and the flies; and who will say that either mosqui- toes or flies bave added anything to the comfort or enjoy- ment of the other creatures of the world? Reviewing brieflv the esthetic contributions of the major groups of insccts, we find that the grasshoppers bave produced a tribe of musicians; the sucking bugs bave evolved the cicada; the beetles bave given us the scarab, the glow-worm, and the firefly; the moths and butterflies have enriched the world with elegance and beauty; to the order of the wasps we are indebted for the honeybee. But, as for the flies, they bave generated only a great multitude of files, amongst which are included some of our most obnoxious insect pests. However, in nature study we do hot criticize; we derive our satisfaction from merely knowing things as they are. If out subject is mosquitoes and flies, we look for that which is of interest in the lires and structure of these insects. FLIES IN GENERAL The mosquitoes and the flies belong to trie saine ento- mological order. That which distinguishes them princi- pally as an order of insects is the possession of only one pair of wings (Fig. 67). Entomologists, for this reason, call the mosquitoes and files and ail related insects the Diptera, a word that signifies by its Greek components "two wings." Since nearly ail other winged insects have four wings, it is most probable that the ancestors of the winged insects, including the Diptera, had likewise two pairs of wings. The Diptera, therefore, are insects that bave become specialized primarily during their evolution by the loss of one pair of wings. We shall now proceed to show that the evolution of a two-winged condition from one of four wings bas been a [,315] INSECTS progress toward greater efficiencv in the mechanism of flight, and that the acme in this Il'ne has been attained by the files and mosquitoes. The truth of this contention will become apparent when we compare the relative development of the wings and the manner or effective- ness of flight in the several principal orders of insects. Fro. 16 7. A robber fly, showing the typical structure of any member of the order Diptera The files are two-winged insects, the hind wings belng reduced to a pair of knobbed stalks, the halteres (H1) It is most probable that when insects first acquired wings the two pairs were alike in both size and form. The termites (Fig. 168 A) afford a good example of in- sects in which the two pairs of wings are still almost identical. Though the termites are poor flyers, their weak- ness of flight is hot necessarilv to be attributed to the form of the wings, because their wing muscles are partially degenerate. The dragonflies (Fig. 58) are particularly strong flyers, and with them the two pairs of wings are but little different in size and form; but the dragonflies [316l MOSQUITOES AND FI.IES are provided with sets of highly developed wing muscles which are much more effective than those of other insects. From these examples, therefore, we can hot well judge of the mechanical eflîciencv of two pairs of equal wings moved by the equipment of muscles possessed by most " E1 C  Fro. 168. Evolution of the wings of insects A, wings of a termite, approximately the saine in size and shape. B, wings of a katydid, the hind wings are the principal organs of flight. C, wings of a beetle, the fore wings changed to protective sheIIs, elytra (El), covering the hind wings. D, wings of a hawk moth, united by the spine (f), which is held in a hook on under surface of fore wing. E, wings of the honeybee, held together by hooks (h) on edge of hind wing. F, wing of a blowfly, and the rudimentary hind wing, or halter (HI) [317] INSECTS insects; but it is evident that the majority of insects bave round it more advantageous to bave the fore and hind wings different in one wav or another. In the grasshoppers, it was o'bserved (Fig. 63) , the hind wings are expanded into broad membranous fans, while the fore wings are slenderer and of a leatherv texture. The saine is truc of the roaches (Fig. 53), the katydids IFig. 68 BI, and the crickets, except in special cases where the fore wings :tre enlarged in the maie to form musical organs (Fig. 39). In ail these insects the hind wings are the principal organs of flight. \Vhen hot in use thev are filded over the bodv beneath the fore wings, which latter serve then as protective coverings for the more delicate hind wings. In the beetles Figs. 37, 6 C) the hind wings :tre much largcr than the fore wings, and, as with the grasshppers and their kind, thev take the chier part in the function of ttight. The beetles, however, bave carried the idea of converting the fore wings into pro- tective shields fir the hind wings a little farther than have the grasshoppers; with them the fore wings are usuallv hard, shell-like flaps that fit together in a straight line over the back (Fig. 37 A), forming a case that completely conceals, ordinarilv, the membranous hind wings folded beneath them. Neither the grasshoppers nor the beetles :tre swift or partictdarly eflScient flyers, but thev appear to demonstrate that the ordinarv insect mechanism of flight is more effective with one pai of wings than with two. The buttertties and the moths use both pairs, of wings in flight; but with these insects, it is to be noted, thefront wings are always the larger IFig. 68 I)). The buttertties, with four broad wings, ttv well in their wav and are ca- pable of long-sustained tight, though the); are compara- tively slow goers. Some of the moths do much better in the marrer ofspeed, but it is round that the faster flying species bave the fore wings highly devcloped at the ex- pense of the hind wingsç and that the two wings on each side, furthermore, are voked together in such a manner as [3q ] MOSQUITOES AND FI.IES to insure their acting as a single wing (D). The moths clearlv show, therefore, as do the grasshoppers and the beetles, the eRiciency of a single pair of flight organs as opposed to two. "lhe moths, however, have attacked from a different angle the problem of converting their in- herited equipment of four wings into a two-wing mecha- nism--instead of suppressing the flight function in one pair of wings, they have given a mechanical unity to the two wings of each side, thus attaining functionally a two- winged condition. The wasps (Fig. 1,3,3) and bees, likewise, have evolved a two-winged machine from a four-wing mechanism on the principle of uniting the two wings on each side. The bees have adopted a particularly efficient method of securing the wings to each other, for each hind wing is fastened to the wing in front of it bv a series of small hooklets on its anterior rein that grasp a marginal thickening on the rear edge of the front wing (Fig. 1618 E). Moreover, the bees bave so highly perfected the unitv in the design of the wings that only on close inspectio] % it to be seen that there are actuallv two wings on each side of the body. Finally, the f]ies, including ail members of the order Diptera, have boldly executed the toaster stroke by com- pletely eliminating the second pair of wings from the mechanism of flight. The files are literally two-winged insects (Figs. 67, 68 F). Remnants of the hind wings, it is true, persist in the form of a pair of small stalks, each with a swelling at the end, projecting from behind the bases of the wings (Figs. 67, 68 F, HI). These stalks are known as "balancers," or halteres, and in their structure they preserve certain features that show them to be rudiments of wings. The giving over of the function of flight to the front pair of wings has necessarily involved a reconstruction in the entire framework and lmsculature of the thorax, and a study of the fly thorax gives a most interesting and in- structive lesson in the possibilities of adaptive evolution, [319] INSECTS showing how a primitive ancestral mechanism may be entirely remodeled to serve in a new capacity. If the flies had been specially "created," and hot evolved, their structure could bave been much more directly fitted to their needs. Itis hot only in the matter of wings and the method of flight that the flies show they are highly evolved insects; p B Flc. 16 9. The black horsefly, Tabanus atratus A, the entire fly. B, facial view ofthe head and mouth parts. Int, antenna; 7, 7, compound eyes; Lb, ]abium; Lin, labrurn: AId, rnandible; Mx, maxilla; MxPlp, maxillary palpus they are equally specialized in the structure of their mouth parts and in their manner of feeding. The flies subsist on liquid food. Those species that can satisfy their wants from liquids freely accessible bave the mouth parts formed for sucking only. Unfortunately, however, as we all too well know, there are many species that demand, and usu- ally obtain, the fresh blood of mammals, including that of man, and such species have most efficient organs for piercing the skin of their victims. The most familiar examples of flies that "bite" are the mosquitoes and horseflies. The horseflies (Fig. J6 9 A), some of which are called also gadflies and deer flies, belong to the familv Tabanidae. An examination of the head of [3o ] MOS.QUITOES AND FIAES the common large black horsefly (Fig. I69 B) will show the nature of the feeding organs with which these flies are equipped. Projecting downward from the lower part of the head are a numberof appendages; these are the mouth parts. They correspond in number and in relative posi- tion with the mouth appendages of the grasshopper (Fig. 66), but they differ from the latter very much in form because they are adapted to quite a different manner of feeding. The horsefly does hot truly bite; it pierces the skin of its victim and sucks up the exuding blood. By spreading apart the various pieces that compose the group of mouth parts of the horsefly, it will be seen that there are nine of them in ail. Three are median in posi- tion, and therefore single, but the remaining six occur in duplicate on the two sides, forming thus three sets of paired structures. The large club-shaped pieces, how- ever, that lie at the sides of the others, are attached at their bases to the second paired organs and constitute a part of the latter, so that there are really only two sets of paired organs. The anteriormost single piece is the labrum (Fig. 169 B, Lin); the first paired organs are the mandibles (Md); the second are the maxillae (Mx); the second median piece is the hypopharynx (hot seen in Fig. 169 B); and the large, unpaired, hindmost organ is the labium (Lb). The lateral club-shaped pieces are the palpi of the maxillae (lI.vPlp). The labrum is a strong, broad appendage projecting downward from the lower edge of the face (Figs. I6 9 B, 17o A, Lin). lts extremity is tapering, but the tip is bhmt; its under surface is traversed by a median groove extending from the tip to the base but closed normally by the hypopharynx (Fig. I7O D, Hp_v), which fits against the under side of the labrum and converts the groove into a tube. The upper end of this tube leads directly into the mouth, a small aperture situated between the base of the labrum and the base of the hypopharynx and opening into a large, stiff-walled, bulblike structure (Fig. I7O A, Pmp) [ 3 ] INSECTS which is the mouth cavity. The anterior wall of the bulb is ordinarily collapsed, but it can be lifted by a set ofstrong muscles (Mcl) arising on the front wall of the head (Clp). This bulb is the sucking pump of the fly, and it will be B C D FIO. 17o. Mouth parts of a horsefly, Tabanus atratus A, the labrum (Lin) and mouth pump (Prnp), with dilator muscles of the pump (1tcl) arising on the clypeal plate (CIp) of the head wall. The mouth is behind the base of the labrum B, the left mandible C, the left maxilla, consisting of a long piercing blade (Lc), and a large palpus (PIp) D, the labium (Lb) terminating in the large labdla (La), and the hypopharynx (Hphy) showing the salivary duct (SID) and its syrine (8.vr), discharging into a channd of the hypopharynx (Hphy) that opens at the tip of the latter seen that it is very similar to that of the cicada (Fig.  22, Pmp). In the fly, however, the liquid food is drawn up to the mouth through the labro-hypopharyngeal tube instead of through a channel between the appressed maxillae. The mandibles of the horsefly (Fig. 7 o B, Md) are long, bladelike appendages, very sharp pointed, thickened on [ 3aa ] MOS.QUITOES AND FLIES the outer edges and thin on the knifelike inner edges. They appear to be cutting organs, for each is articulated to the lower rira of the head bv its expanded base in such a manner that it can swing sidewise a little but can not be protruded and retracted as can the corresponding organ of the cicada. The maxillae (C) are slender stylets, each supported on a basal plate attached to the head; this plate carries also the large, two-segmented palpus (Plp). The maxillae are probably the principal piercing tools of the horsefly's mouth-part equipment. The median hypopharynx (Fig. 7 o D, Hphy) is a tapering blade somewhat hollowed above, normally ap- pressed, as just observed, against the under surface of the labrum to form the floor of the food canal. The hypo- pharynx itself is traversed by a narrow tube which is a continuation from the salivarv duct (SID). The latter, however, just before it enters t}e base of the hypopharynx, is enlarged to form an injection syringe (Svr). The salivary syringe in structure is a small replica of the mouth pump (A, Pmp), and its muscles arise on the back of the latter. The salira of the fiy is injected into the wound from the tip of the hypopharynx. By reason of this fact, the bite of a fly may be the source of infection to the victim, for it is evident that the injection of salira affords a means for the transfer of internal disease parasites from one animal to another. Behind ail the parts thus far described is the median labium (Fig. 7 o D, Lb), a much larger organ than any of the others, consisting of a thick basal stalk and two great terminal lobes (La). The sort, membranous under sur- faces of the lobes, which are known as the labella, are marked by the dark lines of many parallel, thick-walled grooves extending crosswise. These grooves may be channels for collecting the blood that exudes from the wound, or they may also distribute the salira as it issues from the tip of the hypopharynx between the ends of the labella. The effect of the salira of the horsefly on the INSECTS blood is not known, but the saliva of some files is said to prevent coagulation of the blood. Some of the smaller horseflies will give us an unsolicited sample of their biting powers, and in shaded places along roads they often make themselves most vexatious to the foot traveler just when he would like to sit down and enjoy a quiet test. To horses, cattle, and wild mammals, how- ever, these files are extremely annoying pests, and, where abundant, they must make the lives of animais almost unendurable; for the sole means of protection the latter bave against the painful bites of the flies is a swish of the tail, which only drives the insects to make a fresh attack on some other spot. There is another familv of "biting" flies, known as the robber flies, or Asilidae (]Tig. 167) , the members of which attack other insects. They are strong flyers and take their victims on the wing, even bees falling prey to them. The robber flies bave no mandibles, and the strong, sharp- pointed hypopharynx appears to be the chief piercing implement. The saliva of the tir injected into the wound dissolves the muscles of the victim, and the predigested solution is then completely sucked out. As was shown in Çhapter VIII, on metamorphosis, • whenever the adult form of an insect is highly specialized for a particular kind of lire, it is usually round that the young is also specialized but in a way of its own to adapt it to a manner of living quite different from that of its parent. This principle is particularly true of the flies, for, if the adult flies are to be regarded as in general the most highly evolved in structure of ail the adult insects, there can be no doubt that the young fly is the most highly specialized of ail the insect larvae. The files belong to that large group of insects which do hot bave external wings in the larval stage, but with the flies the suppression of the body appendages includes also the legs, so that their larvae are hot only wingless but legless as well (Fig. 7I). The legs, however, as the wings, , IOS.QL ITOES AND FLIES are represented by internal buds, which, when they enter the period of growth during the early stage of metamor- phosis, are turned inside out to form the legs of the adult tir. The lack of legs gives a cylindrical simplicity of form to most fly larvae, which hot onlv makes these insects look lik, e worms, but bas caused manv of them to lire the lire of / ml LTpa An Fro. 171. Structure of a fly larva, or maggot anus; .ISp, anterior spiracle; DTra, dorsal tracheal trunk; LTra, lateral tracheal trunks; mb, mouth hooks; PSp, posterior spiracle a worm and to adopt the wavs of a worm. In compensa- tion for the loss of legs, the fli" larvae are provided with an intricate system of muscle fibers lying against the inner surface of the bodv wall, which enables them to stretch and contract and to make ail manner of contortionistic twists. At first thought it seems remarkable that a soh-bodied, wormlike creature can stretch itsel( by muscular contrac- tion. It must be remembered, however, that the body of the larva is filled with soif tissues, manv of which are but looselv anchored, and that the spaces between the organs are fil'led with a body liquid. The creature is, therefore, capable of pe.rforming movements bv making use of its structure as a hvdraulic mechanism; a contraction of the rear part o( the body, for example, drives the body liquid and the soit movable organs forward, and thus extends the anterior parts of the bodv. A contraction of the length- wise muscles then pulls up the rear parts, when the more- [325] INSECTS ment of extension may be repeated. In this fashion the soft, legless larva moves forward; or, by a reversal of the process when occasion demands, it goes backward. A special feature in the construction of fly larvae is the arrangement of their breathing apertures, which is cor- re!ated with the malmer of breathing. In most insects, as we bave learned (Fig. 70), there is a row of breath]ng pores, or spiracles, along each side of the body, which open into .3 -- , Fro. 7 ŒE, Rat-tailed maggots, larvae of the drone y» whkh lire submerged in water or mud and breathe t the surface through a long» tail-like respiratory tube Upper figure, resting beneath a small oating obiect; lower, feeding in mud at the ottom lateral tracheal trunks. In the tir larva, however, these spiracles are closed and are hot opened for respiration until the final change of the pupa to the adult. The tir larva is provided with one or two pairs of special breathing organs situated at the ends of the bodv. Some species have a pair of these organs at each end of te bodv (Fig. 171 , .J.ç, P«ç), and some a pair at the pos- terior end only. The anterior organs, when present (Fig. 171 , «J.ç), consist of perforated lobes on the first body segment, the pores of which communicate with the an- terior ends of a pair of large dorsal tracheal trunks (DTra). The posterior organs (PSp) consist of a pair of spiracles on the rear end of the body, which open into the posterior ends of the dorsal tracheae. By means of this respiratory arrangement, the tir larva can lire submerged in water, [3261 MOSQUITOES AND FLIES or buried in mud or any other sort medium, so long as it keeps one end of the body out for breathing. The rat-tailed maggot (Fig. I72), which is the larva of a large fly that looks like a drone bee, has taken a special advantage of its respiratory system; for the rear end of its body, bearing the posterior spiracles, is drawn out into a long, slender tube. The creature, which lives in foui water or in mud, can by this contrivance hide itself beneath a floating object and breathe through its tail, the tip of which may corne to the surface of the water at a point some distance away. The end of the tail is provided with a circlet of radiating hairs surrounding the spiracles, which keeps the tip of the tail afloat and prevents the water from entering the breathing apertures. The great disparity of structure between the larva of a tir and the adult necessarily involves much reconstruc- ti'on during the period of transformation, and probably the inner processes of metamorphosis are more intensive in the more highly specialized Diptera than in any other group of insects. The pupa of an insect, as we have seen in Chapter VIII (page 254), is verv evidently a preliminary stage of the adult, the larval characters being usually discarded with the last molt ofthe larva. The pupa ofmost files, however, while it has the general structure of the adult fly (Fig. 82 A, F), retains the special respiratory scheme of the larva and at least a part of the larval breathing organs. The fact that the larvae breathe through special spiracles located on the back suggests that the primitive fly larvae lived in water or in sort mud, and that it was through an adaptation to such an environment that the lateral spiracles were closed and the special dorsal spiracles de- veloped. The retention by many fly pupae of the larval method of breathing and of at least a part of the larval respiratory organs, though their habitat would hot seem necessarily to demand it, suggests, furthermore, that the [3OE7 ] INSECTS pupae of the ancestors of such species lived in the saine medium as the larvae.. Ifour supposition is correct, we may see a reason tor the apparent exception in the files to the general rule that the pupa presents the adult structure and discards the pecu- liarly larval characters. The pupae of some flies whose Fro. 73- Larva (A) and pupa (B) ofa horsefly, Tabanus puncti- fer (about 1  rimes natural size) /n, anus; H, head; PSp, posterior spiracle; Sp, spiracle larvae lire in the water, however, revert at once to the adult system of lateral spiracles (Fig. 73 B, Sp). With such species, the larva cornes out of the water just belote pupauon time and transforms in some place where breathing is possible by the ordinary respiratory organs. This is the general fuie with other insects whose larvae are aquatic. The order of the Diptera is a large one, and we might go on indefinitely describing interesting things about flies m general. Such a course, however, would soon fill a larger book than this; hence, since we are already in the last chapter, a more practical plan will be to select for special consideration a few species that have become closely as- sociated with the welfare of man or of his domesticated animais. Such species include the mosquitoes, the bouse fly, the blowfly, the stable fly, the tsetse fly, the flesh files, and related forms. [ 3-8 ] MOS(2UITOES AND FLIES ,|OSQUITOES The mosquitoes, perhaps more than any other noxious insect, impel us to ask the impertinent question, why pests were ruade to annoy us. It would be well enough to answer that they were g:lven as a test of the efficiency of our science in learning how to control them, if it were not for the other creatures, the wild animais, whose existence must be at times a continual torment from the bites of insects and from the diseases transmitted by them. Such creatures must endure their tortures without hope of relief, and there is ample evidence of the sufl'ering that insects cause them. In earlier and more primitive days the rainwater barrel and the town watering trough took the place of the course in nature studv in our present-day schools. While the lessons of the water barrel and the trough were perhaps hot exact or thoroughly scientific, we at least got our learning from them at first hand. We ail knew then what "wigglers" and "horsehair snakes" were; and we knew that the former turned into mosquitoes as surelv as we believed that the latter came from horsehairs. \lodern nature study has set us upon the road to more exact science, but the aquarium can never hold the mysteries of the old horse trough or the marvels of the raJnwater barrel. The supposed ancestry of the horsehair shake is now an exploded myth, but the advance of science has unfortu- nately hot altered the fact that wigglers turn into mos- quitoes, except in so far as the spread of applied sanita- tion has brought it about that fewer of them than for- merly succeed in doing so. And now, as we leave the homely objects of our first acquaintance with "wigglers" for the more convenient apparatus of the laboratory, we will call the creatures mosqu#o larvae, since that is what thev are. OEhe rainwater barrel never told us how those wiggling [39 ] INSECTS mosquito larvae got into it--that was the charm of the barrel; we could believe that we stood face to face with the great mystery of the origin of lire. Now, of course, we understand that it is a very simple matter for a female FIO. I74. Lire stages of a mosquito, Culex quinquefasciatus A, the adult female. B, head of an adult maie. C, a floating egg fart, with four eggs shown separately and more enlarged. D, a young larva suspended at the surface of the water. E, full-grown larva. F, the pupa resting against the surface film of the water [ 33 ° 1 MOSQUITOES AND FLIES mosquito to lay her eggs upon the surface of the water, and that the larvae corne from the eggs. There are many species of mosquitoes, but, from the .standpoint of human interest, most of them are included in three groups. First there are the "ordinary" mos- quitoes, species of the genus Culex or of related genera; second, the yellow-fever mosquito, dëdes aegypti; and third, the malaria-carrying mosquitoes, which belong to the genus dnopheles. The common Culex mosquitoes (Fig. I74 A) lay .their eggs in small, fiat masses (C) that float on the surface of the water. Each egg stands on end and is stuck close to its neighbors in such a manner that the entire egg mass has the form of a miniature raft. Sometimes the eggs toward the margin of the raft stand a little higher, giving the mass a hollowed surface that perhaps decreases the chance of accidental submergence, though the raft is buoved up from below by a film of air beneath the eggs. A]most any body of quiet water is acceptable to the Culex mosquito as a receptacle for her eggs, whether it be a natural pond, a pool of rainwater, or vater standing in a barrel, a bucket, or a neglected tin can. Each egg raft contains two or three hundred eggs and sometimes more, but the largest raft seldom exceeds a fourth of an inch in longest diameter. The eggs hatch in a very short time, usually in less than twenty-four hours, though the in- cubation period may be prolonged in cool weather. The young mosquito larvae corne out of the lower ends of the eggs, and at once begin an active lire in the water. The body of the young mosquito larva is slender and the head proportionately large (Fig. 174 D). As the creature becomes older, however, the thoracic region of the bodv swells out until it becomes as large as the head, or finallv a little larger (E). The head bears a pair of lateral eyes iFig. 175, b), a pair of short antennae (dnt), and, on the ventral surface in front of the mouth, a pair of large brushes of hairs curved inward (a). From the sides of [331 ] INSECTS the bodv segments project laterally groups of long hairs, some of which are branched in certain species. The rear end of the bodv appears to be forked, being divided into an upper and a ]ower branch. The Fm. 7- Structure of a Culex mosquito larva a, mouth brushes; abdomen; Ant, antenna; b» eye; c, respiratory tube; d, terminal lobes; H, head; " P8p, posterior spiracle; TA, thorax; Tra, dorsa tracheal trunks upper branch (c), however, is reallv a long tube projecting dor- sallv and backward from the next to he last segment. The lower branch is the true terminal seg- ment of the body and bears the anal opening of the alimentary canal at its extremitv. On the end of this segment ur long, trans- parent flaps project laterally (d), tso groups of long hairs are situ- ated dorsally, and a fan of hairs ventrallv (.Fig. 174 E. The principal characteristic of the mosquito larva is the speciali- zation of its respiratory system. The larva breathes through a single large aperture situated on the end of the dorsal tube that projects from the next to the last segment of the bodv (Fig. 175, PSp). This orifice opens by two mner spiracles into two wide tracheal trunks (Tra) that extend forward in the bodv and give off branches to ail the internal organs. The mosquito larva, therefore, can breathe only when the tip of its respiratory tube projects above the surface of the water, and, though an aquatic creature, it can be drowned by long submergence. Yet the provision for breathing at the surface has a distinct advantage: it renders the mosquito larva independent of the aeration of the water it inhabits, and allows a large number of larvae to thrive [33 OE ] MOSQUITOES AND FLIES in a small quantity of water, provided the latter contains suFficient food material. The tip of the respiratory tube is furnished with rive small lobes arranged like the points of a star about the central breathing hole. When the larva is below the sur- face, the points close over the aperture and prevent the ingress of water into the tracheae; but as soon as the tip of the tube cornes above the surface, its points spread apart. Not only is the breathing aperture thus exposed, but the larva is enabled to remain indefinitelv suspended from the surface film (Figs. 74 D, 18 B). l'n this posi- tion, with its head hanging downward, it feeds from a current of ater swept toward its mouth by the vibration of the mouth brushes. Particles suspended in the water are caught on the brushes and then taken into the mouth. Anv kind of organic matter among these particles con- stitutes the food of the larva, l.arvae of Çulex mos- quitoes, however, feed also at the bottom of the water, where fi»od material mav be more abundant. The bodv of the mosquito larva has apparently about the saine d'ensitv as water; when inactive below the sur- face, some larvae slowlv sink, and others rise. But the mosquito larva is an energetic swimmer and can project itself in any direction through the water bv snapping the rear halfof its bodv from side to side, whicl characteristic performance has given it the popular naine of "'wiggler." The larva can also propel itself through the water with considerable speed without any motion of the bodv. This movement is produced by the action of the mouth )rushes. l.ikewise, while hanging at the top of the water, the larva can in the saine manner switag itself about on its point of suspension, or glide rapidly across the surface. The larvae of Culex mosquitoes reach maturity in about a week after hatching, during the middle of summer; but the larval period is prolonged during the cooler seasons of spring and fall. The larva passes through three stages, and then becomes a pupa. [333 ] INSECTS The mosquito pupa (Fig. 74 F) also lives in the water, but is quite a different looking creature from the larva. The thorax, the head, the head appendages, the legs, and the wings are ail compressed into a large oval mass from A Mx f Hphy Lb B F¢.  76. Mouth parts of a female mosquito, ïoblotia digitat,, A, the head with the proboscis (Prk) in natural position. B, the mouth parts separated, showing the component pieces of the proboscis .4rit, antenna; E, compound eye; Hphy, hypopharynx; Lk, labium; Lin, labrurn; Md, mandibles; Mx, maxillae; MxPlp, Plp, max- illary palpi; Prk, proboscis which the slender abdomen hangs downward. The pupa, owing to air sacs in the thorax, is lighter than water and, when quiet, it rises to the surface where it floats with the back of the thorax against the surface film. The pupa has lost the respiratory tube and the posterior spiracles of the larva, but has acquired two large, trumpetlike breathing tubes of its own that arise from the anterior part of the [ 334 ] MOSQUITOES AND FLIES thorax, the rnouths of which open above the water when the pupa cornes in contact with the surface. The pupa, of course, does hot feed, but it is alrnost as active as the larva, for it rnust avoid its enemies. When disturbed it rapidly swirns downward by quick rnovernents of the abdomen, the extrernity of which is provided with two large swirn- rning flaps. The duration of the pupal stage in midsurnrner is about two days. The adult rnosquito issues flore the pupal skin through a split in the back of the latter. We now see whv the pupa is made lighter than water--it must float at the surface in order to allow the adult to escape into the air. The full-fledged mosquito (Fig. 74 A) bas the general fea- tures of anv other two-winged fly, but it s distinguished from nearly all other flies by the presence of scales on its wings and on parts of its head, body, and ap- pendages. The rnouth parts of the adult / \ / \_ / \ Fc. 177. lëdes atropalpus, maie, a mosquito re- lated to the yellow lever mosquito and similar to it in appearance m.osq.uito are of the plerclng and sucking type, and are sirnilar in structure to those of the horsefly, except that the individual pieces are longer and slenderer, and together constitute a beak, or proboscis, extending forward and downward frorn the head (Fig. I76 A, Prb). The rnale and the fernale rnos- quitoes are readily distinguishable by the character of the antennae, these organs in the rnale being large and feathery (Fig. 74 B), while those of the female are [335 ] " INSECTS threadlike and provided with comparatively few short hairs (A). The sexes differ also in the mouth parts, for, as in the horseflies, the males lack mandibles. The mouth parts of the mosquito, in the natural posi- tion, do hot appear as separate pieces, as do those of the horseflv. The various elements, except the palpi, are com- pressed into a beak that projects forward and downward from the lower part of the head (Fig. 176 A, Prb). "l'he length of the beak varies in different kinds of mosquitoes; it is particularly long in the large South American species shown in Figure 76. When the beak of the female mosquito is dissected (Fig. 76 B), the saine equipment of parts is revealed as is possessed bv the female horseflv IFig. 69 B), namely, a [abrum (Lin), two mandibles (.(ld), two maxil[ae (.1Ix), a hypopharynx (Hph.v), and a labium (Lb). It is the labium that forms most of the visible part of the beak, the other pieces being concealed within a deep gro«ve in its upper surface. The la/rivera (Fig. 176 B, Lin) is a long median blade, concave below, terminating in a hard, sharp point; it is probably the principal piercing tool of the mosquito's outfit. The mamtib/es of the mosquito (:lld) are verv slender, delicate bristles; those of the species figured are so weak that it would seem thev can be oflittle use to the insect. The maxi//ae (Mx) are thin, fiat organs with thickened bases, each terminating in a sharp point armed on its outer edge with a row of backward-pointing, saw- like teeth which probabl.v serve to keep the mouth parts fixed in the puncture as the perclng lalrum is thrust deeper into the flesh. "Fhe pa/pi I.IlxP/p) arise from the bases of the maxillae. The h)'popha?mx (lqpk),) is a slender blade with a median rib which is traversed bv the channel of the salivarv duct. |ts upper surface is con- cave and, in the naturai position, is closed against the concave lower side of the labrum, the two apposed pieces thus forming between them a tube which leads up to the [ 336 ] blOS(UITOES AND FLIES mouth opening. The saliva of the mosquito is injected into the wound from the tip of the hypopharynx, and the blood of the victim is sucked up to the mouth through the labro-hypopharyngeal tube. The labium (Lb} serres F,c. 178. Mosquito larvae A, Atë'des atropalpus. 13, .¢nopheles punctipennis, the malaria mosquito larva c, respiratory tube; d, terminal Iobes; e, stellate groups of hairs that hold the larva at the surface of the water (fig. 181 A); f, spiracular area; P8p, spiracle principally as a sheath for the other organs. It ends in two small lateral lobes, the labella, between which pro- ]ects a weak, median tonguelike process. When the mos- quito pierces its victim the base of the labium bends back- ward as the other bristlelike members of the group of mouth parts sink into the wound. blosquitoes of both sexes are said to feed on the sap of [ 337 ] INSECTS plants, which they extract by puncturing the plant tissues; they will also feed on the exuding juices of fruit, or on any sort vegetable matter. The females, however, are notori- ous for their propensity for animal blood, and they by no means limit their quest for this article of food to human beings. The maie mosquitoes, apparently, very rarely depart from a vegetarian diet. The pain from the bite of a female mosqmto and the subsequent irritation and swelling probbly result from the injection of the secre- tion from the salivary glands of the insect into the wound. It is said that the salira of the mosquito prevents coagula- tion of the blood. Because of the short time necessary for the completion of the lire cycle from egg to adult during summer, there are manv generations of mosquitoes from spring to fall. The winer is passed both in the adult and in the larval stage. Fertile females mav survive cold weather in pro- tected places; and larvae round in large numbers, frozen solid in the ice of ponds, have become active on being thawed out, and capable of development when given a sufficient degree o warmth. The vellow-fever mosquito, now known as .lë'des aeg.vpti but at the rime of the discovery of its relation to yellow lever generally called ,çt«gom),ia.[asdata, is similar in its habits during the larval and pupal stages to the Culex mosquitoes. It lavs its eggs singly, however, and they float unattached on the surface of the water. The adult mosquito mav be identified by its decorative markings. On the back of the thorax is a lyrelike design in white on a black ground; the joints of the legs are ringedwith white the black abdomen is conspicuously cross-banded with white on the basal half of each segment. The maie has |arge plumose antennae and |ong maxillary palpi. The female has a strong beak, but small palpi, and her an- tennae are of the short-haired form usual with female mosquitoes. The species of .iëdes shown in Figure 177 much resembles the vellow-fever mosquito, but it is a [338] MOS.QUITOES AND FLIES more northern one common about Washington, D. C., where it breeds in rock pools along the Potomac River. The larva of Aëdes (Fig. 78 A) resembles a Culex larva, but it feeds more habitually at the bottom of the water and may spend long periods below without coming to the Fro. 179. Mosquito pupae in natural position resting against the under surface of the water A, .4ëdes atropalpus. B, .4nopheles punctipennis surface for air. In its search for food it noses about m the refuse at the bottom of the water and voraciously con- sumes dead insects and small crustaceans. The pupa like- wise (Fig. I79 A) does hOt differ materially from a Culex pupa. When quiet it floats at the surface of the water with the entire back of its thorax against the surface film and the tips of its breathing tubes above the surface. Probably no mosquito pupa hangs suspended from its resp.iratory tubes in the manner in which the pupae of vanous species are often figured. ./ëdes aegypti is the only known natural carrier of the virus of yellow lever from one person to another. The disease can be taken only from the bite of a mosquito of this species that has become infected by previous feeding on the blood of a yellow-fever patient. The organism that produces yellow fever is perhaps hOt yet definitely known, though strong evidence has been adduced to show [ 339 1 INSECTS that it is one of the minute, non-filterable organisms called spirochetes. The virus will hot develop m the mosquitoes at a temperature below 68 ° F., and ,tëdes aegypti will not breed /" in latitudes much be- "'\), ,,// yond the possible range of yellow lever. -,,/ Yellow fever, there- fore, is a disease ordi- narily confined to tbe • , tropics and warmer j/Ù.-\ parts of the te tope r- ate zones. Season- . al outbreaks of it that bave occurred in // \ northern cities bave been caused probably by local infestations // \ of infected mosqui- / / ] toes brought in on Fie.. 18o. The female malaria mosquito, ships from some .4nopheles punctipennis SOU thern port. The malaria mos- quitoes belong to the genus .tnopheles, a genus repre- sented by species in most temperate and tropical regions of the world, which are prevalent wherever malaria oc- curs. Our most common malaria species is «qnopheles punctipennis (Fig. 8o), characterized by a pair of dull white spots on the edges of the wings. The .tnopheles females lay their eggs singly on the surface of the water, where they float, each buoved up by an air jacket about its middle. The larvae of Anopheles (Fig. 78 B) differ conspicu- ouslv from those of Culex and Aëdes both in structure and habits. Instead of a respiratory tube projecting from nea the end of the body, as in Culex (Figs. 174 E 75), there is a concave disc (Fig. 78 B,f) on the back of the next to [ 34 ° ] MOSQUITOES AND FLIES the last segment, in which the posterior spiracles (PSp) are located. The larva floats in a horizontal position just below the surface film of the water (Fig. 18I A), from which it is suspended by a series of floats (,Fig. 178 B, e) consisting of starlike groups of short hairs arranged in pairs along the back. The spreading tips of the hairs pro- Fç. xSx. Feeding positions of.4n0pheles and Culex mosquito larvae A,/lnopheles larva suspended horizontally beneath the surface film, and feeding at the surface with its head inverted. B, Culex larva hanging from the respira- tory tube ject slightlv above the water surface and keep the larva afloat. In the floating position, the respiratory disc breaks through the surface film, and its raised edges leave a drv area surrounding the spiracles. The long hairs that projéct from the sides of the thorax and the first three bodv segments are mostly branched and plumose. T'he Anopheles larva (Fig. llqI A) feeds habitually at the top of the water. When disturbed it shoots rapidly across the surface in anv direction, but goes downward reluctantly. In order to feed in its horizontal position, it turns its head completely upside down and with its mouth brushes creates a surface current toward its mouth. The pupa of Anopheles (Fig. 179 B) is hot essentially [34 i ] INSECTS different from that of Culex or Aëdes. Its most distinc- tive character is in the shape of the respiratory tubes, which are verv broad at the ends. The parasitë of malaria is hot a bacterium but a micro- scopic protozoan animal named P/asmodium. There are several species or varieties that correspond with the difl'er- ent varieties of the disease. The malaria Plasmodium has a complicated life cycle and is able to complete its life only when it can spend a part of it in the body of a mosquito and the other part in some vertebrate animal. In the human bodv the malaria parasites lire in the red corpus- cles of the [lood. Here they multiply by asexual repro- duction, producing for a while manv other asexual gener- ations. Eventually, however, certain individuals are formed that, if taken into the stomach of an Anopheles mosquito, de»'elop there into males and females. In the stomach of the mosquito, these sexual individuals unite in pairs, and the resulting z, ygotes, as thev are called, penetrate into the cells of the stomach walf. Here thev lire for a while and multiply into a great number of sma[l spindle-shaped creatures, which go through the stomach wall into the bodv cavitv of the mosquito and at last col- lect in the salivary glam{s. If now the mosquito, with its salivary glands full of the Plasnodium parasites in this stage, bites some other animal, the parasites are almost sure to be injected into the wound with the salira. If thev are hot at once destroved by the white blood cor- pus'cles, thev will quickly enter the red blood corpuscles, and the victim will soon show symptoms of malaria. THE HOUSE FL." AND SOME OF lrs RELATIONS Our familiar domestic pest, the bouse fly, may be taken as the type of a large group of flies, and in particular of those belonging to the familv Muscidae, which is named from its best known member, 3luc domeIic, the bouse f]v--musc being the Latin word for fly. The bouse f]v (Fig. 82 A), though particularly a domes- [34  ] MOSOUITOES AND FLIE tic pest to people that live indoors, is intimatelv associated with the stable. Its favorite breeding place is the manure pile. Here the female flv lays her eggs (B), and here the larvae, or maggots (Ç), lve until they are readv for trans- formation. It is estimated that fullv ninety-five per cent of our house files bave been bred in horse manure. A few may corne from garbage cans, or from heaps of vegetable refuse, but such sources of fly infestation are comparatively unimportant. Measures of fly control are directed chiefly to preventing the access of files to stable manure and the destruction of maggots living in it. The eggs of the bouse flv IFig. 82 B) are small, white, .elongate-oval objects, about one twenty-fifth of an inch m length, each slightly curved on one side and concave on the other. The female tir begins to lay eggs in about ten days after having transformed to the adult form, and she deposits from 75 to 5o eggs at a single laying. She re- peats the laying, however, at intervals during her short productive period of about twenty days, and in ail may deposit over 2,ooo eggs. Each egg hatches in twenty-four hours or less. The larva of the house tly, in common with that of many other related files, is a particularly wormlike creature, and is commonly called a maggot IFig. 182 D). Its slender white body is segmented, but, in external appearance, it is legless and headless. On a fiat area at the rear end of the bodv are located two large spiracles (P,çp), which the novice might mistake for eyes. The tapering end of the body is the head end, but the true head of the maggot is withdrawn entirelv into the body. From the aperture where the head bas disappeared, which serves the maggot as a mouth, two clawlike hooks project (,h), and these hooks are both jaws and grasping organs to the maggot. The larva sheds its skin twice during the active part of its life, which is verv short, usually onlv two or three weeks. Then it crawls of to a secluded place, generally in the earth beneath its manure pile, where it enters a resting condi- [ 343 ] INSECTS tion. Its skin now hardens and contracts until the creature takes on the form of a small, hard-shelled, oral capsule, called a Dl@arium (Fig. 182 E). PSp F Fro. 182. The house fly, .lusca domestica A, the adult fly (5  rimes natural size). B, the house fly egg (greatly magnified). C, larvae, or maggots, in manure. D, a larva {.more enlarged). E, the puparium, or, hardened larval skin which becomes a case in which the larva changes to a pupa. F, the pupa [ 344 ] MOSQUITOES AND FI.IES Within the puparium, the larva sheds another skin, and then transforms to the pupa. The pupa (Fig. 82 F) is thus protected during its transformation to the adult by the puparial skin of the larva, which serres in place of a cocoon. When the adult is fully formed, it pushes off a circular cap from the anterior end of its case, and the fly emerges. The length of the entire cycle from egg to adult vanes according to temperature conditions, but it is usually from twelve to fourteen days. The adult flies are short-lived in sunanaer, thirty days, or not more than two months, being their usual span of life. In cooler weather, however, when their activities are suppressed, they lire ronger, and a few survive the winter in protected places. One of the essential differences between flies of the house tir type and the mosquitoes and horseflies is in the structure of the mouth parts. The house fly lacks mandi- bles and maxillae, but it retains the median members of the normal group of mouth-part pieces, which are the labrum, the hypopharynx, and the labium. These parts are combined to form a sucking proboscis that is ordi- narily folded beneath the head, but which is extended downward when in use (Fig. 183 A, Prb). The labium (Fig. 18.3 ], Lb) is the principal component of the proboscis of the house fly, and its terminal lobes, or labella (La), are particularly well developed. From the base of the labium there projects forward a pair of palps (Plp), which are probably the palpi of the maxillae, though those organs are otherwise lacking. The anterior surface of the labium is deeply concave, but its trough- like hollow is closed by the labrum (Lin). Against the labial wall çf the inclosed channel lies the hypopharynx (Hphy). When the lobes of the labium are spread out, the anterior cleft between them is closed except for a small central aperture (a). This opening becomes the func- tional mouth of the fly, though the true mouth is situated, as in other insects, between the bases of the labrum and the hypopharynx, and opens into a large sucking pump [ 345 ] INSECTS having the saine essential structure as that of the horse- fly (Fig. I7O A). The house fly has no piercing organs; it subsists en- tirely on a liquid diet. The food liquid enters the aper- ture between the labella, and is drawn up to the true t  P1p Lin_. La / B Flo. I8 3. Head and mouth parts of the house fly A, lateral view of the head with the proboscis (Prb) extended. /lnt, antenna; E, compound eye; La, labe[[a, terminal lobes of the pro- boscis; Plp. maxillary palpi (the maxillae are lacking); Prb, pro- boscis B, the proboscis of the fly, as seen in three-quarter front view and from below. The proboscis consists of the thick labium (Lb), ending in the labellar lobes (La), between which is a small pote (a) leading into the food canal (FC) of the proboscis. The food canal contains the hypopharynx (Hphy), and is closed in front by the labrum (Lin) mouth through the bod canal in the labium between the labrum and the hypopharynx. The fly, however, is hot dependent on natural liquids; it can dissolve soluble sub- stances, such as sugar, by means of its saliva. The saliva is ejected from the tip of the hypopharynx, and probably spreads over the food through the channels of the labial lobes. These saine channels, perhaps, also collect the food solution and convey it to the labellar aperture. [ 346 ] MOSQUITOES AND FLIES During recent years we have become so well educated concerning the ways of the bouse fly, its disgusting habits of promiscuous feeding, now in the garbage can or some- where worse, and next at our table or on the baby's face, and we bave learned so much about its menace as a pos- sible carrier of disease, that it is scarcely necessary to en- large here upon the flv's undesirability as a domestic companion. The most serious accusation against the bouse fly is that, owing to the many kinds of places it frequents with- out regard to sanitary conditions, and toits indiscriminate feeding habits, there is always a chance of its feet, body, mouth parts, and alimentary canal being contaminated with the germs of disease, particularly those of typhoid lever, tuberculosis, and dysentery. It bas been demon- strated that files can carry germs about with them which will grow when given a proper medium, and likewise that files taken at large may be covered with bacteria, a single fly sometimes being loaded with millions of them. The wisdom of sanitarv measures for the protection of food from contamination by files can not, therefore, be questioned. There is one form of insect villainy, however, of which the house fly is hot guilty; the structure of its mouth parts clears it of ail accusa- tions of biting. And yet we hear it often asserted by per- FIG. I8 4. Head of the stable fly, Stomoxys calcitrans .4nt, antenna; PIp, maxillary pal- pus; Prb, proboscis sons of unquestioned veracitv that they have been bitten bv bouse files. The case is one of mistaken identification and hot of imagination on the part of the plaintiff; the [ 347 ] INSECTS insect that inflicts the bite is not the house fly, but another species closelv resembling the common domestic fly in gen- eral appearance, though a little smaller. If the culprit is caught, there may be seen projecting from its head a long, hard, tapering beak (Fig. 84, Prb), an organ quite differ- ent from any part of the mouth equipment of the true house fly (Fig. 83). This biting fly is, in fact, the stable ff.v, a species known to entomologists as Stomoxvs calci- trans. It belongs to the saine family as the housefly, and while it sometimes cornes about houses, it is particularly a pest of horses and cattle. The stable fly lives in most parts of the inhabited world. Both sexes have blood-sucking habits, and probably feed on any kind of warm-blooded animal, though the species is most familiar as a frequenter of stables and as a pest of domestic stock. The stable fly breeds mostly in fer- menting vegetable matter, the larvae being found prin- cipally under piles of wet straw, hay, alfalfa, grain, weeds, or any vegetable refuse. Cattle are afflicted by another pestiferous fly called the horn fly, or Haematobia irritans. The species gets its common naine from the fact that it is usually observed about the bases o( the horns ofcattle, where great numbers of individuals often assemble. But the horns of the animais are merely convenient resting places. Haematobia is a biting fly like Stomoxys, and, because of its greater numbers, it often becomes a most serious pest of cattle. Through irritation and annoyance during feeding, it may cause loss of flesh in grazing stock, and a reduction of milk in dairy cows. The horn fly resembles the stable fly, but is smaller, being about one-half the size of the house fly. It breeds mostly in fresh manure of cattle dropped in the fields. Of ail the biting flies there is none to compare with the tsetse fly of Africa (Fig. 185). Not only is this fly an intolerable nuisance to men and animais because of the severity of its bite, but it is a deadly menace by reason of [ 348 ] MOS.QUITOES AND FI.IES its being the carrier of the parasite of Affican sleeping sickness of man, and that of the related disease called nagana in horses and cattle. African sleeping sickness is caused by a protozoan para- site of the genus Trypauosoma that lires in the blood and other body liquids. Trypanosomes are active, one-celled organisms having one end of the bodv prolonged into a tail, or flagellum. Thev are round as'parasites in many vertebrate animais, but most of them do not produce dis- ease conditions. There are at least three African species, however, whose presence in the blood of their hosts means almost certain death. Two cause the sleeping sickness in man, and the other produces nagana in horses, mules, and cattle. The two human species have different distribu- tions and produce each a distinct varietv of the disease. One is confined to the tropic.al parts of Africa, the other s more southern. The southern form of the disease is said to be much more severe than the tropical form, claiming its vic- tims in a marrer of months, while the other mav dra along for years. The sl'eepin sick- ness and nagana trypanosomes are entirelv dependent in nature on the tsetse files for their means of transport from one person or from one animal to another. The tsetse tir (Fig. Sç) is a FIG. 18 S. A tsetse fly, Glossina alals, maie (about rive times natural size) larger relation of the horn flv and the stable fly, having the saine type of beak and an insatiable appetite for blood. The tsetse fly genus is Glossina. There are two species particularly concerned with the transportation of sleeping sickness, corresponding with the two species of trypanosomes that cause the two [ 349 1 INSECTS forms of the disease. One is Glossina palpalis (Fig. 185) , distributor of the tropical varietv of the disease; the other is Glossina morsitans, carrier both of the southern variety of sleeping sickness and of nagana. The stable fly, the horn fly, and the tsetse fly, we bave said, belong to the saine family as the bouse fly, namely, the Muscidae; and yet they appear to bave mouth parts of a very different type. The differences, however, are of a superficial nature. All the muscid flies, biting and non- biting, have the saine mouth-part pieces, which are the labrum (Figs. I83 B, I86 C, Lin), the hypopharynx (Hphy), and the labium (Lb). They lack mandibles and maxillae, though the maxillary palps (P/p) are retained. In the biting species, the labium is drawn out into a long, slender rod (Fig. I86 C, Lb), and its terminal lobes, the labella (La), are reduced to a pair of small, sharp-edged plates armed on their inner surfaces with teeth and ridges. In the natural position, the deflected edges of the labrum (Fig. I86 B, Lin) are held securely within the hollow of the upper surface of the labium (Lb), the two parts thus in- closing between them a large food canal (FC) at the bot- tom of which lies the slender hypopharynx (Hphy), con- taining the exit tube of the salivary duct. The biting muscids, therefore, have a strong, rigid, beaklike proboscis formed of the saine pieces that com- pose the sucking proboscis of the house fly (compare Fig. 83 A with Figs. I84 and I86 A), but the labium is so modified that it becomes an effective piercing organ. When one of these files bites, it sinks the entire beak into the flesh of its victims. The tsetse fly is said to spread its front legs apart when it alights for the purpose of feeding, and to insert its beak by several quick downward thrusts of the head and thorax. The insect then quickly fills itself with blood, with which it may become so distended that it can scarcely fly. The bulb at the base of the tsetse fly's labium (Fig. 86 C, b) is no part of the sucking apparatus; it is merely an enlargement for the accommodation of [ 35o ] MOSQUITOES AND FLIES muscles. The true sucking organ lies within the head (Pmi)) , and does hot differ in structure from that of other files. While our indictment of the files has applied thus far only to the insects in the mature form, there are species which, though entirely innocent of any criminality in their L1Tl  "-Lb C  Fc. 86. ttead and muth parts f the tsetse fly, Çloia , lateral iew f the head and wobsds (Pr) f Çloia alpali, maie B» cross-section f the wobseis f Çloia]ea (fmm Vgel), shwing the food canal (FC) indd by the labrum (L) and labium (), and entaining the tubular hypharynx (Hy) through whieh the salira is ineeted inm the wund Ç, muth parts fÇlosia alpali with the rts f the probseis separated.  basal swdling f the labium; , the labella, r terminal lb f the labium us fr «utting inm the skin f the ietim; , labium; m, labrum; Pl, maillary palpus (the maxillae are la«king) P, muth pump [35 ] INSECTS adult behavior, are, however, most obnoxious creatures during their larval stages. The ordinary blowflies, which are related to the bouse fly, lay their eggs in the bodies of dead animais, where the larvae speedily hatch and feed on the putrefying flesh. Another kind of blowfly deposits living larvae instead of eggs. These flies may be regarded as beneficial in that their larvae are scavengers. But some of their relations appear to bave taken a diabolical hint from their habits, for they make a practice of depositing their eggs in open wounds, sores, or in the nostrils of living animais, including man. Tbe larvae burrow into the tis- sues of the victims and cause extreme annoyance, surfer- ing, and even death. A notable species of this class of pests is the screw worm. Infestation by fly larvae, or maggots, is called myiasis. Well-known cases of animal myiasis are tbat of the bot- fly in horses and of the ox warble in cattle. The files of both these species lay tbeir eggs on the outside of the animais. The young larvae of the botfly are licked off and swallowed, and then lire until full-grown in the stomach of the host. The young ox-warble larva burrows into the flesh of its host and lires in the body tissues until mature, when it bores through the skin on the back of the aflqicted beast, drops out, and completes its transforma- tion in the ground. Not only animais but plants as well are subject to m- ternal parasitism by fly larvae. Garden crops are at- tacked by leaf maggots and root maggots; orchardists in the northern States bave to contend against the apple maggot, which is a relation of the olive fly of southern Europe and of the destructive fruit files of tropical coun- tries. That notorious scourge of wheat fields, the Hessian fly, is a second or third cousin of the mosquito, and itis in its larva form that it makes all the trouble. The special attention that bas been given to pestiferous files must make it appear that the Diptera are a most undesirable order of insects. As a matter of fact, however, [35"-1 MOSQUITOES AND FLIES there are thousands of species of flies that do not affect us in any injurious way; while, furthermore, there are species, and many of them, that render us a positive serv- ice by the fact that their larvae lire as parasites in the bodies of other injurious insects and bring about the de- struction of large numbers of the latter. Scientifically, the Diptera are most interesting insects, because they illustrate more abundantly than do the members of any other order the steps by which nature has achieved evolution in animal forms. An entomologist would sav that the Diptera are highly specialized insects; and as evidence of this statement he would point out that the files have developed the mechanical possibilities of the common insect mechanism to the highest general level of eflqciency attained by any insect and that they have carried out many lines of special modification, giving a great variety of new uses for structures originally limited to one mode of action. But when we say that any animal has developed to this or that point of perfection, we do hOt mean just what we say, for the creature itself has been the passive subject of influences working upon it or within it. A fundamental study of biology in the future will consist of an attempt to discover the forces that bring about evolution in living things. [ 353 ] INDEX A Acrididae, OE8 dë'des, adult, 338 larva, 339 pupa, 339 dëdes aegypti, 33 , 339, 34o carrier of yellow lever, 339 Aesop and the cicada, 83 Agile meadow grasshopper, 53 Alimentary canal, c) /Imblycorypha oblongifolia, 39 habits, 40 song, 41 me collective, 43 American cockroach, 79 /Inabrus simplex, _ 4 Ancient insects, 77 Angular-winged katydids, 4-43 Annual cicadas, 84 song, 184 /lnopheles, 331, 34 ° punctipennis, sec Malaria mos- quitoes Antennae, 12 Aphids, ISOE apple, 57, 6 birth, 164 cornicles, 174 eggs, 57 feeding, garden, I7L 172 hatching, I59-16 mouth parts, 153 parasites, 78 predators, stem mothers, 162 wing production, 164-166 young, 162 Aphis, 153 apple-grain, 7 o green apple, rosy apple, Aphis-lion, 176 Arthropoda, OE6 Asilidae, 3OE4 Australian cockroach, 79 B Beetles, blister, lady, 75, OE3 o May, OE3 o young, 237 Behavior, 10E6 Black cricket, 60 in New England, 60 rivalry of males, 62 song, 60-63 Black-horned tree cricket, 67 antennal marks, 67 attraction of female by maie, 68, 69 song, 68 Blatella germanica, sec German roach Blood of insects,  OE Blowflies, 352 Botflies, 35OE Brain, liT, II8 Broad-winged tree cricket, 65 antennal marks, 67 song, 64 Bush crickets, 69 song, 7 ° Bush katydids, 38 song, 39 [ 355 1 INDEX C Camel crickets, 55 Cantharidin, OE3 Carboniferous dragonflies, 95 insects, 86, 89, 9 ° plants, 87, 88 Caterpillar, OE6OE alimentary canal, OE89, OE9 o celery, OEOE9 jaws, 86 life, OE6OE nature, OEOE8 silk glands, OE87 press, OE88 spinneret, OE86 spinning of cocoon, OESOE, OE83 structure, OE37 tent, transformation to moth,oE93-3o5 Caterpillar and moth, OE6OE Cecropia moth, OEOES, OEOE9 Cellulose, digestion of, by ter- mites, 137 Chitin OE56 Chloealtis conspersa, 3 ° musical apparatus, 3 ° song, 3 o, 3 I Chrysalides, OE51 Cicadas, annual, 184 periodical, 184--OEOE 5 Cicadidae, Circotettix carlingianus, 3OE verruc ulatu s , Cockroaches, 79 Collembola, OE47 Common meadow grasshopper, 5OE song, 53 Coneheads, 50 Conocephalus fasciatus, 54 song, 54 Corn-root aphis, Coulee cricket, 54 Cricket family, 55 Crickets, 55 bush, 69 camel, 55 European, 55 field, 58 foot, 55 mole, 58 musical organs, 56, 57 tree, 63 Croton bug, see German roach Culex, 33 I eggs, 33 I food, 337, 338 larva, 33  maie and female, 335 mouth parts, 335-337 D Deer flies, 3oEo Diapheromera Jemorata, 7  Digestion,  IO Diptera, 315 Double soma, 3o4 Dragonflies, 95 adult, OE33 Carboniferous, 95 young, OE33 E Ears of grasshoppers, 3 ° of katydids, 36 Egg laying of cicada, OEIOE Eggs of aphids, 157 , I58 of cicada, OEIOE Culex mosquito, 33 I grasshopper, 5, 6, 7 bouse fly, 343 roaches, 8o, 8 I tent caterpillar, OE6OE Enzymes, i I i Epicauta vittata, OEOE European house cricket, 55 [ 356 ] INDEX F Fat-body, OE6o, OE9 OE Field crickets, 58 Flies, 314 horn fly, 348 horsefly, 32o--3oE4 house fly, 34oE-347 in general, 315 larva, 325 pupa, 3oE7 stable fly, 348, tsetse fly, 348 young, OE3 l Food exchange by termites, 144 Foot of cricket, 55 of grasshopper, 3 katydid, 3 OE Fork-tailed bush katydid, 39 song, 39 Four-spotted tree cricket, 67 G Gadflies, 3oEo Ganglia, 118 Garden aphids, I7I , i72 Genus, defined, OE-v German roach, 79 egg case, 8 l hatching, 81, 8oE Germ cells, lOO, lO, 124, 304 Glossina, see Tsetse tir palpalis, 350 morsitans, 350 Grasshopper,  adults, 17 cousins, 26 definition, OE destruction of eggs by blister beetles, OE3, 24 devastation by, I8 ears, .30 egg laying, 4, 5 egg-pod, 5 eggs, 6, 7 Grasshopper, growth, 13, 14 hatching, 8, 9 head, 12 males and females, 3 migration, 18 molting, I4-I6 oviposttor, 4 parasite, I9, OEo songs, 3 o, 3 I spiracles, 13 wings, 29 young, I, 8, Il Grasshopper family, 28 Grasshopper's cousins, 26 Green apple aphis, 6OE-168 Green bugs, Gryllus, 58, 60 assimilis, see Black cricket domesticus, 55, 60 H Handsome meadow grasshopper, 54 song, 54 Halteres, 319 Heart, I 12 Hexapoda, see Insecta Histoblast, OE59 Histogenesis, OE6o Histolysis, 2_ç 9 Honey dew, 155 Hormones, I 19 Horsefly, 3oEo larva, 3oE5 mouth parts, 321-323 pupa, 3oE5 sucking pump, 3oE2 House centipede, 8oE, 83 House fly, 34oE breeding places, 343 eggs, 343 larva, 343 mode of feeding, 346 mouth parts, 345, 346 [ 357 ] House fly, pupa, 345 puparium, 344 unsanitary habits, 347 Hypermetamorphosis, OESo Hyperparasite, 18 [ Hypopharynx, 1o8 I lmaginal discs, 9-59 Imago, defined, 9-59 lnsecta, OE8 Intestine, 11o J Jumping bush cricket, 69 song, 7 ° June bugs, OE3 o K Katydid, 43 habits, 46 musical instruments, 47, 48 song, 44, 48, 49 true, 43 Katydid family, 32 Katydids, 32 angular-winged, 4' bush, 38 ears, 36 musical instrtnnents, 34-36 round-headed, 37 song, 33, 34 young, i 1 King termite, 134 L Labium, Io8 Labrum, Io8 Lady-beetles, 175, z3o Ladvbird beetles, [75, -3 ° Larva, characters, OE46 &finition, 9-45 nature, 9.49 of Aëdes, 339 Anopheles, 340, 341 INDEX Larva of Culex, 33 I, 339-, 333 of files, 39-5 house fly, 343 mosquitoes, 39-9 wasps and bees, 9-59- Leaf insect, 7 I, 79-, 73 Legs of insects, 1o 7 Lepisma, 93 Lire of a caterpillar, 9-69- Locustidae, 39- Locusts, 9- seventeen-year, 189- Luna moth, OEOES, 9-3 ° M .Iachilis, 93 Maggots, 9-59- ,4alacosoma americana, see Tent caterpillar Malaria mosquitoes, 34 ° adult, 340 eggs, 340 larva, 34 o, 341 pupa, 34 [ Malaria parasite, 342 Malpighian tubules, [[6 Mandibles, I+ 7 Mantids, 73 Mantis, praying, 73-76 eggs, 75, 76 Maxillae, 1o8 May beetles, 23o Mayfly, 96 Meadow grasshoppers, 59--54 Mecostethus gracili«, 3 [ Metabolism of pupa, Metamorphosis, [4, complete, 9-45 defined, OEOE7 diagram, 43 incomplete, of tent caterpillar, 9-97, 9-99-3o4 .lio-ocentrum retinerve, 41, 43 song, 43 [ 358 ] INDEX Microcentrum rhombifolium, 4x, 4 OE, 43 song, 41, 42, 43 Mde cricket, 58 song, 58 Molting of grasshopper, 4, I6 Mormon cricket, 54 Mosquitoes, 3oE9 adult, 33% 335, 338 .¢ë'des, 33 I /lnopheles, 33 I, 34o cornrnon, 33  Culex, 33 I larvae, 3oE9 rnalaria, 33 I, 34o Stegomyia, 338 yellow lever, 338 young, OE39 Moth of tent caterp]llar, 3o5 characters, 3o6, 3o7 egg laying, 3IoE ernergence frorn pupa, 3o5, 3o6 rnouth parts, 3o6, 3o7 proboscis, 3o7, 3o8 reproductive organs, 3   Moths, Cecropia, 2oE8 celery, OEoE9 Luna, OEoES, OE3 o Promethea, OEoE8 tent caterpillar, 3o5 Mouth parts, IoE, o 7 Musca domestica, see House fly Muscidae, 342 Musical instruments of cicada, of crickets, 56, 57 grasshoppers, 3% 3  msects, 33, 34 katydids, 34, 35, 36 Myiasis, 35oE N Nagana, 349 Narrow-winged tree cricket, 66, 67 Narrow-winged tree cricket, an- tennal rnarks, 66, 67 song, 67 Nemobius vittatus, 58 song, 58, 59 Neoconocephalus ensiger, 5o song, 5 retusus, 5o robustus, 5  song, 5 I Neocurtilla hexadactyla, 57 Neoxabia bipunctata, 69 Nervous systern,  17 Nyrnph, defined, 245 O Oecanthus angustipennis, see Nar- row-winged tree cricket latipennis, see Broad-winged tree cricket nigricornis, see Black-horned tree cricket nigricornis quadripunctatus, 68 niveus, see Snowy tree cricket Oesophagus, x o Orchelimum agile, . 3 laticauda, vuAgare, 5oE, 53 Oriental roach, 79, 8o Origin of insect wings, 9 , 9 OE Orocharis saltator, 7 o Ovaries, IOEOE Ovipositor, 4, IOE3 Ox warble, 352 P Paleodictyoptera, 9% 92 Parasites, defined, x79 of aphids, 77-79 grasshopper, 9, OEo Parthenogenesis, Periodical cicada, abdomen, OEo 5 adults, I99 [ 359 ] INDEX Periodical cicada, air chamber, 205 broods, 2rs-OEr 7 death of adults, 214 digging methods, 19o , 191 egg laying, 212-2 I4 eggs, 212, OEI 9 food, OE0O front leg of nymph, 19o hatching of eggs, head of aduh, 2oi huts, turrets, 192 mouth parts, OEoI-2O 5 musical instruments, 199 , OEo 7- nymphal chambers, I87-189 stages, 186, 187 nymphs, 185-i93 , ovipositor, 199 races, salivary pump, 204 song of large variety, 21o, OE! I of small variety, OEil, sucking mechanism, transformation, 193-199 two varieties, 99 young nymphs, 223-225 Phagocytes, 259 , Phaneroptera, 38 Pharynx, I o Phylloxera, I72 Phylum, OE6 Physiology of tent caterpillar, 283 Plant lice, 152 Plasmodium, 342 Proboscis of moth, 3o7, 3o8 Promethea moth, 228, 2°-9 Propupa of tent caterpillar, 296- OE98 Protoplasm, IOO Pterophylla camellifolia, see Katy- did Pupa, OE5 o, 253 , 54 added stage in metamorphosis, Pupa, definition, of flies, 3OE7 house fly, 345 mosquitoes, 334, 339, 34 I tent caterpillar, OE98 reason for, OE57 Puparium, of house fl, 344 Queen termite, 1.34, I49 R Rat-tailed maggot, 327 Reproduction, lO Reproductive organs, I2 Respiration, ! 14 Reticulitermes,  36 lire history, 136-I41 Rhadophorinae, 55 Roaches, 77, 8o and other ancient insects, 77 eggs, 8% 81 Robber flies, 324 Rocky Mountain locust, I7, 18, 19 Rosy apple aphis, I68-17o Round-headed katydids, 37 /lmblycorypha oblongifolia, 39 angular-winged, 4 fork-tailed bush, 39 Microcentrum, 4 I, 43 Phaneroptera, 38 Scudderia, 38, 39 S Sarcophaga kellyi,  9 2 I Scudderia, 38 fl«rcata, see Fork-tailed bush katydid Segments of body, 12 Sense organs, 121 [ 360 ] INDEX Seventeen-year locust, see Periodi- cal cicada Shield-bearers, 54 Sleeping sickness, 349 Slender meadow grasshopper, 54 Snowy tree cricket, 65 antennal marks, 66 musical instruments, 57 song, 66 Soldiers of termites, 3 Soma, o4, 304 Somatic cells, o 4 Song of insects, 33, 34 of cicada, 21o--212 crickets, 58, 60, grasshoppers, 3 katydids, 39, 41, 4 OE, 43, 44, 47, 48, 49, 5 , 53, 54 Spiracles, 3, I*4- Spirochetes, 34 ° Stagmomantis carolina, 73 Stimulus, o6 Stomach, Io 9 Stridulation, 33 Striped ground cricket, 58-6o song, 58, 59 Syrphid flies, 77 larvae feeding on aphids, ,76, '77 Sword-bearing conehead, 5o song, 51 T Tabanida, 320 Tent caterpillar, 26OE behavior on leafless tree, OE78, 279 cocoon, OE82 egg, OE63 egg mass, 263, 264 epidermis, OE95 fat-body, OEgoE feeding habits, 27% 27% OE73, .76 Tent caterpillar, general external form, OE85, OE86 head, OE84, OE85 internal organs, OE89-OE91 jaws, OE86 jumping from trees, OE8o, OES manner of feeding, OE77 metamorphosis, OE93 molts, OE75 moth, 305 newly-hatched, OE65 prepupal stage, OE95 propupa, OE96, OE97 pupa, OE98 silk glands, OE86 press, OE88 spinneret, OE86 spinning cocoon, OESOE, OE83 structure and physiology, OE83 tents, 270 weavlng tent, 272 , 273 young, 26OE in egg, 312, 313 Termites, 125 /Ïme collective, 43 castes, I31 , 14I , 142 community lire, 34 destruction by, OE9 digestion of cellulose, '37 egg laying,  50,  5  food exchange, 144 fungus grown for food, 48 king, 34 lire history, 36-4 I males and femmes, 33 nests aboveground, 48 in trees, 148 underground, 47 queen, 34, I49 Reticulitermes,  36 short-winged form, 33, I4° soldiers, 3 I tropical termites, 46 winged form, I33 [.361 ] INDEX Termites, wingless males and females, 14o workers, 131 young, I36 Testes, Tettigoniidae, 32 Thorax, 12 Thysanura, 24. 7 Tracheae, I 14 Tree crickets, 63 antennal marks, 66, 67 attraction of males for females, 68, 69 black-horned, 67 broad-winged, 65 four-spotted, 67 musical organs, 56, 57 narrow-winged, 67 Neoxabia, 69 Oecanttus, 65-68 snowy, 65 song, 65, 66, 67 two-spotted, 69 Triungulins, OE3 Tropisms, True katydid, 43 Trypanosoma, 349 Tsetse fly, 348, 349, 35 ° mouth parts, 350, 351 Two-spotted tree cricket, 69 song, 69 W Walking stick, 7 OE Walking stick insects, 7 I Wasps and bees, larvae, OE3o, OE38, Ways and means of living, 99 White ants, IOE8 White grubs, OE3 o Wings, 83, 84 evolution, 3  5 of bees, 319 beetles, 3  8 butterflies and moths, 3  8 dragonflies, 3  6 flies, 319 grasshoppers, 318 roaches, 83, 84, 3  8 termites, 146 , 36 wasps, 319 origin, 91, 9 OE Wigglers, OE3 o, 3OE9 Woolly aphis, 172 X Xiphidium, 54 Y Yellow lever, 339 Yellow fever mosquito, 331, 339, 34o [ 36OE ] 3 9088 00157823 6 nhent QL463.S6X Insects, the=r ways and means of living,